Quotations.ch
  Directory : A Tale of Two Cities
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of A Tale of Two Cities, by Charles Dickens
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: A Tale of Two Cities
  • A Story of the French Revolution
  • Author: Charles Dickens
  • Release Date: January, 1994 [EBook #98]
  • Posting Date: November 28, 2009
  • Last Updated: March 4, 2018
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: UTF-8
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A TALE OF TWO CITIES ***
  • Produced by Judith Boss
  • A TALE OF TWO CITIES
  • A STORY OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION
  • By Charles Dickens
  • CONTENTS
  • Book the First--Recalled to Life
  • Chapter I The Period
  • Chapter II The Mail
  • Chapter III The Night Shadows
  • Chapter IV The Preparation
  • Chapter V The Wine-shop
  • Chapter VI The Shoemaker
  • Book the Second--the Golden Thread
  • Chapter I Five Years Later
  • Chapter II A Sight
  • Chapter III A Disappointment
  • Chapter IV Congratulatory
  • Chapter V The Jackal
  • Chapter VI Hundreds of People
  • Chapter VII Monseigneur in Town
  • Chapter VIII Monseigneur in the Country
  • Chapter IX The Gorgon's Head
  • Chapter X Two Promises
  • Chapter XI A Companion Picture
  • Chapter XII The Fellow of Delicacy
  • Chapter XIII The Fellow of no Delicacy
  • Chapter XIV The Honest Tradesman
  • Chapter XV Knitting
  • Chapter XVI Still Knitting
  • Chapter XVII One Night
  • Chapter XVIII Nine Days
  • Chapter XIX An Opinion
  • Chapter XX A Plea
  • Chapter XXI Echoing Footsteps
  • Chapter XXII The Sea Still Rises
  • Chapter XXIII Fire Rises
  • Chapter XXIV Drawn to the Loadstone Rock
  • Book the Third--the Track of a Storm
  • Chapter I In Secret
  • Chapter II The Grindstone
  • Chapter III The Shadow
  • Chapter IV Calm in Storm
  • Chapter V The Wood-sawyer
  • Chapter VI Triumph
  • Chapter VII A Knock at the Door
  • Chapter VIII A Hand at Cards
  • Chapter IX The Game Made
  • Chapter X The Substance of the Shadow
  • Chapter XI Dusk
  • Chapter XII Darkness
  • Chapter XIII Fifty-two
  • Chapter XIV The Knitting Done
  • Chapter XV The Footsteps Die Out For Ever
  • Book the First--Recalled to Life
  • I. The Period
  • It was the best of times,
  • it was the worst of times,
  • it was the age of wisdom,
  • it was the age of foolishness,
  • it was the epoch of belief,
  • it was the epoch of incredulity,
  • it was the season of Light,
  • it was the season of Darkness,
  • it was the spring of hope,
  • it was the winter of despair,
  • we had everything before us,
  • we had nothing before us,
  • we were all going direct to Heaven,
  • we were all going direct the other way--
  • in short, the period was so far like the present period, that some of
  • its noisiest authorities insisted on its being received, for good or for
  • evil, in the superlative degree of comparison only.
  • There were a king with a large jaw and a queen with a plain face, on the
  • throne of England; there were a king with a large jaw and a queen with
  • a fair face, on the throne of France. In both countries it was clearer
  • than crystal to the lords of the State preserves of loaves and fishes,
  • that things in general were settled for ever.
  • It was the year of Our Lord one thousand seven hundred and seventy-five.
  • Spiritual revelations were conceded to England at that favoured period,
  • as at this. Mrs. Southcott had recently attained her five-and-twentieth
  • blessed birthday, of whom a prophetic private in the Life Guards had
  • heralded the sublime appearance by announcing that arrangements were
  • made for the swallowing up of London and Westminster. Even the Cock-lane
  • ghost had been laid only a round dozen of years, after rapping out its
  • messages, as the spirits of this very year last past (supernaturally
  • deficient in originality) rapped out theirs. Mere messages in the
  • earthly order of events had lately come to the English Crown and People,
  • from a congress of British subjects in America: which, strange
  • to relate, have proved more important to the human race than any
  • communications yet received through any of the chickens of the Cock-lane
  • brood.
  • France, less favoured on the whole as to matters spiritual than her
  • sister of the shield and trident, rolled with exceeding smoothness down
  • hill, making paper money and spending it. Under the guidance of her
  • Christian pastors, she entertained herself, besides, with such humane
  • achievements as sentencing a youth to have his hands cut off, his tongue
  • torn out with pincers, and his body burned alive, because he had not
  • kneeled down in the rain to do honour to a dirty procession of monks
  • which passed within his view, at a distance of some fifty or sixty
  • yards. It is likely enough that, rooted in the woods of France and
  • Norway, there were growing trees, when that sufferer was put to death,
  • already marked by the Woodman, Fate, to come down and be sawn into
  • boards, to make a certain movable framework with a sack and a knife in
  • it, terrible in history. It is likely enough that in the rough outhouses
  • of some tillers of the heavy lands adjacent to Paris, there were
  • sheltered from the weather that very day, rude carts, bespattered with
  • rustic mire, snuffed about by pigs, and roosted in by poultry, which
  • the Farmer, Death, had already set apart to be his tumbrils of
  • the Revolution. But that Woodman and that Farmer, though they work
  • unceasingly, work silently, and no one heard them as they went about
  • with muffled tread: the rather, forasmuch as to entertain any suspicion
  • that they were awake, was to be atheistical and traitorous.
  • In England, there was scarcely an amount of order and protection to
  • justify much national boasting. Daring burglaries by armed men, and
  • highway robberies, took place in the capital itself every night;
  • families were publicly cautioned not to go out of town without removing
  • their furniture to upholsterers' warehouses for security; the highwayman
  • in the dark was a City tradesman in the light, and, being recognised and
  • challenged by his fellow-tradesman whom he stopped in his character of
  • “the Captain,” gallantly shot him through the head and rode away; the
  • mail was waylaid by seven robbers, and the guard shot three dead, and
  • then got shot dead himself by the other four, “in consequence of the
  • failure of his ammunition:” after which the mail was robbed in peace;
  • that magnificent potentate, the Lord Mayor of London, was made to stand
  • and deliver on Turnham Green, by one highwayman, who despoiled the
  • illustrious creature in sight of all his retinue; prisoners in London
  • gaols fought battles with their turnkeys, and the majesty of the law
  • fired blunderbusses in among them, loaded with rounds of shot and ball;
  • thieves snipped off diamond crosses from the necks of noble lords at
  • Court drawing-rooms; musketeers went into St. Giles's, to search
  • for contraband goods, and the mob fired on the musketeers, and the
  • musketeers fired on the mob, and nobody thought any of these occurrences
  • much out of the common way. In the midst of them, the hangman, ever busy
  • and ever worse than useless, was in constant requisition; now, stringing
  • up long rows of miscellaneous criminals; now, hanging a housebreaker on
  • Saturday who had been taken on Tuesday; now, burning people in the
  • hand at Newgate by the dozen, and now burning pamphlets at the door of
  • Westminster Hall; to-day, taking the life of an atrocious murderer,
  • and to-morrow of a wretched pilferer who had robbed a farmer's boy of
  • sixpence.
  • All these things, and a thousand like them, came to pass in and close
  • upon the dear old year one thousand seven hundred and seventy-five.
  • Environed by them, while the Woodman and the Farmer worked unheeded,
  • those two of the large jaws, and those other two of the plain and the
  • fair faces, trod with stir enough, and carried their divine rights
  • with a high hand. Thus did the year one thousand seven hundred
  • and seventy-five conduct their Greatnesses, and myriads of small
  • creatures--the creatures of this chronicle among the rest--along the
  • roads that lay before them.
  • II. The Mail
  • It was the Dover road that lay, on a Friday night late in November,
  • before the first of the persons with whom this history has business.
  • The Dover road lay, as to him, beyond the Dover mail, as it lumbered up
  • Shooter's Hill. He walked up hill in the mire by the side of the mail,
  • as the rest of the passengers did; not because they had the least relish
  • for walking exercise, under the circumstances, but because the hill,
  • and the harness, and the mud, and the mail, were all so heavy, that the
  • horses had three times already come to a stop, besides once drawing the
  • coach across the road, with the mutinous intent of taking it back
  • to Blackheath. Reins and whip and coachman and guard, however, in
  • combination, had read that article of war which forbade a purpose
  • otherwise strongly in favour of the argument, that some brute animals
  • are endued with Reason; and the team had capitulated and returned to
  • their duty.
  • With drooping heads and tremulous tails, they mashed their way through
  • the thick mud, floundering and stumbling between whiles, as if they were
  • falling to pieces at the larger joints. As often as the driver rested
  • them and brought them to a stand, with a wary “Wo-ho! so-ho-then!” the
  • near leader violently shook his head and everything upon it--like an
  • unusually emphatic horse, denying that the coach could be got up the
  • hill. Whenever the leader made this rattle, the passenger started, as a
  • nervous passenger might, and was disturbed in mind.
  • There was a steaming mist in all the hollows, and it had roamed in its
  • forlornness up the hill, like an evil spirit, seeking rest and finding
  • none. A clammy and intensely cold mist, it made its slow way through the
  • air in ripples that visibly followed and overspread one another, as the
  • waves of an unwholesome sea might do. It was dense enough to shut out
  • everything from the light of the coach-lamps but these its own workings,
  • and a few yards of road; and the reek of the labouring horses steamed
  • into it, as if they had made it all.
  • Two other passengers, besides the one, were plodding up the hill by the
  • side of the mail. All three were wrapped to the cheekbones and over the
  • ears, and wore jack-boots. Not one of the three could have said, from
  • anything he saw, what either of the other two was like; and each was
  • hidden under almost as many wrappers from the eyes of the mind, as from
  • the eyes of the body, of his two companions. In those days, travellers
  • were very shy of being confidential on a short notice, for anybody on
  • the road might be a robber or in league with robbers. As to the latter,
  • when every posting-house and ale-house could produce somebody in
  • “the Captain's” pay, ranging from the landlord to the lowest stable
  • non-descript, it was the likeliest thing upon the cards. So the guard
  • of the Dover mail thought to himself, that Friday night in November, one
  • thousand seven hundred and seventy-five, lumbering up Shooter's Hill, as
  • he stood on his own particular perch behind the mail, beating his feet,
  • and keeping an eye and a hand on the arm-chest before him, where a
  • loaded blunderbuss lay at the top of six or eight loaded horse-pistols,
  • deposited on a substratum of cutlass.
  • The Dover mail was in its usual genial position that the guard suspected
  • the passengers, the passengers suspected one another and the guard, they
  • all suspected everybody else, and the coachman was sure of nothing but
  • the horses; as to which cattle he could with a clear conscience have
  • taken his oath on the two Testaments that they were not fit for the
  • journey.
  • “Wo-ho!” said the coachman. “So, then! One more pull and you're at the
  • top and be damned to you, for I have had trouble enough to get you to
  • it!--Joe!”
  • “Halloa!” the guard replied.
  • “What o'clock do you make it, Joe?”
  • “Ten minutes, good, past eleven.”
  • “My blood!” ejaculated the vexed coachman, “and not atop of Shooter's
  • yet! Tst! Yah! Get on with you!”
  • The emphatic horse, cut short by the whip in a most decided negative,
  • made a decided scramble for it, and the three other horses followed
  • suit. Once more, the Dover mail struggled on, with the jack-boots of its
  • passengers squashing along by its side. They had stopped when the coach
  • stopped, and they kept close company with it. If any one of the three
  • had had the hardihood to propose to another to walk on a little ahead
  • into the mist and darkness, he would have put himself in a fair way of
  • getting shot instantly as a highwayman.
  • The last burst carried the mail to the summit of the hill. The horses
  • stopped to breathe again, and the guard got down to skid the wheel for
  • the descent, and open the coach-door to let the passengers in.
  • “Tst! Joe!” cried the coachman in a warning voice, looking down from his
  • box.
  • “What do you say, Tom?”
  • They both listened.
  • “I say a horse at a canter coming up, Joe.”
  • “_I_ say a horse at a gallop, Tom,” returned the guard, leaving his hold
  • of the door, and mounting nimbly to his place. “Gentlemen! In the king's
  • name, all of you!”
  • With this hurried adjuration, he cocked his blunderbuss, and stood on
  • the offensive.
  • The passenger booked by this history, was on the coach-step, getting in;
  • the two other passengers were close behind him, and about to follow. He
  • remained on the step, half in the coach and half out of; they remained
  • in the road below him. They all looked from the coachman to the guard,
  • and from the guard to the coachman, and listened. The coachman looked
  • back and the guard looked back, and even the emphatic leader pricked up
  • his ears and looked back, without contradicting.
  • The stillness consequent on the cessation of the rumbling and labouring
  • of the coach, added to the stillness of the night, made it very quiet
  • indeed. The panting of the horses communicated a tremulous motion to
  • the coach, as if it were in a state of agitation. The hearts of the
  • passengers beat loud enough perhaps to be heard; but at any rate, the
  • quiet pause was audibly expressive of people out of breath, and holding
  • the breath, and having the pulses quickened by expectation.
  • The sound of a horse at a gallop came fast and furiously up the hill.
  • “So-ho!” the guard sang out, as loud as he could roar. “Yo there! Stand!
  • I shall fire!”
  • The pace was suddenly checked, and, with much splashing and floundering,
  • a man's voice called from the mist, “Is that the Dover mail?”
  • “Never you mind what it is!” the guard retorted. “What are you?”
  • “_Is_ that the Dover mail?”
  • “Why do you want to know?”
  • “I want a passenger, if it is.”
  • “What passenger?”
  • “Mr. Jarvis Lorry.”
  • Our booked passenger showed in a moment that it was his name. The guard,
  • the coachman, and the two other passengers eyed him distrustfully.
  • “Keep where you are,” the guard called to the voice in the mist,
  • “because, if I should make a mistake, it could never be set right in
  • your lifetime. Gentleman of the name of Lorry answer straight.”
  • “What is the matter?” asked the passenger, then, with mildly quavering
  • speech. “Who wants me? Is it Jerry?”
  • (“I don't like Jerry's voice, if it is Jerry,” growled the guard to
  • himself. “He's hoarser than suits me, is Jerry.”)
  • “Yes, Mr. Lorry.”
  • “What is the matter?”
  • “A despatch sent after you from over yonder. T. and Co.”
  • “I know this messenger, guard,” said Mr. Lorry, getting down into the
  • road--assisted from behind more swiftly than politely by the other two
  • passengers, who immediately scrambled into the coach, shut the door, and
  • pulled up the window. “He may come close; there's nothing wrong.”
  • “I hope there ain't, but I can't make so 'Nation sure of that,” said the
  • guard, in gruff soliloquy. “Hallo you!”
  • “Well! And hallo you!” said Jerry, more hoarsely than before.
  • “Come on at a footpace! d'ye mind me? And if you've got holsters to that
  • saddle o' yourn, don't let me see your hand go nigh 'em. For I'm a devil
  • at a quick mistake, and when I make one it takes the form of Lead. So
  • now let's look at you.”
  • The figures of a horse and rider came slowly through the eddying mist,
  • and came to the side of the mail, where the passenger stood. The rider
  • stooped, and, casting up his eyes at the guard, handed the passenger
  • a small folded paper. The rider's horse was blown, and both horse and
  • rider were covered with mud, from the hoofs of the horse to the hat of
  • the man.
  • “Guard!” said the passenger, in a tone of quiet business confidence.
  • The watchful guard, with his right hand at the stock of his raised
  • blunderbuss, his left at the barrel, and his eye on the horseman,
  • answered curtly, “Sir.”
  • “There is nothing to apprehend. I belong to Tellson's Bank. You must
  • know Tellson's Bank in London. I am going to Paris on business. A crown
  • to drink. I may read this?”
  • “If so be as you're quick, sir.”
  • He opened it in the light of the coach-lamp on that side, and
  • read--first to himself and then aloud: “'Wait at Dover for Mam'selle.'
  • It's not long, you see, guard. Jerry, say that my answer was, RECALLED
  • TO LIFE.”
  • Jerry started in his saddle. “That's a Blazing strange answer, too,”
  • said he, at his hoarsest.
  • “Take that message back, and they will know that I received this, as
  • well as if I wrote. Make the best of your way. Good night.”
  • With those words the passenger opened the coach-door and got in; not at
  • all assisted by his fellow-passengers, who had expeditiously secreted
  • their watches and purses in their boots, and were now making a general
  • pretence of being asleep. With no more definite purpose than to escape
  • the hazard of originating any other kind of action.
  • The coach lumbered on again, with heavier wreaths of mist closing round
  • it as it began the descent. The guard soon replaced his blunderbuss
  • in his arm-chest, and, having looked to the rest of its contents, and
  • having looked to the supplementary pistols that he wore in his belt,
  • looked to a smaller chest beneath his seat, in which there were a
  • few smith's tools, a couple of torches, and a tinder-box. For he was
  • furnished with that completeness that if the coach-lamps had been blown
  • and stormed out, which did occasionally happen, he had only to shut
  • himself up inside, keep the flint and steel sparks well off the straw,
  • and get a light with tolerable safety and ease (if he were lucky) in
  • five minutes.
  • “Tom!” softly over the coach roof.
  • “Hallo, Joe.”
  • “Did you hear the message?”
  • “I did, Joe.”
  • “What did you make of it, Tom?”
  • “Nothing at all, Joe.”
  • “That's a coincidence, too,” the guard mused, “for I made the same of it
  • myself.”
  • Jerry, left alone in the mist and darkness, dismounted meanwhile, not
  • only to ease his spent horse, but to wipe the mud from his face, and
  • shake the wet out of his hat-brim, which might be capable of
  • holding about half a gallon. After standing with the bridle over his
  • heavily-splashed arm, until the wheels of the mail were no longer within
  • hearing and the night was quite still again, he turned to walk down the
  • hill.
  • “After that there gallop from Temple Bar, old lady, I won't trust your
  • fore-legs till I get you on the level,” said this hoarse messenger,
  • glancing at his mare. “'Recalled to life.' That's a Blazing strange
  • message. Much of that wouldn't do for you, Jerry! I say, Jerry! You'd
  • be in a Blazing bad way, if recalling to life was to come into fashion,
  • Jerry!”
  • III. The Night Shadows
  • A wonderful fact to reflect upon, that every human creature is
  • constituted to be that profound secret and mystery to every other. A
  • solemn consideration, when I enter a great city by night, that every
  • one of those darkly clustered houses encloses its own secret; that every
  • room in every one of them encloses its own secret; that every beating
  • heart in the hundreds of thousands of breasts there, is, in some of
  • its imaginings, a secret to the heart nearest it! Something of the
  • awfulness, even of Death itself, is referable to this. No more can I
  • turn the leaves of this dear book that I loved, and vainly hope in time
  • to read it all. No more can I look into the depths of this unfathomable
  • water, wherein, as momentary lights glanced into it, I have had glimpses
  • of buried treasure and other things submerged. It was appointed that the
  • book should shut with a spring, for ever and for ever, when I had read
  • but a page. It was appointed that the water should be locked in an
  • eternal frost, when the light was playing on its surface, and I stood
  • in ignorance on the shore. My friend is dead, my neighbour is dead,
  • my love, the darling of my soul, is dead; it is the inexorable
  • consolidation and perpetuation of the secret that was always in that
  • individuality, and which I shall carry in mine to my life's end. In
  • any of the burial-places of this city through which I pass, is there
  • a sleeper more inscrutable than its busy inhabitants are, in their
  • innermost personality, to me, or than I am to them?
  • As to this, his natural and not to be alienated inheritance, the
  • messenger on horseback had exactly the same possessions as the King, the
  • first Minister of State, or the richest merchant in London. So with the
  • three passengers shut up in the narrow compass of one lumbering old mail
  • coach; they were mysteries to one another, as complete as if each had
  • been in his own coach and six, or his own coach and sixty, with the
  • breadth of a county between him and the next.
  • The messenger rode back at an easy trot, stopping pretty often at
  • ale-houses by the way to drink, but evincing a tendency to keep his
  • own counsel, and to keep his hat cocked over his eyes. He had eyes that
  • assorted very well with that decoration, being of a surface black, with
  • no depth in the colour or form, and much too near together--as if they
  • were afraid of being found out in something, singly, if they kept too
  • far apart. They had a sinister expression, under an old cocked-hat like
  • a three-cornered spittoon, and over a great muffler for the chin and
  • throat, which descended nearly to the wearer's knees. When he stopped
  • for drink, he moved this muffler with his left hand, only while he
  • poured his liquor in with his right; as soon as that was done, he
  • muffled again.
  • “No, Jerry, no!” said the messenger, harping on one theme as he rode.
  • “It wouldn't do for you, Jerry. Jerry, you honest tradesman, it wouldn't
  • suit _your_ line of business! Recalled--! Bust me if I don't think he'd
  • been a drinking!”
  • His message perplexed his mind to that degree that he was fain, several
  • times, to take off his hat to scratch his head. Except on the crown,
  • which was raggedly bald, he had stiff, black hair, standing jaggedly all
  • over it, and growing down hill almost to his broad, blunt nose. It was
  • so like Smith's work, so much more like the top of a strongly spiked
  • wall than a head of hair, that the best of players at leap-frog might
  • have declined him, as the most dangerous man in the world to go over.
  • While he trotted back with the message he was to deliver to the night
  • watchman in his box at the door of Tellson's Bank, by Temple Bar, who
  • was to deliver it to greater authorities within, the shadows of the
  • night took such shapes to him as arose out of the message, and took such
  • shapes to the mare as arose out of _her_ private topics of uneasiness.
  • They seemed to be numerous, for she shied at every shadow on the road.
  • What time, the mail-coach lumbered, jolted, rattled, and bumped upon
  • its tedious way, with its three fellow-inscrutables inside. To whom,
  • likewise, the shadows of the night revealed themselves, in the forms
  • their dozing eyes and wandering thoughts suggested.
  • Tellson's Bank had a run upon it in the mail. As the bank
  • passenger--with an arm drawn through the leathern strap, which did what
  • lay in it to keep him from pounding against the next passenger,
  • and driving him into his corner, whenever the coach got a special
  • jolt--nodded in his place, with half-shut eyes, the little
  • coach-windows, and the coach-lamp dimly gleaming through them, and the
  • bulky bundle of opposite passenger, became the bank, and did a great
  • stroke of business. The rattle of the harness was the chink of money,
  • and more drafts were honoured in five minutes than even Tellson's, with
  • all its foreign and home connection, ever paid in thrice the time. Then
  • the strong-rooms underground, at Tellson's, with such of their valuable
  • stores and secrets as were known to the passenger (and it was not a
  • little that he knew about them), opened before him, and he went in among
  • them with the great keys and the feebly-burning candle, and found them
  • safe, and strong, and sound, and still, just as he had last seen them.
  • But, though the bank was almost always with him, and though the coach
  • (in a confused way, like the presence of pain under an opiate) was
  • always with him, there was another current of impression that never
  • ceased to run, all through the night. He was on his way to dig some one
  • out of a grave.
  • Now, which of the multitude of faces that showed themselves before him
  • was the true face of the buried person, the shadows of the night did
  • not indicate; but they were all the faces of a man of five-and-forty by
  • years, and they differed principally in the passions they expressed,
  • and in the ghastliness of their worn and wasted state. Pride, contempt,
  • defiance, stubbornness, submission, lamentation, succeeded one another;
  • so did varieties of sunken cheek, cadaverous colour, emaciated hands
  • and figures. But the face was in the main one face, and every head was
  • prematurely white. A hundred times the dozing passenger inquired of this
  • spectre:
  • “Buried how long?”
  • The answer was always the same: “Almost eighteen years.”
  • “You had abandoned all hope of being dug out?”
  • “Long ago.”
  • “You know that you are recalled to life?”
  • “They tell me so.”
  • “I hope you care to live?”
  • “I can't say.”
  • “Shall I show her to you? Will you come and see her?”
  • The answers to this question were various and contradictory. Sometimes
  • the broken reply was, “Wait! It would kill me if I saw her too soon.”
  • Sometimes, it was given in a tender rain of tears, and then it was,
  • “Take me to her.” Sometimes it was staring and bewildered, and then it
  • was, “I don't know her. I don't understand.”
  • After such imaginary discourse, the passenger in his fancy would dig,
  • and dig, dig--now with a spade, now with a great key, now with his
  • hands--to dig this wretched creature out. Got out at last, with earth
  • hanging about his face and hair, he would suddenly fan away to dust. The
  • passenger would then start to himself, and lower the window, to get the
  • reality of mist and rain on his cheek.
  • Yet even when his eyes were opened on the mist and rain, on the moving
  • patch of light from the lamps, and the hedge at the roadside retreating
  • by jerks, the night shadows outside the coach would fall into the train
  • of the night shadows within. The real Banking-house by Temple Bar, the
  • real business of the past day, the real strong rooms, the real express
  • sent after him, and the real message returned, would all be there. Out
  • of the midst of them, the ghostly face would rise, and he would accost
  • it again.
  • “Buried how long?”
  • “Almost eighteen years.”
  • “I hope you care to live?”
  • “I can't say.”
  • Dig--dig--dig--until an impatient movement from one of the two
  • passengers would admonish him to pull up the window, draw his arm
  • securely through the leathern strap, and speculate upon the two
  • slumbering forms, until his mind lost its hold of them, and they again
  • slid away into the bank and the grave.
  • “Buried how long?”
  • “Almost eighteen years.”
  • “You had abandoned all hope of being dug out?”
  • “Long ago.”
  • The words were still in his hearing as just spoken--distinctly in
  • his hearing as ever spoken words had been in his life--when the weary
  • passenger started to the consciousness of daylight, and found that the
  • shadows of the night were gone.
  • He lowered the window, and looked out at the rising sun. There was a
  • ridge of ploughed land, with a plough upon it where it had been left
  • last night when the horses were unyoked; beyond, a quiet coppice-wood,
  • in which many leaves of burning red and golden yellow still remained
  • upon the trees. Though the earth was cold and wet, the sky was clear,
  • and the sun rose bright, placid, and beautiful.
  • “Eighteen years!” said the passenger, looking at the sun. “Gracious
  • Creator of day! To be buried alive for eighteen years!”
  • IV. The Preparation
  • When the mail got successfully to Dover, in the course of the forenoon,
  • the head drawer at the Royal George Hotel opened the coach-door as his
  • custom was. He did it with some flourish of ceremony, for a mail journey
  • from London in winter was an achievement to congratulate an adventurous
  • traveller upon.
  • By that time, there was only one adventurous traveller left be
  • congratulated: for the two others had been set down at their respective
  • roadside destinations. The mildewy inside of the coach, with its damp
  • and dirty straw, its disagreeable smell, and its obscurity, was rather
  • like a larger dog-kennel. Mr. Lorry, the passenger, shaking himself out
  • of it in chains of straw, a tangle of shaggy wrapper, flapping hat, and
  • muddy legs, was rather like a larger sort of dog.
  • “There will be a packet to Calais, tomorrow, drawer?”
  • “Yes, sir, if the weather holds and the wind sets tolerable fair. The
  • tide will serve pretty nicely at about two in the afternoon, sir. Bed,
  • sir?”
  • “I shall not go to bed till night; but I want a bedroom, and a barber.”
  • “And then breakfast, sir? Yes, sir. That way, sir, if you please.
  • Show Concord! Gentleman's valise and hot water to Concord. Pull off
  • gentleman's boots in Concord. (You will find a fine sea-coal fire, sir.)
  • Fetch barber to Concord. Stir about there, now, for Concord!”
  • The Concord bed-chamber being always assigned to a passenger by the
  • mail, and passengers by the mail being always heavily wrapped up from
  • head to foot, the room had the odd interest for the establishment of the
  • Royal George, that although but one kind of man was seen to go into it,
  • all kinds and varieties of men came out of it. Consequently, another
  • drawer, and two porters, and several maids and the landlady, were all
  • loitering by accident at various points of the road between the Concord
  • and the coffee-room, when a gentleman of sixty, formally dressed in a
  • brown suit of clothes, pretty well worn, but very well kept, with large
  • square cuffs and large flaps to the pockets, passed along on his way to
  • his breakfast.
  • The coffee-room had no other occupant, that forenoon, than the gentleman
  • in brown. His breakfast-table was drawn before the fire, and as he sat,
  • with its light shining on him, waiting for the meal, he sat so still,
  • that he might have been sitting for his portrait.
  • Very orderly and methodical he looked, with a hand on each knee, and a
  • loud watch ticking a sonorous sermon under his flapped waist-coat,
  • as though it pitted its gravity and longevity against the levity and
  • evanescence of the brisk fire. He had a good leg, and was a little vain
  • of it, for his brown stockings fitted sleek and close, and were of a
  • fine texture; his shoes and buckles, too, though plain, were trim. He
  • wore an odd little sleek crisp flaxen wig, setting very close to his
  • head: which wig, it is to be presumed, was made of hair, but which
  • looked far more as though it were spun from filaments of silk or glass.
  • His linen, though not of a fineness in accordance with his stockings,
  • was as white as the tops of the waves that broke upon the neighbouring
  • beach, or the specks of sail that glinted in the sunlight far at sea. A
  • face habitually suppressed and quieted, was still lighted up under the
  • quaint wig by a pair of moist bright eyes that it must have cost
  • their owner, in years gone by, some pains to drill to the composed and
  • reserved expression of Tellson's Bank. He had a healthy colour in his
  • cheeks, and his face, though lined, bore few traces of anxiety.
  • But, perhaps the confidential bachelor clerks in Tellson's Bank were
  • principally occupied with the cares of other people; and perhaps
  • second-hand cares, like second-hand clothes, come easily off and on.
  • Completing his resemblance to a man who was sitting for his portrait,
  • Mr. Lorry dropped off to sleep. The arrival of his breakfast roused him,
  • and he said to the drawer, as he moved his chair to it:
  • “I wish accommodation prepared for a young lady who may come here at any
  • time to-day. She may ask for Mr. Jarvis Lorry, or she may only ask for a
  • gentleman from Tellson's Bank. Please to let me know.”
  • “Yes, sir. Tellson's Bank in London, sir?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Yes, sir. We have oftentimes the honour to entertain your gentlemen in
  • their travelling backwards and forwards betwixt London and Paris, sir. A
  • vast deal of travelling, sir, in Tellson and Company's House.”
  • “Yes. We are quite a French House, as well as an English one.”
  • “Yes, sir. Not much in the habit of such travelling yourself, I think,
  • sir?”
  • “Not of late years. It is fifteen years since we--since I--came last
  • from France.”
  • “Indeed, sir? That was before my time here, sir. Before our people's
  • time here, sir. The George was in other hands at that time, sir.”
  • “I believe so.”
  • “But I would hold a pretty wager, sir, that a House like Tellson and
  • Company was flourishing, a matter of fifty, not to speak of fifteen
  • years ago?”
  • “You might treble that, and say a hundred and fifty, yet not be far from
  • the truth.”
  • “Indeed, sir!”
  • Rounding his mouth and both his eyes, as he stepped backward from the
  • table, the waiter shifted his napkin from his right arm to his left,
  • dropped into a comfortable attitude, and stood surveying the guest while
  • he ate and drank, as from an observatory or watchtower. According to the
  • immemorial usage of waiters in all ages.
  • When Mr. Lorry had finished his breakfast, he went out for a stroll on
  • the beach. The little narrow, crooked town of Dover hid itself away
  • from the beach, and ran its head into the chalk cliffs, like a marine
  • ostrich. The beach was a desert of heaps of sea and stones tumbling
  • wildly about, and the sea did what it liked, and what it liked was
  • destruction. It thundered at the town, and thundered at the cliffs, and
  • brought the coast down, madly. The air among the houses was of so strong
  • a piscatory flavour that one might have supposed sick fish went up to be
  • dipped in it, as sick people went down to be dipped in the sea. A little
  • fishing was done in the port, and a quantity of strolling about by
  • night, and looking seaward: particularly at those times when the tide
  • made, and was near flood. Small tradesmen, who did no business whatever,
  • sometimes unaccountably realised large fortunes, and it was remarkable
  • that nobody in the neighbourhood could endure a lamplighter.
  • As the day declined into the afternoon, and the air, which had been
  • at intervals clear enough to allow the French coast to be seen, became
  • again charged with mist and vapour, Mr. Lorry's thoughts seemed to cloud
  • too. When it was dark, and he sat before the coffee-room fire, awaiting
  • his dinner as he had awaited his breakfast, his mind was busily digging,
  • digging, digging, in the live red coals.
  • A bottle of good claret after dinner does a digger in the red coals no
  • harm, otherwise than as it has a tendency to throw him out of work.
  • Mr. Lorry had been idle a long time, and had just poured out his last
  • glassful of wine with as complete an appearance of satisfaction as is
  • ever to be found in an elderly gentleman of a fresh complexion who has
  • got to the end of a bottle, when a rattling of wheels came up the narrow
  • street, and rumbled into the inn-yard.
  • He set down his glass untouched. “This is Mam'selle!” said he.
  • In a very few minutes the waiter came in to announce that Miss Manette
  • had arrived from London, and would be happy to see the gentleman from
  • Tellson's.
  • “So soon?”
  • Miss Manette had taken some refreshment on the road, and required none
  • then, and was extremely anxious to see the gentleman from Tellson's
  • immediately, if it suited his pleasure and convenience.
  • The gentleman from Tellson's had nothing left for it but to empty his
  • glass with an air of stolid desperation, settle his odd little flaxen
  • wig at the ears, and follow the waiter to Miss Manette's apartment.
  • It was a large, dark room, furnished in a funereal manner with black
  • horsehair, and loaded with heavy dark tables. These had been oiled and
  • oiled, until the two tall candles on the table in the middle of the room
  • were gloomily reflected on every leaf; as if _they_ were buried, in deep
  • graves of black mahogany, and no light to speak of could be expected
  • from them until they were dug out.
  • The obscurity was so difficult to penetrate that Mr. Lorry, picking his
  • way over the well-worn Turkey carpet, supposed Miss Manette to be, for
  • the moment, in some adjacent room, until, having got past the two tall
  • candles, he saw standing to receive him by the table between them and
  • the fire, a young lady of not more than seventeen, in a riding-cloak,
  • and still holding her straw travelling-hat by its ribbon in her hand. As
  • his eyes rested on a short, slight, pretty figure, a quantity of golden
  • hair, a pair of blue eyes that met his own with an inquiring look, and
  • a forehead with a singular capacity (remembering how young and smooth
  • it was), of rifting and knitting itself into an expression that was
  • not quite one of perplexity, or wonder, or alarm, or merely of a bright
  • fixed attention, though it included all the four expressions--as his
  • eyes rested on these things, a sudden vivid likeness passed before him,
  • of a child whom he had held in his arms on the passage across that very
  • Channel, one cold time, when the hail drifted heavily and the sea ran
  • high. The likeness passed away, like a breath along the surface of
  • the gaunt pier-glass behind her, on the frame of which, a hospital
  • procession of negro cupids, several headless and all cripples, were
  • offering black baskets of Dead Sea fruit to black divinities of the
  • feminine gender--and he made his formal bow to Miss Manette.
  • “Pray take a seat, sir.” In a very clear and pleasant young voice; a
  • little foreign in its accent, but a very little indeed.
  • “I kiss your hand, miss,” said Mr. Lorry, with the manners of an earlier
  • date, as he made his formal bow again, and took his seat.
  • “I received a letter from the Bank, sir, yesterday, informing me that
  • some intelligence--or discovery--”
  • “The word is not material, miss; either word will do.”
  • “--respecting the small property of my poor father, whom I never saw--so
  • long dead--”
  • Mr. Lorry moved in his chair, and cast a troubled look towards the
  • hospital procession of negro cupids. As if _they_ had any help for
  • anybody in their absurd baskets!
  • “--rendered it necessary that I should go to Paris, there to communicate
  • with a gentleman of the Bank, so good as to be despatched to Paris for
  • the purpose.”
  • “Myself.”
  • “As I was prepared to hear, sir.”
  • She curtseyed to him (young ladies made curtseys in those days), with a
  • pretty desire to convey to him that she felt how much older and wiser he
  • was than she. He made her another bow.
  • “I replied to the Bank, sir, that as it was considered necessary, by
  • those who know, and who are so kind as to advise me, that I should go to
  • France, and that as I am an orphan and have no friend who could go with
  • me, I should esteem it highly if I might be permitted to place myself,
  • during the journey, under that worthy gentleman's protection. The
  • gentleman had left London, but I think a messenger was sent after him to
  • beg the favour of his waiting for me here.”
  • “I was happy,” said Mr. Lorry, “to be entrusted with the charge. I shall
  • be more happy to execute it.”
  • “Sir, I thank you indeed. I thank you very gratefully. It was told me
  • by the Bank that the gentleman would explain to me the details of the
  • business, and that I must prepare myself to find them of a surprising
  • nature. I have done my best to prepare myself, and I naturally have a
  • strong and eager interest to know what they are.”
  • “Naturally,” said Mr. Lorry. “Yes--I--”
  • After a pause, he added, again settling the crisp flaxen wig at the
  • ears, “It is very difficult to begin.”
  • He did not begin, but, in his indecision, met her glance. The young
  • forehead lifted itself into that singular expression--but it was pretty
  • and characteristic, besides being singular--and she raised her hand,
  • as if with an involuntary action she caught at, or stayed some passing
  • shadow.
  • “Are you quite a stranger to me, sir?”
  • “Am I not?” Mr. Lorry opened his hands, and extended them outwards with
  • an argumentative smile.
  • Between the eyebrows and just over the little feminine nose, the line of
  • which was as delicate and fine as it was possible to be, the expression
  • deepened itself as she took her seat thoughtfully in the chair by which
  • she had hitherto remained standing. He watched her as she mused, and the
  • moment she raised her eyes again, went on:
  • “In your adopted country, I presume, I cannot do better than address you
  • as a young English lady, Miss Manette?”
  • “If you please, sir.”
  • “Miss Manette, I am a man of business. I have a business charge to
  • acquit myself of. In your reception of it, don't heed me any more than
  • if I was a speaking machine--truly, I am not much else. I will, with
  • your leave, relate to you, miss, the story of one of our customers.”
  • “Story!”
  • He seemed wilfully to mistake the word she had repeated, when he added,
  • in a hurry, “Yes, customers; in the banking business we usually call
  • our connection our customers. He was a French gentleman; a scientific
  • gentleman; a man of great acquirements--a Doctor.”
  • “Not of Beauvais?”
  • “Why, yes, of Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your father, the
  • gentleman was of Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your father, the
  • gentleman was of repute in Paris. I had the honour of knowing him there.
  • Our relations were business relations, but confidential. I was at that
  • time in our French House, and had been--oh! twenty years.”
  • “At that time--I may ask, at what time, sir?”
  • “I speak, miss, of twenty years ago. He married--an English lady--and
  • I was one of the trustees. His affairs, like the affairs of many other
  • French gentlemen and French families, were entirely in Tellson's hands.
  • In a similar way I am, or I have been, trustee of one kind or other for
  • scores of our customers. These are mere business relations, miss;
  • there is no friendship in them, no particular interest, nothing like
  • sentiment. I have passed from one to another, in the course of my
  • business life, just as I pass from one of our customers to another in
  • the course of my business day; in short, I have no feelings; I am a mere
  • machine. To go on--”
  • “But this is my father's story, sir; and I begin to think”--the
  • curiously roughened forehead was very intent upon him--“that when I was
  • left an orphan through my mother's surviving my father only two years,
  • it was you who brought me to England. I am almost sure it was you.”
  • Mr. Lorry took the hesitating little hand that confidingly advanced
  • to take his, and he put it with some ceremony to his lips. He then
  • conducted the young lady straightway to her chair again, and, holding
  • the chair-back with his left hand, and using his right by turns to rub
  • his chin, pull his wig at the ears, or point what he said, stood looking
  • down into her face while she sat looking up into his.
  • “Miss Manette, it _was_ I. And you will see how truly I spoke of myself
  • just now, in saying I had no feelings, and that all the relations I hold
  • with my fellow-creatures are mere business relations, when you reflect
  • that I have never seen you since. No; you have been the ward of
  • Tellson's House since, and I have been busy with the other business of
  • Tellson's House since. Feelings! I have no time for them, no chance
  • of them. I pass my whole life, miss, in turning an immense pecuniary
  • Mangle.”
  • After this odd description of his daily routine of employment, Mr. Lorry
  • flattened his flaxen wig upon his head with both hands (which was most
  • unnecessary, for nothing could be flatter than its shining surface was
  • before), and resumed his former attitude.
  • “So far, miss (as you have remarked), this is the story of your
  • regretted father. Now comes the difference. If your father had not died
  • when he did--Don't be frightened! How you start!”
  • She did, indeed, start. And she caught his wrist with both her hands.
  • “Pray,” said Mr. Lorry, in a soothing tone, bringing his left hand from
  • the back of the chair to lay it on the supplicatory fingers that clasped
  • him in so violent a tremble: “pray control your agitation--a matter of
  • business. As I was saying--”
  • Her look so discomposed him that he stopped, wandered, and began anew:
  • “As I was saying; if Monsieur Manette had not died; if he had suddenly
  • and silently disappeared; if he had been spirited away; if it had not
  • been difficult to guess to what dreadful place, though no art could
  • trace him; if he had an enemy in some compatriot who could exercise a
  • privilege that I in my own time have known the boldest people afraid
  • to speak of in a whisper, across the water there; for instance, the
  • privilege of filling up blank forms for the consignment of any one
  • to the oblivion of a prison for any length of time; if his wife had
  • implored the king, the queen, the court, the clergy, for any tidings of
  • him, and all quite in vain;--then the history of your father would have
  • been the history of this unfortunate gentleman, the Doctor of Beauvais.”
  • “I entreat you to tell me more, sir.”
  • “I will. I am going to. You can bear it?”
  • “I can bear anything but the uncertainty you leave me in at this
  • moment.”
  • “You speak collectedly, and you--_are_ collected. That's good!” (Though
  • his manner was less satisfied than his words.) “A matter of business.
  • Regard it as a matter of business--business that must be done. Now
  • if this doctor's wife, though a lady of great courage and spirit,
  • had suffered so intensely from this cause before her little child was
  • born--”
  • “The little child was a daughter, sir.”
  • “A daughter. A-a-matter of business--don't be distressed. Miss, if the
  • poor lady had suffered so intensely before her little child was born,
  • that she came to the determination of sparing the poor child the
  • inheritance of any part of the agony she had known the pains of, by
  • rearing her in the belief that her father was dead--No, don't kneel! In
  • Heaven's name why should you kneel to me!”
  • “For the truth. O dear, good, compassionate sir, for the truth!”
  • “A--a matter of business. You confuse me, and how can I transact
  • business if I am confused? Let us be clear-headed. If you could kindly
  • mention now, for instance, what nine times ninepence are, or how many
  • shillings in twenty guineas, it would be so encouraging. I should be so
  • much more at my ease about your state of mind.”
  • Without directly answering to this appeal, she sat so still when he had
  • very gently raised her, and the hands that had not ceased to clasp
  • his wrists were so much more steady than they had been, that she
  • communicated some reassurance to Mr. Jarvis Lorry.
  • “That's right, that's right. Courage! Business! You have business before
  • you; useful business. Miss Manette, your mother took this course with
  • you. And when she died--I believe broken-hearted--having never slackened
  • her unavailing search for your father, she left you, at two years old,
  • to grow to be blooming, beautiful, and happy, without the dark cloud
  • upon you of living in uncertainty whether your father soon wore his
  • heart out in prison, or wasted there through many lingering years.”
  • As he said the words he looked down, with an admiring pity, on the
  • flowing golden hair; as if he pictured to himself that it might have
  • been already tinged with grey.
  • “You know that your parents had no great possession, and that what
  • they had was secured to your mother and to you. There has been no new
  • discovery, of money, or of any other property; but--”
  • He felt his wrist held closer, and he stopped. The expression in the
  • forehead, which had so particularly attracted his notice, and which was
  • now immovable, had deepened into one of pain and horror.
  • “But he has been--been found. He is alive. Greatly changed, it is too
  • probable; almost a wreck, it is possible; though we will hope the best.
  • Still, alive. Your father has been taken to the house of an old servant
  • in Paris, and we are going there: I, to identify him if I can: you, to
  • restore him to life, love, duty, rest, comfort.”
  • A shiver ran through her frame, and from it through his. She said, in a
  • low, distinct, awe-stricken voice, as if she were saying it in a dream,
  • “I am going to see his Ghost! It will be his Ghost--not him!”
  • Mr. Lorry quietly chafed the hands that held his arm. “There, there,
  • there! See now, see now! The best and the worst are known to you, now.
  • You are well on your way to the poor wronged gentleman, and, with a fair
  • sea voyage, and a fair land journey, you will be soon at his dear side.”
  • She repeated in the same tone, sunk to a whisper, “I have been free, I
  • have been happy, yet his Ghost has never haunted me!”
  • “Only one thing more,” said Mr. Lorry, laying stress upon it as a
  • wholesome means of enforcing her attention: “he has been found under
  • another name; his own, long forgotten or long concealed. It would be
  • worse than useless now to inquire which; worse than useless to seek to
  • know whether he has been for years overlooked, or always designedly
  • held prisoner. It would be worse than useless now to make any inquiries,
  • because it would be dangerous. Better not to mention the subject,
  • anywhere or in any way, and to remove him--for a while at all
  • events--out of France. Even I, safe as an Englishman, and even
  • Tellson's, important as they are to French credit, avoid all naming of
  • the matter. I carry about me, not a scrap of writing openly referring
  • to it. This is a secret service altogether. My credentials, entries,
  • and memoranda, are all comprehended in the one line, 'Recalled to Life;'
  • which may mean anything. But what is the matter! She doesn't notice a
  • word! Miss Manette!”
  • Perfectly still and silent, and not even fallen back in her chair, she
  • sat under his hand, utterly insensible; with her eyes open and fixed
  • upon him, and with that last expression looking as if it were carved or
  • branded into her forehead. So close was her hold upon his arm, that he
  • feared to detach himself lest he should hurt her; therefore he called
  • out loudly for assistance without moving.
  • A wild-looking woman, whom even in his agitation, Mr. Lorry observed to
  • be all of a red colour, and to have red hair, and to be dressed in some
  • extraordinary tight-fitting fashion, and to have on her head a most
  • wonderful bonnet like a Grenadier wooden measure, and good measure too,
  • or a great Stilton cheese, came running into the room in advance of the
  • inn servants, and soon settled the question of his detachment from the
  • poor young lady, by laying a brawny hand upon his chest, and sending him
  • flying back against the nearest wall.
  • (“I really think this must be a man!” was Mr. Lorry's breathless
  • reflection, simultaneously with his coming against the wall.)
  • “Why, look at you all!” bawled this figure, addressing the inn servants.
  • “Why don't you go and fetch things, instead of standing there staring
  • at me? I am not so much to look at, am I? Why don't you go and fetch
  • things? I'll let you know, if you don't bring smelling-salts, cold
  • water, and vinegar, quick, I will.”
  • There was an immediate dispersal for these restoratives, and she
  • softly laid the patient on a sofa, and tended her with great skill and
  • gentleness: calling her “my precious!” and “my bird!” and spreading her
  • golden hair aside over her shoulders with great pride and care.
  • “And you in brown!” she said, indignantly turning to Mr. Lorry;
  • “couldn't you tell her what you had to tell her, without frightening her
  • to death? Look at her, with her pretty pale face and her cold hands. Do
  • you call _that_ being a Banker?”
  • Mr. Lorry was so exceedingly disconcerted by a question so hard to
  • answer, that he could only look on, at a distance, with much feebler
  • sympathy and humility, while the strong woman, having banished the inn
  • servants under the mysterious penalty of “letting them know” something
  • not mentioned if they stayed there, staring, recovered her charge by a
  • regular series of gradations, and coaxed her to lay her drooping head
  • upon her shoulder.
  • “I hope she will do well now,” said Mr. Lorry.
  • “No thanks to you in brown, if she does. My darling pretty!”
  • “I hope,” said Mr. Lorry, after another pause of feeble sympathy and
  • humility, “that you accompany Miss Manette to France?”
  • “A likely thing, too!” replied the strong woman. “If it was ever
  • intended that I should go across salt water, do you suppose Providence
  • would have cast my lot in an island?”
  • This being another question hard to answer, Mr. Jarvis Lorry withdrew to
  • consider it.
  • V. The Wine-shop
  • A large cask of wine had been dropped and broken, in the street. The
  • accident had happened in getting it out of a cart; the cask had tumbled
  • out with a run, the hoops had burst, and it lay on the stones just
  • outside the door of the wine-shop, shattered like a walnut-shell.
  • All the people within reach had suspended their business, or their
  • idleness, to run to the spot and drink the wine. The rough, irregular
  • stones of the street, pointing every way, and designed, one might have
  • thought, expressly to lame all living creatures that approached them,
  • had dammed it into little pools; these were surrounded, each by its own
  • jostling group or crowd, according to its size. Some men kneeled down,
  • made scoops of their two hands joined, and sipped, or tried to help
  • women, who bent over their shoulders, to sip, before the wine had all
  • run out between their fingers. Others, men and women, dipped in
  • the puddles with little mugs of mutilated earthenware, or even with
  • handkerchiefs from women's heads, which were squeezed dry into infants'
  • mouths; others made small mud-embankments, to stem the wine as it ran;
  • others, directed by lookers-on up at high windows, darted here and
  • there, to cut off little streams of wine that started away in new
  • directions; others devoted themselves to the sodden and lee-dyed
  • pieces of the cask, licking, and even champing the moister wine-rotted
  • fragments with eager relish. There was no drainage to carry off the
  • wine, and not only did it all get taken up, but so much mud got taken up
  • along with it, that there might have been a scavenger in the street,
  • if anybody acquainted with it could have believed in such a miraculous
  • presence.
  • A shrill sound of laughter and of amused voices--voices of men, women,
  • and children--resounded in the street while this wine game lasted. There
  • was little roughness in the sport, and much playfulness. There was a
  • special companionship in it, an observable inclination on the part
  • of every one to join some other one, which led, especially among the
  • luckier or lighter-hearted, to frolicsome embraces, drinking of healths,
  • shaking of hands, and even joining of hands and dancing, a dozen
  • together. When the wine was gone, and the places where it had been
  • most abundant were raked into a gridiron-pattern by fingers, these
  • demonstrations ceased, as suddenly as they had broken out. The man who
  • had left his saw sticking in the firewood he was cutting, set it in
  • motion again; the women who had left on a door-step the little pot of
  • hot ashes, at which she had been trying to soften the pain in her own
  • starved fingers and toes, or in those of her child, returned to it; men
  • with bare arms, matted locks, and cadaverous faces, who had emerged into
  • the winter light from cellars, moved away, to descend again; and a gloom
  • gathered on the scene that appeared more natural to it than sunshine.
  • The wine was red wine, and had stained the ground of the narrow street
  • in the suburb of Saint Antoine, in Paris, where it was spilled. It had
  • stained many hands, too, and many faces, and many naked feet, and many
  • wooden shoes. The hands of the man who sawed the wood, left red marks
  • on the billets; and the forehead of the woman who nursed her baby, was
  • stained with the stain of the old rag she wound about her head again.
  • Those who had been greedy with the staves of the cask, had acquired a
  • tigerish smear about the mouth; and one tall joker so besmirched, his
  • head more out of a long squalid bag of a nightcap than in it, scrawled
  • upon a wall with his finger dipped in muddy wine-lees--BLOOD.
  • The time was to come, when that wine too would be spilled on the
  • street-stones, and when the stain of it would be red upon many there.
  • And now that the cloud settled on Saint Antoine, which a momentary
  • gleam had driven from his sacred countenance, the darkness of it was
  • heavy--cold, dirt, sickness, ignorance, and want, were the lords in
  • waiting on the saintly presence--nobles of great power all of them;
  • but, most especially the last. Samples of a people that had undergone a
  • terrible grinding and regrinding in the mill, and certainly not in the
  • fabulous mill which ground old people young, shivered at every corner,
  • passed in and out at every doorway, looked from every window, fluttered
  • in every vestige of a garment that the wind shook. The mill which
  • had worked them down, was the mill that grinds young people old; the
  • children had ancient faces and grave voices; and upon them, and upon the
  • grown faces, and ploughed into every furrow of age and coming up afresh,
  • was the sigh, Hunger. It was prevalent everywhere. Hunger was pushed out
  • of the tall houses, in the wretched clothing that hung upon poles and
  • lines; Hunger was patched into them with straw and rag and wood and
  • paper; Hunger was repeated in every fragment of the small modicum of
  • firewood that the man sawed off; Hunger stared down from the smokeless
  • chimneys, and started up from the filthy street that had no offal,
  • among its refuse, of anything to eat. Hunger was the inscription on the
  • baker's shelves, written in every small loaf of his scanty stock of
  • bad bread; at the sausage-shop, in every dead-dog preparation that
  • was offered for sale. Hunger rattled its dry bones among the roasting
  • chestnuts in the turned cylinder; Hunger was shred into atomics in every
  • farthing porringer of husky chips of potato, fried with some reluctant
  • drops of oil.
  • Its abiding place was in all things fitted to it. A narrow winding
  • street, full of offence and stench, with other narrow winding streets
  • diverging, all peopled by rags and nightcaps, and all smelling of rags
  • and nightcaps, and all visible things with a brooding look upon them
  • that looked ill. In the hunted air of the people there was yet some
  • wild-beast thought of the possibility of turning at bay. Depressed and
  • slinking though they were, eyes of fire were not wanting among them; nor
  • compressed lips, white with what they suppressed; nor foreheads knitted
  • into the likeness of the gallows-rope they mused about enduring, or
  • inflicting. The trade signs (and they were almost as many as the shops)
  • were, all, grim illustrations of Want. The butcher and the porkman
  • painted up, only the leanest scrags of meat; the baker, the coarsest of
  • meagre loaves. The people rudely pictured as drinking in the wine-shops,
  • croaked over their scanty measures of thin wine and beer, and were
  • gloweringly confidential together. Nothing was represented in a
  • flourishing condition, save tools and weapons; but, the cutler's knives
  • and axes were sharp and bright, the smith's hammers were heavy, and the
  • gunmaker's stock was murderous. The crippling stones of the pavement,
  • with their many little reservoirs of mud and water, had no footways, but
  • broke off abruptly at the doors. The kennel, to make amends, ran down
  • the middle of the street--when it ran at all: which was only after heavy
  • rains, and then it ran, by many eccentric fits, into the houses. Across
  • the streets, at wide intervals, one clumsy lamp was slung by a rope and
  • pulley; at night, when the lamplighter had let these down, and lighted,
  • and hoisted them again, a feeble grove of dim wicks swung in a sickly
  • manner overhead, as if they were at sea. Indeed they were at sea, and
  • the ship and crew were in peril of tempest.
  • For, the time was to come, when the gaunt scarecrows of that region
  • should have watched the lamplighter, in their idleness and hunger, so
  • long, as to conceive the idea of improving on his method, and hauling
  • up men by those ropes and pulleys, to flare upon the darkness of their
  • condition. But, the time was not come yet; and every wind that blew over
  • France shook the rags of the scarecrows in vain, for the birds, fine of
  • song and feather, took no warning.
  • The wine-shop was a corner shop, better than most others in its
  • appearance and degree, and the master of the wine-shop had stood outside
  • it, in a yellow waistcoat and green breeches, looking on at the struggle
  • for the lost wine. “It's not my affair,” said he, with a final shrug
  • of the shoulders. “The people from the market did it. Let them bring
  • another.”
  • There, his eyes happening to catch the tall joker writing up his joke,
  • he called to him across the way:
  • “Say, then, my Gaspard, what do you do there?”
  • The fellow pointed to his joke with immense significance, as is often
  • the way with his tribe. It missed its mark, and completely failed, as is
  • often the way with his tribe too.
  • “What now? Are you a subject for the mad hospital?” said the wine-shop
  • keeper, crossing the road, and obliterating the jest with a handful of
  • mud, picked up for the purpose, and smeared over it. “Why do you write
  • in the public streets? Is there--tell me thou--is there no other place
  • to write such words in?”
  • In his expostulation he dropped his cleaner hand (perhaps accidentally,
  • perhaps not) upon the joker's heart. The joker rapped it with his
  • own, took a nimble spring upward, and came down in a fantastic dancing
  • attitude, with one of his stained shoes jerked off his foot into his
  • hand, and held out. A joker of an extremely, not to say wolfishly
  • practical character, he looked, under those circumstances.
  • “Put it on, put it on,” said the other. “Call wine, wine; and finish
  • there.” With that advice, he wiped his soiled hand upon the joker's
  • dress, such as it was--quite deliberately, as having dirtied the hand on
  • his account; and then recrossed the road and entered the wine-shop.
  • This wine-shop keeper was a bull-necked, martial-looking man of thirty,
  • and he should have been of a hot temperament, for, although it was a
  • bitter day, he wore no coat, but carried one slung over his shoulder.
  • His shirt-sleeves were rolled up, too, and his brown arms were bare to
  • the elbows. Neither did he wear anything more on his head than his own
  • crisply-curling short dark hair. He was a dark man altogether, with good
  • eyes and a good bold breadth between them. Good-humoured looking on
  • the whole, but implacable-looking, too; evidently a man of a strong
  • resolution and a set purpose; a man not desirable to be met, rushing
  • down a narrow pass with a gulf on either side, for nothing would turn
  • the man.
  • Madame Defarge, his wife, sat in the shop behind the counter as he
  • came in. Madame Defarge was a stout woman of about his own age, with
  • a watchful eye that seldom seemed to look at anything, a large hand
  • heavily ringed, a steady face, strong features, and great composure of
  • manner. There was a character about Madame Defarge, from which one might
  • have predicated that she did not often make mistakes against herself
  • in any of the reckonings over which she presided. Madame Defarge being
  • sensitive to cold, was wrapped in fur, and had a quantity of bright
  • shawl twined about her head, though not to the concealment of her large
  • earrings. Her knitting was before her, but she had laid it down to pick
  • her teeth with a toothpick. Thus engaged, with her right elbow supported
  • by her left hand, Madame Defarge said nothing when her lord came in, but
  • coughed just one grain of cough. This, in combination with the lifting
  • of her darkly defined eyebrows over her toothpick by the breadth of a
  • line, suggested to her husband that he would do well to look round the
  • shop among the customers, for any new customer who had dropped in while
  • he stepped over the way.
  • The wine-shop keeper accordingly rolled his eyes about, until they
  • rested upon an elderly gentleman and a young lady, who were seated in
  • a corner. Other company were there: two playing cards, two playing
  • dominoes, three standing by the counter lengthening out a short supply
  • of wine. As he passed behind the counter, he took notice that the
  • elderly gentleman said in a look to the young lady, “This is our man.”
  • “What the devil do _you_ do in that galley there?” said Monsieur Defarge
  • to himself; “I don't know you.”
  • But, he feigned not to notice the two strangers, and fell into discourse
  • with the triumvirate of customers who were drinking at the counter.
  • “How goes it, Jacques?” said one of these three to Monsieur Defarge. “Is
  • all the spilt wine swallowed?”
  • “Every drop, Jacques,” answered Monsieur Defarge.
  • When this interchange of Christian name was effected, Madame Defarge,
  • picking her teeth with her toothpick, coughed another grain of cough,
  • and raised her eyebrows by the breadth of another line.
  • “It is not often,” said the second of the three, addressing Monsieur
  • Defarge, “that many of these miserable beasts know the taste of wine, or
  • of anything but black bread and death. Is it not so, Jacques?”
  • “It is so, Jacques,” Monsieur Defarge returned.
  • At this second interchange of the Christian name, Madame Defarge, still
  • using her toothpick with profound composure, coughed another grain of
  • cough, and raised her eyebrows by the breadth of another line.
  • The last of the three now said his say, as he put down his empty
  • drinking vessel and smacked his lips.
  • “Ah! So much the worse! A bitter taste it is that such poor cattle
  • always have in their mouths, and hard lives they live, Jacques. Am I
  • right, Jacques?”
  • “You are right, Jacques,” was the response of Monsieur Defarge.
  • This third interchange of the Christian name was completed at the moment
  • when Madame Defarge put her toothpick by, kept her eyebrows up, and
  • slightly rustled in her seat.
  • “Hold then! True!” muttered her husband. “Gentlemen--my wife!”
  • The three customers pulled off their hats to Madame Defarge, with three
  • flourishes. She acknowledged their homage by bending her head, and
  • giving them a quick look. Then she glanced in a casual manner round the
  • wine-shop, took up her knitting with great apparent calmness and repose
  • of spirit, and became absorbed in it.
  • “Gentlemen,” said her husband, who had kept his bright eye observantly
  • upon her, “good day. The chamber, furnished bachelor-fashion, that you
  • wished to see, and were inquiring for when I stepped out, is on the
  • fifth floor. The doorway of the staircase gives on the little courtyard
  • close to the left here,” pointing with his hand, “near to the window of
  • my establishment. But, now that I remember, one of you has already been
  • there, and can show the way. Gentlemen, adieu!”
  • They paid for their wine, and left the place. The eyes of Monsieur
  • Defarge were studying his wife at her knitting when the elderly
  • gentleman advanced from his corner, and begged the favour of a word.
  • “Willingly, sir,” said Monsieur Defarge, and quietly stepped with him to
  • the door.
  • Their conference was very short, but very decided. Almost at the first
  • word, Monsieur Defarge started and became deeply attentive. It had
  • not lasted a minute, when he nodded and went out. The gentleman then
  • beckoned to the young lady, and they, too, went out. Madame Defarge
  • knitted with nimble fingers and steady eyebrows, and saw nothing.
  • Mr. Jarvis Lorry and Miss Manette, emerging from the wine-shop thus,
  • joined Monsieur Defarge in the doorway to which he had directed his own
  • company just before. It opened from a stinking little black courtyard,
  • and was the general public entrance to a great pile of houses, inhabited
  • by a great number of people. In the gloomy tile-paved entry to the
  • gloomy tile-paved staircase, Monsieur Defarge bent down on one knee
  • to the child of his old master, and put her hand to his lips. It was
  • a gentle action, but not at all gently done; a very remarkable
  • transformation had come over him in a few seconds. He had no good-humour
  • in his face, nor any openness of aspect left, but had become a secret,
  • angry, dangerous man.
  • “It is very high; it is a little difficult. Better to begin slowly.”
  • Thus, Monsieur Defarge, in a stern voice, to Mr. Lorry, as they began
  • ascending the stairs.
  • “Is he alone?” the latter whispered.
  • “Alone! God help him, who should be with him!” said the other, in the
  • same low voice.
  • “Is he always alone, then?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Of his own desire?”
  • “Of his own necessity. As he was, when I first saw him after they
  • found me and demanded to know if I would take him, and, at my peril be
  • discreet--as he was then, so he is now.”
  • “He is greatly changed?”
  • “Changed!”
  • The keeper of the wine-shop stopped to strike the wall with his hand,
  • and mutter a tremendous curse. No direct answer could have been half so
  • forcible. Mr. Lorry's spirits grew heavier and heavier, as he and his
  • two companions ascended higher and higher.
  • Such a staircase, with its accessories, in the older and more crowded
  • parts of Paris, would be bad enough now; but, at that time, it was vile
  • indeed to unaccustomed and unhardened senses. Every little habitation
  • within the great foul nest of one high building--that is to say,
  • the room or rooms within every door that opened on the general
  • staircase--left its own heap of refuse on its own landing, besides
  • flinging other refuse from its own windows. The uncontrollable and
  • hopeless mass of decomposition so engendered, would have polluted
  • the air, even if poverty and deprivation had not loaded it with their
  • intangible impurities; the two bad sources combined made it almost
  • insupportable. Through such an atmosphere, by a steep dark shaft of dirt
  • and poison, the way lay. Yielding to his own disturbance of mind, and to
  • his young companion's agitation, which became greater every instant, Mr.
  • Jarvis Lorry twice stopped to rest. Each of these stoppages was made
  • at a doleful grating, by which any languishing good airs that were left
  • uncorrupted, seemed to escape, and all spoilt and sickly vapours seemed
  • to crawl in. Through the rusted bars, tastes, rather than glimpses, were
  • caught of the jumbled neighbourhood; and nothing within range, nearer
  • or lower than the summits of the two great towers of Notre-Dame, had any
  • promise on it of healthy life or wholesome aspirations.
  • At last, the top of the staircase was gained, and they stopped for the
  • third time. There was yet an upper staircase, of a steeper inclination
  • and of contracted dimensions, to be ascended, before the garret story
  • was reached. The keeper of the wine-shop, always going a little in
  • advance, and always going on the side which Mr. Lorry took, as though he
  • dreaded to be asked any question by the young lady, turned himself about
  • here, and, carefully feeling in the pockets of the coat he carried over
  • his shoulder, took out a key.
  • “The door is locked then, my friend?” said Mr. Lorry, surprised.
  • “Ay. Yes,” was the grim reply of Monsieur Defarge.
  • “You think it necessary to keep the unfortunate gentleman so retired?”
  • “I think it necessary to turn the key.” Monsieur Defarge whispered it
  • closer in his ear, and frowned heavily.
  • “Why?”
  • “Why! Because he has lived so long, locked up, that he would be
  • frightened--rave--tear himself to pieces--die--come to I know not what
  • harm--if his door was left open.”
  • “Is it possible!” exclaimed Mr. Lorry.
  • “Is it possible!” repeated Defarge, bitterly. “Yes. And a beautiful
  • world we live in, when it _is_ possible, and when many other such things
  • are possible, and not only possible, but done--done, see you!--under
  • that sky there, every day. Long live the Devil. Let us go on.”
  • This dialogue had been held in so very low a whisper, that not a word
  • of it had reached the young lady's ears. But, by this time she trembled
  • under such strong emotion, and her face expressed such deep anxiety,
  • and, above all, such dread and terror, that Mr. Lorry felt it incumbent
  • on him to speak a word or two of reassurance.
  • “Courage, dear miss! Courage! Business! The worst will be over in a
  • moment; it is but passing the room-door, and the worst is over. Then,
  • all the good you bring to him, all the relief, all the happiness you
  • bring to him, begin. Let our good friend here, assist you on that side.
  • That's well, friend Defarge. Come, now. Business, business!”
  • They went up slowly and softly. The staircase was short, and they were
  • soon at the top. There, as it had an abrupt turn in it, they came all at
  • once in sight of three men, whose heads were bent down close together at
  • the side of a door, and who were intently looking into the room to which
  • the door belonged, through some chinks or holes in the wall. On hearing
  • footsteps close at hand, these three turned, and rose, and showed
  • themselves to be the three of one name who had been drinking in the
  • wine-shop.
  • “I forgot them in the surprise of your visit,” explained Monsieur
  • Defarge. “Leave us, good boys; we have business here.”
  • The three glided by, and went silently down.
  • There appearing to be no other door on that floor, and the keeper of
  • the wine-shop going straight to this one when they were left alone, Mr.
  • Lorry asked him in a whisper, with a little anger:
  • “Do you make a show of Monsieur Manette?”
  • “I show him, in the way you have seen, to a chosen few.”
  • “Is that well?”
  • “_I_ think it is well.”
  • “Who are the few? How do you choose them?”
  • “I choose them as real men, of my name--Jacques is my name--to whom the
  • sight is likely to do good. Enough; you are English; that is another
  • thing. Stay there, if you please, a little moment.”
  • With an admonitory gesture to keep them back, he stooped, and looked in
  • through the crevice in the wall. Soon raising his head again, he struck
  • twice or thrice upon the door--evidently with no other object than to
  • make a noise there. With the same intention, he drew the key across it,
  • three or four times, before he put it clumsily into the lock, and turned
  • it as heavily as he could.
  • The door slowly opened inward under his hand, and he looked into the
  • room and said something. A faint voice answered something. Little more
  • than a single syllable could have been spoken on either side.
  • He looked back over his shoulder, and beckoned them to enter. Mr. Lorry
  • got his arm securely round the daughter's waist, and held her; for he
  • felt that she was sinking.
  • “A-a-a-business, business!” he urged, with a moisture that was not of
  • business shining on his cheek. “Come in, come in!”
  • “I am afraid of it,” she answered, shuddering.
  • “Of it? What?”
  • “I mean of him. Of my father.”
  • Rendered in a manner desperate, by her state and by the beckoning of
  • their conductor, he drew over his neck the arm that shook upon his
  • shoulder, lifted her a little, and hurried her into the room. He sat her
  • down just within the door, and held her, clinging to him.
  • Defarge drew out the key, closed the door, locked it on the inside,
  • took out the key again, and held it in his hand. All this he did,
  • methodically, and with as loud and harsh an accompaniment of noise as he
  • could make. Finally, he walked across the room with a measured tread to
  • where the window was. He stopped there, and faced round.
  • The garret, built to be a depository for firewood and the like, was dim
  • and dark: for, the window of dormer shape, was in truth a door in the
  • roof, with a little crane over it for the hoisting up of stores from
  • the street: unglazed, and closing up the middle in two pieces, like any
  • other door of French construction. To exclude the cold, one half of this
  • door was fast closed, and the other was opened but a very little way.
  • Such a scanty portion of light was admitted through these means, that it
  • was difficult, on first coming in, to see anything; and long habit
  • alone could have slowly formed in any one, the ability to do any work
  • requiring nicety in such obscurity. Yet, work of that kind was being
  • done in the garret; for, with his back towards the door, and his face
  • towards the window where the keeper of the wine-shop stood looking at
  • him, a white-haired man sat on a low bench, stooping forward and very
  • busy, making shoes.
  • VI. The Shoemaker
  • “Good day!” said Monsieur Defarge, looking down at the white head that
  • bent low over the shoemaking.
  • It was raised for a moment, and a very faint voice responded to the
  • salutation, as if it were at a distance:
  • “Good day!”
  • “You are still hard at work, I see?”
  • After a long silence, the head was lifted for another moment, and the
  • voice replied, “Yes--I am working.” This time, a pair of haggard eyes
  • had looked at the questioner, before the face had dropped again.
  • The faintness of the voice was pitiable and dreadful. It was not the
  • faintness of physical weakness, though confinement and hard fare no
  • doubt had their part in it. Its deplorable peculiarity was, that it was
  • the faintness of solitude and disuse. It was like the last feeble echo
  • of a sound made long and long ago. So entirely had it lost the life and
  • resonance of the human voice, that it affected the senses like a once
  • beautiful colour faded away into a poor weak stain. So sunken and
  • suppressed it was, that it was like a voice underground. So expressive
  • it was, of a hopeless and lost creature, that a famished traveller,
  • wearied out by lonely wandering in a wilderness, would have remembered
  • home and friends in such a tone before lying down to die.
  • Some minutes of silent work had passed: and the haggard eyes had looked
  • up again: not with any interest or curiosity, but with a dull mechanical
  • perception, beforehand, that the spot where the only visitor they were
  • aware of had stood, was not yet empty.
  • “I want,” said Defarge, who had not removed his gaze from the shoemaker,
  • “to let in a little more light here. You can bear a little more?”
  • The shoemaker stopped his work; looked with a vacant air of listening,
  • at the floor on one side of him; then similarly, at the floor on the
  • other side of him; then, upward at the speaker.
  • “What did you say?”
  • “You can bear a little more light?”
  • “I must bear it, if you let it in.” (Laying the palest shadow of a
  • stress upon the second word.)
  • The opened half-door was opened a little further, and secured at that
  • angle for the time. A broad ray of light fell into the garret, and
  • showed the workman with an unfinished shoe upon his lap, pausing in his
  • labour. His few common tools and various scraps of leather were at his
  • feet and on his bench. He had a white beard, raggedly cut, but not very
  • long, a hollow face, and exceedingly bright eyes. The hollowness and
  • thinness of his face would have caused them to look large, under his yet
  • dark eyebrows and his confused white hair, though they had been really
  • otherwise; but, they were naturally large, and looked unnaturally so.
  • His yellow rags of shirt lay open at the throat, and showed his body
  • to be withered and worn. He, and his old canvas frock, and his loose
  • stockings, and all his poor tatters of clothes, had, in a long seclusion
  • from direct light and air, faded down to such a dull uniformity of
  • parchment-yellow, that it would have been hard to say which was which.
  • He had put up a hand between his eyes and the light, and the very bones
  • of it seemed transparent. So he sat, with a steadfastly vacant gaze,
  • pausing in his work. He never looked at the figure before him, without
  • first looking down on this side of himself, then on that, as if he had
  • lost the habit of associating place with sound; he never spoke, without
  • first wandering in this manner, and forgetting to speak.
  • “Are you going to finish that pair of shoes to-day?” asked Defarge,
  • motioning to Mr. Lorry to come forward.
  • “What did you say?”
  • “Do you mean to finish that pair of shoes to-day?”
  • “I can't say that I mean to. I suppose so. I don't know.”
  • But, the question reminded him of his work, and he bent over it again.
  • Mr. Lorry came silently forward, leaving the daughter by the door. When
  • he had stood, for a minute or two, by the side of Defarge, the shoemaker
  • looked up. He showed no surprise at seeing another figure, but the
  • unsteady fingers of one of his hands strayed to his lips as he looked at
  • it (his lips and his nails were of the same pale lead-colour), and then
  • the hand dropped to his work, and he once more bent over the shoe. The
  • look and the action had occupied but an instant.
  • “You have a visitor, you see,” said Monsieur Defarge.
  • “What did you say?”
  • “Here is a visitor.”
  • The shoemaker looked up as before, but without removing a hand from his
  • work.
  • “Come!” said Defarge. “Here is monsieur, who knows a well-made shoe when
  • he sees one. Show him that shoe you are working at. Take it, monsieur.”
  • Mr. Lorry took it in his hand.
  • “Tell monsieur what kind of shoe it is, and the maker's name.”
  • There was a longer pause than usual, before the shoemaker replied:
  • “I forget what it was you asked me. What did you say?”
  • “I said, couldn't you describe the kind of shoe, for monsieur's
  • information?”
  • “It is a lady's shoe. It is a young lady's walking-shoe. It is in the
  • present mode. I never saw the mode. I have had a pattern in my hand.” He
  • glanced at the shoe with some little passing touch of pride.
  • “And the maker's name?” said Defarge.
  • Now that he had no work to hold, he laid the knuckles of the right hand
  • in the hollow of the left, and then the knuckles of the left hand in the
  • hollow of the right, and then passed a hand across his bearded chin, and
  • so on in regular changes, without a moment's intermission. The task of
  • recalling him from the vagrancy into which he always sank when he
  • had spoken, was like recalling some very weak person from a swoon, or
  • endeavouring, in the hope of some disclosure, to stay the spirit of a
  • fast-dying man.
  • “Did you ask me for my name?”
  • “Assuredly I did.”
  • “One Hundred and Five, North Tower.”
  • “Is that all?”
  • “One Hundred and Five, North Tower.”
  • With a weary sound that was not a sigh, nor a groan, he bent to work
  • again, until the silence was again broken.
  • “You are not a shoemaker by trade?” said Mr. Lorry, looking steadfastly
  • at him.
  • His haggard eyes turned to Defarge as if he would have transferred the
  • question to him: but as no help came from that quarter, they turned back
  • on the questioner when they had sought the ground.
  • “I am not a shoemaker by trade? No, I was not a shoemaker by trade. I-I
  • learnt it here. I taught myself. I asked leave to--”
  • He lapsed away, even for minutes, ringing those measured changes on his
  • hands the whole time. His eyes came slowly back, at last, to the face
  • from which they had wandered; when they rested on it, he started, and
  • resumed, in the manner of a sleeper that moment awake, reverting to a
  • subject of last night.
  • “I asked leave to teach myself, and I got it with much difficulty after
  • a long while, and I have made shoes ever since.”
  • As he held out his hand for the shoe that had been taken from him, Mr.
  • Lorry said, still looking steadfastly in his face:
  • “Monsieur Manette, do you remember nothing of me?”
  • The shoe dropped to the ground, and he sat looking fixedly at the
  • questioner.
  • “Monsieur Manette”; Mr. Lorry laid his hand upon Defarge's arm; “do you
  • remember nothing of this man? Look at him. Look at me. Is there no old
  • banker, no old business, no old servant, no old time, rising in your
  • mind, Monsieur Manette?”
  • As the captive of many years sat looking fixedly, by turns, at Mr.
  • Lorry and at Defarge, some long obliterated marks of an actively intent
  • intelligence in the middle of the forehead, gradually forced themselves
  • through the black mist that had fallen on him. They were overclouded
  • again, they were fainter, they were gone; but they had been there. And
  • so exactly was the expression repeated on the fair young face of her who
  • had crept along the wall to a point where she could see him, and where
  • she now stood looking at him, with hands which at first had been only
  • raised in frightened compassion, if not even to keep him off and
  • shut out the sight of him, but which were now extending towards him,
  • trembling with eagerness to lay the spectral face upon her warm young
  • breast, and love it back to life and hope--so exactly was the expression
  • repeated (though in stronger characters) on her fair young face, that it
  • looked as though it had passed like a moving light, from him to her.
  • Darkness had fallen on him in its place. He looked at the two, less and
  • less attentively, and his eyes in gloomy abstraction sought the ground
  • and looked about him in the old way. Finally, with a deep long sigh, he
  • took the shoe up, and resumed his work.
  • “Have you recognised him, monsieur?” asked Defarge in a whisper.
  • “Yes; for a moment. At first I thought it quite hopeless, but I have
  • unquestionably seen, for a single moment, the face that I once knew so
  • well. Hush! Let us draw further back. Hush!”
  • She had moved from the wall of the garret, very near to the bench on
  • which he sat. There was something awful in his unconsciousness of the
  • figure that could have put out its hand and touched him as he stooped
  • over his labour.
  • Not a word was spoken, not a sound was made. She stood, like a spirit,
  • beside him, and he bent over his work.
  • It happened, at length, that he had occasion to change the instrument
  • in his hand, for his shoemaker's knife. It lay on that side of him
  • which was not the side on which she stood. He had taken it up, and was
  • stooping to work again, when his eyes caught the skirt of her dress. He
  • raised them, and saw her face. The two spectators started forward,
  • but she stayed them with a motion of her hand. She had no fear of his
  • striking at her with the knife, though they had.
  • He stared at her with a fearful look, and after a while his lips began
  • to form some words, though no sound proceeded from them. By degrees, in
  • the pauses of his quick and laboured breathing, he was heard to say:
  • “What is this?”
  • With the tears streaming down her face, she put her two hands to her
  • lips, and kissed them to him; then clasped them on her breast, as if she
  • laid his ruined head there.
  • “You are not the gaoler's daughter?”
  • She sighed “No.”
  • “Who are you?”
  • Not yet trusting the tones of her voice, she sat down on the bench
  • beside him. He recoiled, but she laid her hand upon his arm. A strange
  • thrill struck him when she did so, and visibly passed over his frame; he
  • laid the knife down softly, as he sat staring at her.
  • Her golden hair, which she wore in long curls, had been hurriedly pushed
  • aside, and fell down over her neck. Advancing his hand by little and
  • little, he took it up and looked at it. In the midst of the action
  • he went astray, and, with another deep sigh, fell to work at his
  • shoemaking.
  • But not for long. Releasing his arm, she laid her hand upon his
  • shoulder. After looking doubtfully at it, two or three times, as if to
  • be sure that it was really there, he laid down his work, put his hand
  • to his neck, and took off a blackened string with a scrap of folded rag
  • attached to it. He opened this, carefully, on his knee, and it contained
  • a very little quantity of hair: not more than one or two long golden
  • hairs, which he had, in some old day, wound off upon his finger.
  • He took her hair into his hand again, and looked closely at it. “It is
  • the same. How can it be! When was it! How was it!”
  • As the concentrated expression returned to his forehead, he seemed to
  • become conscious that it was in hers too. He turned her full to the
  • light, and looked at her.
  • “She had laid her head upon my shoulder, that night when I was summoned
  • out--she had a fear of my going, though I had none--and when I was
  • brought to the North Tower they found these upon my sleeve. 'You will
  • leave me them? They can never help me to escape in the body, though they
  • may in the spirit.' Those were the words I said. I remember them very
  • well.”
  • He formed this speech with his lips many times before he could utter it.
  • But when he did find spoken words for it, they came to him coherently,
  • though slowly.
  • “How was this?--_Was it you_?”
  • Once more, the two spectators started, as he turned upon her with a
  • frightful suddenness. But she sat perfectly still in his grasp, and only
  • said, in a low voice, “I entreat you, good gentlemen, do not come near
  • us, do not speak, do not move!”
  • “Hark!” he exclaimed. “Whose voice was that?”
  • His hands released her as he uttered this cry, and went up to his white
  • hair, which they tore in a frenzy. It died out, as everything but his
  • shoemaking did die out of him, and he refolded his little packet and
  • tried to secure it in his breast; but he still looked at her, and
  • gloomily shook his head.
  • “No, no, no; you are too young, too blooming. It can't be. See what the
  • prisoner is. These are not the hands she knew, this is not the face
  • she knew, this is not a voice she ever heard. No, no. She was--and He
  • was--before the slow years of the North Tower--ages ago. What is your
  • name, my gentle angel?”
  • Hailing his softened tone and manner, his daughter fell upon her knees
  • before him, with her appealing hands upon his breast.
  • “O, sir, at another time you shall know my name, and who my mother was,
  • and who my father, and how I never knew their hard, hard history. But I
  • cannot tell you at this time, and I cannot tell you here. All that I may
  • tell you, here and now, is, that I pray to you to touch me and to bless
  • me. Kiss me, kiss me! O my dear, my dear!”
  • His cold white head mingled with her radiant hair, which warmed and
  • lighted it as though it were the light of Freedom shining on him.
  • “If you hear in my voice--I don't know that it is so, but I hope it
  • is--if you hear in my voice any resemblance to a voice that once was
  • sweet music in your ears, weep for it, weep for it! If you touch, in
  • touching my hair, anything that recalls a beloved head that lay on your
  • breast when you were young and free, weep for it, weep for it! If, when
  • I hint to you of a Home that is before us, where I will be true to you
  • with all my duty and with all my faithful service, I bring back the
  • remembrance of a Home long desolate, while your poor heart pined away,
  • weep for it, weep for it!”
  • She held him closer round the neck, and rocked him on her breast like a
  • child.
  • “If, when I tell you, dearest dear, that your agony is over, and that I
  • have come here to take you from it, and that we go to England to be at
  • peace and at rest, I cause you to think of your useful life laid waste,
  • and of our native France so wicked to you, weep for it, weep for it! And
  • if, when I shall tell you of my name, and of my father who is living,
  • and of my mother who is dead, you learn that I have to kneel to my
  • honoured father, and implore his pardon for having never for his sake
  • striven all day and lain awake and wept all night, because the love of
  • my poor mother hid his torture from me, weep for it, weep for it! Weep
  • for her, then, and for me! Good gentlemen, thank God! I feel his sacred
  • tears upon my face, and his sobs strike against my heart. O, see! Thank
  • God for us, thank God!”
  • He had sunk in her arms, and his face dropped on her breast: a sight so
  • touching, yet so terrible in the tremendous wrong and suffering which
  • had gone before it, that the two beholders covered their faces.
  • When the quiet of the garret had been long undisturbed, and his heaving
  • breast and shaken form had long yielded to the calm that must follow all
  • storms--emblem to humanity, of the rest and silence into which the storm
  • called Life must hush at last--they came forward to raise the father and
  • daughter from the ground. He had gradually dropped to the floor, and lay
  • there in a lethargy, worn out. She had nestled down with him, that his
  • head might lie upon her arm; and her hair drooping over him curtained
  • him from the light.
  • “If, without disturbing him,” she said, raising her hand to Mr. Lorry as
  • he stooped over them, after repeated blowings of his nose, “all could be
  • arranged for our leaving Paris at once, so that, from the very door, he
  • could be taken away--”
  • “But, consider. Is he fit for the journey?” asked Mr. Lorry.
  • “More fit for that, I think, than to remain in this city, so dreadful to
  • him.”
  • “It is true,” said Defarge, who was kneeling to look on and hear. “More
  • than that; Monsieur Manette is, for all reasons, best out of France.
  • Say, shall I hire a carriage and post-horses?”
  • “That's business,” said Mr. Lorry, resuming on the shortest notice his
  • methodical manners; “and if business is to be done, I had better do it.”
  • “Then be so kind,” urged Miss Manette, “as to leave us here. You see how
  • composed he has become, and you cannot be afraid to leave him with me
  • now. Why should you be? If you will lock the door to secure us from
  • interruption, I do not doubt that you will find him, when you come back,
  • as quiet as you leave him. In any case, I will take care of him until
  • you return, and then we will remove him straight.”
  • Both Mr. Lorry and Defarge were rather disinclined to this course, and
  • in favour of one of them remaining. But, as there were not only carriage
  • and horses to be seen to, but travelling papers; and as time pressed,
  • for the day was drawing to an end, it came at last to their hastily
  • dividing the business that was necessary to be done, and hurrying away
  • to do it.
  • Then, as the darkness closed in, the daughter laid her head down on the
  • hard ground close at the father's side, and watched him. The darkness
  • deepened and deepened, and they both lay quiet, until a light gleamed
  • through the chinks in the wall.
  • Mr. Lorry and Monsieur Defarge had made all ready for the journey, and
  • had brought with them, besides travelling cloaks and wrappers, bread and
  • meat, wine, and hot coffee. Monsieur Defarge put this provender, and the
  • lamp he carried, on the shoemaker's bench (there was nothing else in the
  • garret but a pallet bed), and he and Mr. Lorry roused the captive, and
  • assisted him to his feet.
  • No human intelligence could have read the mysteries of his mind, in
  • the scared blank wonder of his face. Whether he knew what had happened,
  • whether he recollected what they had said to him, whether he knew that
  • he was free, were questions which no sagacity could have solved. They
  • tried speaking to him; but, he was so confused, and so very slow to
  • answer, that they took fright at his bewilderment, and agreed for
  • the time to tamper with him no more. He had a wild, lost manner of
  • occasionally clasping his head in his hands, that had not been seen
  • in him before; yet, he had some pleasure in the mere sound of his
  • daughter's voice, and invariably turned to it when she spoke.
  • In the submissive way of one long accustomed to obey under coercion, he
  • ate and drank what they gave him to eat and drink, and put on the cloak
  • and other wrappings, that they gave him to wear. He readily responded to
  • his daughter's drawing her arm through his, and took--and kept--her hand
  • in both his own.
  • They began to descend; Monsieur Defarge going first with the lamp, Mr.
  • Lorry closing the little procession. They had not traversed many steps
  • of the long main staircase when he stopped, and stared at the roof and
  • round at the walls.
  • “You remember the place, my father? You remember coming up here?”
  • “What did you say?”
  • But, before she could repeat the question, he murmured an answer as if
  • she had repeated it.
  • “Remember? No, I don't remember. It was so very long ago.”
  • That he had no recollection whatever of his having been brought from his
  • prison to that house, was apparent to them. They heard him mutter,
  • “One Hundred and Five, North Tower;” and when he looked about him, it
  • evidently was for the strong fortress-walls which had long encompassed
  • him. On their reaching the courtyard he instinctively altered his
  • tread, as being in expectation of a drawbridge; and when there was
  • no drawbridge, and he saw the carriage waiting in the open street, he
  • dropped his daughter's hand and clasped his head again.
  • No crowd was about the door; no people were discernible at any of the
  • many windows; not even a chance passerby was in the street. An unnatural
  • silence and desertion reigned there. Only one soul was to be seen, and
  • that was Madame Defarge--who leaned against the door-post, knitting, and
  • saw nothing.
  • The prisoner had got into a coach, and his daughter had followed
  • him, when Mr. Lorry's feet were arrested on the step by his asking,
  • miserably, for his shoemaking tools and the unfinished shoes. Madame
  • Defarge immediately called to her husband that she would get them, and
  • went, knitting, out of the lamplight, through the courtyard. She quickly
  • brought them down and handed them in;--and immediately afterwards leaned
  • against the door-post, knitting, and saw nothing.
  • Defarge got upon the box, and gave the word “To the Barrier!” The
  • postilion cracked his whip, and they clattered away under the feeble
  • over-swinging lamps.
  • Under the over-swinging lamps--swinging ever brighter in the better
  • streets, and ever dimmer in the worse--and by lighted shops, gay crowds,
  • illuminated coffee-houses, and theatre-doors, to one of the city
  • gates. Soldiers with lanterns, at the guard-house there. “Your papers,
  • travellers!” “See here then, Monsieur the Officer,” said Defarge,
  • getting down, and taking him gravely apart, “these are the papers of
  • monsieur inside, with the white head. They were consigned to me, with
  • him, at the--” He dropped his voice, there was a flutter among the
  • military lanterns, and one of them being handed into the coach by an arm
  • in uniform, the eyes connected with the arm looked, not an every day
  • or an every night look, at monsieur with the white head. “It is well.
  • Forward!” from the uniform. “Adieu!” from Defarge. And so, under a short
  • grove of feebler and feebler over-swinging lamps, out under the great
  • grove of stars.
  • Beneath that arch of unmoved and eternal lights; some, so remote from
  • this little earth that the learned tell us it is doubtful whether their
  • rays have even yet discovered it, as a point in space where anything
  • is suffered or done: the shadows of the night were broad and black.
  • All through the cold and restless interval, until dawn, they once more
  • whispered in the ears of Mr. Jarvis Lorry--sitting opposite the buried
  • man who had been dug out, and wondering what subtle powers were for ever
  • lost to him, and what were capable of restoration--the old inquiry:
  • “I hope you care to be recalled to life?”
  • And the old answer:
  • “I can't say.”
  • The end of the first book.
  • Book the Second--the Golden Thread
  • I. Five Years Later
  • Tellson's Bank by Temple Bar was an old-fashioned place, even in the
  • year one thousand seven hundred and eighty. It was very small, very
  • dark, very ugly, very incommodious. It was an old-fashioned place,
  • moreover, in the moral attribute that the partners in the House were
  • proud of its smallness, proud of its darkness, proud of its ugliness,
  • proud of its incommodiousness. They were even boastful of its eminence
  • in those particulars, and were fired by an express conviction that, if
  • it were less objectionable, it would be less respectable. This was
  • no passive belief, but an active weapon which they flashed at more
  • convenient places of business. Tellson's (they said) wanted
  • no elbow-room, Tellson's wanted no light, Tellson's wanted no
  • embellishment. Noakes and Co.'s might, or Snooks Brothers' might; but
  • Tellson's, thank Heaven--!
  • Any one of these partners would have disinherited his son on the
  • question of rebuilding Tellson's. In this respect the House was much
  • on a par with the Country; which did very often disinherit its sons for
  • suggesting improvements in laws and customs that had long been highly
  • objectionable, but were only the more respectable.
  • Thus it had come to pass, that Tellson's was the triumphant perfection
  • of inconvenience. After bursting open a door of idiotic obstinacy with
  • a weak rattle in its throat, you fell into Tellson's down two steps,
  • and came to your senses in a miserable little shop, with two little
  • counters, where the oldest of men made your cheque shake as if the
  • wind rustled it, while they examined the signature by the dingiest of
  • windows, which were always under a shower-bath of mud from Fleet-street,
  • and which were made the dingier by their own iron bars proper, and the
  • heavy shadow of Temple Bar. If your business necessitated your seeing
  • “the House,” you were put into a species of Condemned Hold at the back,
  • where you meditated on a misspent life, until the House came with its
  • hands in its pockets, and you could hardly blink at it in the dismal
  • twilight. Your money came out of, or went into, wormy old wooden
  • drawers, particles of which flew up your nose and down your throat when
  • they were opened and shut. Your bank-notes had a musty odour, as if they
  • were fast decomposing into rags again. Your plate was stowed away among
  • the neighbouring cesspools, and evil communications corrupted its good
  • polish in a day or two. Your deeds got into extemporised strong-rooms
  • made of kitchens and sculleries, and fretted all the fat out of their
  • parchments into the banking-house air. Your lighter boxes of family
  • papers went up-stairs into a Barmecide room, that always had a great
  • dining-table in it and never had a dinner, and where, even in the year
  • one thousand seven hundred and eighty, the first letters written to you
  • by your old love, or by your little children, were but newly released
  • from the horror of being ogled through the windows, by the heads
  • exposed on Temple Bar with an insensate brutality and ferocity worthy of
  • Abyssinia or Ashantee.
  • But indeed, at that time, putting to death was a recipe much in vogue
  • with all trades and professions, and not least of all with Tellson's.
  • Death is Nature's remedy for all things, and why not Legislation's?
  • Accordingly, the forger was put to Death; the utterer of a bad note
  • was put to Death; the unlawful opener of a letter was put to Death; the
  • purloiner of forty shillings and sixpence was put to Death; the holder
  • of a horse at Tellson's door, who made off with it, was put to
  • Death; the coiner of a bad shilling was put to Death; the sounders of
  • three-fourths of the notes in the whole gamut of Crime, were put to
  • Death. Not that it did the least good in the way of prevention--it
  • might almost have been worth remarking that the fact was exactly the
  • reverse--but, it cleared off (as to this world) the trouble of each
  • particular case, and left nothing else connected with it to be looked
  • after. Thus, Tellson's, in its day, like greater places of business,
  • its contemporaries, had taken so many lives, that, if the heads laid
  • low before it had been ranged on Temple Bar instead of being privately
  • disposed of, they would probably have excluded what little light the
  • ground floor had, in a rather significant manner.
  • Cramped in all kinds of dim cupboards and hutches at Tellson's, the
  • oldest of men carried on the business gravely. When they took a young
  • man into Tellson's London house, they hid him somewhere till he was
  • old. They kept him in a dark place, like a cheese, until he had the full
  • Tellson flavour and blue-mould upon him. Then only was he permitted to
  • be seen, spectacularly poring over large books, and casting his breeches
  • and gaiters into the general weight of the establishment.
  • Outside Tellson's--never by any means in it, unless called in--was an
  • odd-job-man, an occasional porter and messenger, who served as the live
  • sign of the house. He was never absent during business hours, unless
  • upon an errand, and then he was represented by his son: a grisly urchin
  • of twelve, who was his express image. People understood that Tellson's,
  • in a stately way, tolerated the odd-job-man. The house had always
  • tolerated some person in that capacity, and time and tide had drifted
  • this person to the post. His surname was Cruncher, and on the youthful
  • occasion of his renouncing by proxy the works of darkness, in the
  • easterly parish church of Hounsditch, he had received the added
  • appellation of Jerry.
  • The scene was Mr. Cruncher's private lodging in Hanging-sword-alley,
  • Whitefriars: the time, half-past seven of the clock on a windy March
  • morning, Anno Domini seventeen hundred and eighty. (Mr. Cruncher himself
  • always spoke of the year of our Lord as Anna Dominoes: apparently under
  • the impression that the Christian era dated from the invention of a
  • popular game, by a lady who had bestowed her name upon it.)
  • Mr. Cruncher's apartments were not in a savoury neighbourhood, and were
  • but two in number, even if a closet with a single pane of glass in it
  • might be counted as one. But they were very decently kept. Early as
  • it was, on the windy March morning, the room in which he lay abed was
  • already scrubbed throughout; and between the cups and saucers arranged
  • for breakfast, and the lumbering deal table, a very clean white cloth
  • was spread.
  • Mr. Cruncher reposed under a patchwork counterpane, like a Harlequin
  • at home. At first, he slept heavily, but, by degrees, began to roll
  • and surge in bed, until he rose above the surface, with his spiky hair
  • looking as if it must tear the sheets to ribbons. At which juncture, he
  • exclaimed, in a voice of dire exasperation:
  • “Bust me, if she ain't at it agin!”
  • A woman of orderly and industrious appearance rose from her knees in a
  • corner, with sufficient haste and trepidation to show that she was the
  • person referred to.
  • “What!” said Mr. Cruncher, looking out of bed for a boot. “You're at it
  • agin, are you?”
  • After hailing the morn with this second salutation, he threw a boot at
  • the woman as a third. It was a very muddy boot, and may introduce the
  • odd circumstance connected with Mr. Cruncher's domestic economy, that,
  • whereas he often came home after banking hours with clean boots, he
  • often got up next morning to find the same boots covered with clay.
  • “What,” said Mr. Cruncher, varying his apostrophe after missing his
  • mark--“what are you up to, Aggerawayter?”
  • “I was only saying my prayers.”
  • “Saying your prayers! You're a nice woman! What do you mean by flopping
  • yourself down and praying agin me?”
  • “I was not praying against you; I was praying for you.”
  • “You weren't. And if you were, I won't be took the liberty with. Here!
  • your mother's a nice woman, young Jerry, going a praying agin your
  • father's prosperity. You've got a dutiful mother, you have, my son.
  • You've got a religious mother, you have, my boy: going and flopping
  • herself down, and praying that the bread-and-butter may be snatched out
  • of the mouth of her only child.”
  • Master Cruncher (who was in his shirt) took this very ill, and, turning
  • to his mother, strongly deprecated any praying away of his personal
  • board.
  • “And what do you suppose, you conceited female,” said Mr. Cruncher, with
  • unconscious inconsistency, “that the worth of _your_ prayers may be?
  • Name the price that you put _your_ prayers at!”
  • “They only come from the heart, Jerry. They are worth no more than
  • that.”
  • “Worth no more than that,” repeated Mr. Cruncher. “They ain't worth
  • much, then. Whether or no, I won't be prayed agin, I tell you. I can't
  • afford it. I'm not a going to be made unlucky by _your_ sneaking. If
  • you must go flopping yourself down, flop in favour of your husband and
  • child, and not in opposition to 'em. If I had had any but a unnat'ral
  • wife, and this poor boy had had any but a unnat'ral mother, I might
  • have made some money last week instead of being counter-prayed and
  • countermined and religiously circumwented into the worst of luck.
  • B-u-u-ust me!” said Mr. Cruncher, who all this time had been putting
  • on his clothes, “if I ain't, what with piety and one blowed thing and
  • another, been choused this last week into as bad luck as ever a poor
  • devil of a honest tradesman met with! Young Jerry, dress yourself, my
  • boy, and while I clean my boots keep a eye upon your mother now and
  • then, and if you see any signs of more flopping, give me a call. For, I
  • tell you,” here he addressed his wife once more, “I won't be gone agin,
  • in this manner. I am as rickety as a hackney-coach, I'm as sleepy as
  • laudanum, my lines is strained to that degree that I shouldn't know, if
  • it wasn't for the pain in 'em, which was me and which somebody else, yet
  • I'm none the better for it in pocket; and it's my suspicion that you've
  • been at it from morning to night to prevent me from being the better for
  • it in pocket, and I won't put up with it, Aggerawayter, and what do you
  • say now!”
  • Growling, in addition, such phrases as “Ah! yes! You're religious, too.
  • You wouldn't put yourself in opposition to the interests of your husband
  • and child, would you? Not you!” and throwing off other sarcastic sparks
  • from the whirling grindstone of his indignation, Mr. Cruncher betook
  • himself to his boot-cleaning and his general preparation for business.
  • In the meantime, his son, whose head was garnished with tenderer spikes,
  • and whose young eyes stood close by one another, as his father's did,
  • kept the required watch upon his mother. He greatly disturbed that poor
  • woman at intervals, by darting out of his sleeping closet, where he made
  • his toilet, with a suppressed cry of “You are going to flop, mother.
  • --Halloa, father!” and, after raising this fictitious alarm, darting in
  • again with an undutiful grin.
  • Mr. Cruncher's temper was not at all improved when he came to his
  • breakfast. He resented Mrs. Cruncher's saying grace with particular
  • animosity.
  • “Now, Aggerawayter! What are you up to? At it again?”
  • His wife explained that she had merely “asked a blessing.”
  • “Don't do it!” said Mr. Crunches looking about, as if he rather expected
  • to see the loaf disappear under the efficacy of his wife's petitions. “I
  • ain't a going to be blest out of house and home. I won't have my wittles
  • blest off my table. Keep still!”
  • Exceedingly red-eyed and grim, as if he had been up all night at a party
  • which had taken anything but a convivial turn, Jerry Cruncher worried
  • his breakfast rather than ate it, growling over it like any four-footed
  • inmate of a menagerie. Towards nine o'clock he smoothed his ruffled
  • aspect, and, presenting as respectable and business-like an exterior as
  • he could overlay his natural self with, issued forth to the occupation
  • of the day.
  • It could scarcely be called a trade, in spite of his favourite
  • description of himself as “a honest tradesman.” His stock consisted of
  • a wooden stool, made out of a broken-backed chair cut down, which stool,
  • young Jerry, walking at his father's side, carried every morning to
  • beneath the banking-house window that was nearest Temple Bar: where,
  • with the addition of the first handful of straw that could be gleaned
  • from any passing vehicle to keep the cold and wet from the odd-job-man's
  • feet, it formed the encampment for the day. On this post of his, Mr.
  • Cruncher was as well known to Fleet-street and the Temple, as the Bar
  • itself,--and was almost as in-looking.
  • Encamped at a quarter before nine, in good time to touch his
  • three-cornered hat to the oldest of men as they passed in to Tellson's,
  • Jerry took up his station on this windy March morning, with young Jerry
  • standing by him, when not engaged in making forays through the Bar, to
  • inflict bodily and mental injuries of an acute description on passing
  • boys who were small enough for his amiable purpose. Father and son,
  • extremely like each other, looking silently on at the morning traffic
  • in Fleet-street, with their two heads as near to one another as the two
  • eyes of each were, bore a considerable resemblance to a pair of monkeys.
  • The resemblance was not lessened by the accidental circumstance, that
  • the mature Jerry bit and spat out straw, while the twinkling eyes of the
  • youthful Jerry were as restlessly watchful of him as of everything else
  • in Fleet-street.
  • The head of one of the regular indoor messengers attached to Tellson's
  • establishment was put through the door, and the word was given:
  • “Porter wanted!”
  • “Hooray, father! Here's an early job to begin with!”
  • Having thus given his parent God speed, young Jerry seated himself on
  • the stool, entered on his reversionary interest in the straw his father
  • had been chewing, and cogitated.
  • “Al-ways rusty! His fingers is al-ways rusty!” muttered young Jerry.
  • “Where does my father get all that iron rust from? He don't get no iron
  • rust here!”
  • II. A Sight
  • “You know the Old Bailey well, no doubt?” said one of the oldest of
  • clerks to Jerry the messenger.
  • “Ye-es, sir,” returned Jerry, in something of a dogged manner. “I _do_
  • know the Bailey.”
  • “Just so. And you know Mr. Lorry.”
  • “I know Mr. Lorry, sir, much better than I know the Bailey. Much
  • better,” said Jerry, not unlike a reluctant witness at the establishment
  • in question, “than I, as a honest tradesman, wish to know the Bailey.”
  • “Very well. Find the door where the witnesses go in, and show the
  • door-keeper this note for Mr. Lorry. He will then let you in.”
  • “Into the court, sir?”
  • “Into the court.”
  • Mr. Cruncher's eyes seemed to get a little closer to one another, and to
  • interchange the inquiry, “What do you think of this?”
  • “Am I to wait in the court, sir?” he asked, as the result of that
  • conference.
  • “I am going to tell you. The door-keeper will pass the note to Mr.
  • Lorry, and do you make any gesture that will attract Mr. Lorry's
  • attention, and show him where you stand. Then what you have to do, is,
  • to remain there until he wants you.”
  • “Is that all, sir?”
  • “That's all. He wishes to have a messenger at hand. This is to tell him
  • you are there.”
  • As the ancient clerk deliberately folded and superscribed the note,
  • Mr. Cruncher, after surveying him in silence until he came to the
  • blotting-paper stage, remarked:
  • “I suppose they'll be trying Forgeries this morning?”
  • “Treason!”
  • “That's quartering,” said Jerry. “Barbarous!”
  • “It is the law,” remarked the ancient clerk, turning his surprised
  • spectacles upon him. “It is the law.”
  • “It's hard in the law to spile a man, I think. It's hard enough to kill
  • him, but it's wery hard to spile him, sir.”
  • “Not at all,” retained the ancient clerk. “Speak well of the law. Take
  • care of your chest and voice, my good friend, and leave the law to take
  • care of itself. I give you that advice.”
  • “It's the damp, sir, what settles on my chest and voice,” said Jerry. “I
  • leave you to judge what a damp way of earning a living mine is.”
  • “Well, well,” said the old clerk; “we all have our various ways of
  • gaining a livelihood. Some of us have damp ways, and some of us have dry
  • ways. Here is the letter. Go along.”
  • Jerry took the letter, and, remarking to himself with less internal
  • deference than he made an outward show of, “You are a lean old one,
  • too,” made his bow, informed his son, in passing, of his destination,
  • and went his way.
  • They hanged at Tyburn, in those days, so the street outside Newgate had
  • not obtained one infamous notoriety that has since attached to it.
  • But, the gaol was a vile place, in which most kinds of debauchery and
  • villainy were practised, and where dire diseases were bred, that came
  • into court with the prisoners, and sometimes rushed straight from the
  • dock at my Lord Chief Justice himself, and pulled him off the bench. It
  • had more than once happened, that the Judge in the black cap pronounced
  • his own doom as certainly as the prisoner's, and even died before him.
  • For the rest, the Old Bailey was famous as a kind of deadly inn-yard,
  • from which pale travellers set out continually, in carts and coaches, on
  • a violent passage into the other world: traversing some two miles and a
  • half of public street and road, and shaming few good citizens, if any.
  • So powerful is use, and so desirable to be good use in the beginning. It
  • was famous, too, for the pillory, a wise old institution, that inflicted
  • a punishment of which no one could foresee the extent; also, for
  • the whipping-post, another dear old institution, very humanising and
  • softening to behold in action; also, for extensive transactions in
  • blood-money, another fragment of ancestral wisdom, systematically
  • leading to the most frightful mercenary crimes that could be committed
  • under Heaven. Altogether, the Old Bailey, at that date, was a choice
  • illustration of the precept, that “Whatever is is right;” an aphorism
  • that would be as final as it is lazy, did it not include the troublesome
  • consequence, that nothing that ever was, was wrong.
  • Making his way through the tainted crowd, dispersed up and down this
  • hideous scene of action, with the skill of a man accustomed to make his
  • way quietly, the messenger found out the door he sought, and handed in
  • his letter through a trap in it. For, people then paid to see the play
  • at the Old Bailey, just as they paid to see the play in Bedlam--only the
  • former entertainment was much the dearer. Therefore, all the Old Bailey
  • doors were well guarded--except, indeed, the social doors by which the
  • criminals got there, and those were always left wide open.
  • After some delay and demur, the door grudgingly turned on its hinges a
  • very little way, and allowed Mr. Jerry Cruncher to squeeze himself into
  • court.
  • “What's on?” he asked, in a whisper, of the man he found himself next
  • to.
  • “Nothing yet.”
  • “What's coming on?”
  • “The Treason case.”
  • “The quartering one, eh?”
  • “Ah!” returned the man, with a relish; “he'll be drawn on a hurdle to
  • be half hanged, and then he'll be taken down and sliced before his own
  • face, and then his inside will be taken out and burnt while he looks on,
  • and then his head will be chopped off, and he'll be cut into quarters.
  • That's the sentence.”
  • “If he's found Guilty, you mean to say?” Jerry added, by way of proviso.
  • “Oh! they'll find him guilty,” said the other. “Don't you be afraid of
  • that.”
  • Mr. Cruncher's attention was here diverted to the door-keeper, whom he
  • saw making his way to Mr. Lorry, with the note in his hand. Mr. Lorry
  • sat at a table, among the gentlemen in wigs: not far from a wigged
  • gentleman, the prisoner's counsel, who had a great bundle of papers
  • before him: and nearly opposite another wigged gentleman with his hands
  • in his pockets, whose whole attention, when Mr. Cruncher looked at him
  • then or afterwards, seemed to be concentrated on the ceiling of the
  • court. After some gruff coughing and rubbing of his chin and signing
  • with his hand, Jerry attracted the notice of Mr. Lorry, who had stood up
  • to look for him, and who quietly nodded and sat down again.
  • “What's _he_ got to do with the case?” asked the man he had spoken with.
  • “Blest if I know,” said Jerry.
  • “What have _you_ got to do with it, then, if a person may inquire?”
  • “Blest if I know that either,” said Jerry.
  • The entrance of the Judge, and a consequent great stir and settling
  • down in the court, stopped the dialogue. Presently, the dock became the
  • central point of interest. Two gaolers, who had been standing there,
  • went out, and the prisoner was brought in, and put to the bar.
  • Everybody present, except the one wigged gentleman who looked at the
  • ceiling, stared at him. All the human breath in the place, rolled
  • at him, like a sea, or a wind, or a fire. Eager faces strained round
  • pillars and corners, to get a sight of him; spectators in back rows
  • stood up, not to miss a hair of him; people on the floor of the court,
  • laid their hands on the shoulders of the people before them, to help
  • themselves, at anybody's cost, to a view of him--stood a-tiptoe, got
  • upon ledges, stood upon next to nothing, to see every inch of him.
  • Conspicuous among these latter, like an animated bit of the spiked wall
  • of Newgate, Jerry stood: aiming at the prisoner the beery breath of a
  • whet he had taken as he came along, and discharging it to mingle with
  • the waves of other beer, and gin, and tea, and coffee, and what not,
  • that flowed at him, and already broke upon the great windows behind him
  • in an impure mist and rain.
  • The object of all this staring and blaring, was a young man of about
  • five-and-twenty, well-grown and well-looking, with a sunburnt cheek and
  • a dark eye. His condition was that of a young gentleman. He was plainly
  • dressed in black, or very dark grey, and his hair, which was long and
  • dark, was gathered in a ribbon at the back of his neck; more to be out
  • of his way than for ornament. As an emotion of the mind will express
  • itself through any covering of the body, so the paleness which his
  • situation engendered came through the brown upon his cheek, showing the
  • soul to be stronger than the sun. He was otherwise quite self-possessed,
  • bowed to the Judge, and stood quiet.
  • The sort of interest with which this man was stared and breathed at,
  • was not a sort that elevated humanity. Had he stood in peril of a less
  • horrible sentence--had there been a chance of any one of its savage
  • details being spared--by just so much would he have lost in his
  • fascination. The form that was to be doomed to be so shamefully mangled,
  • was the sight; the immortal creature that was to be so butchered
  • and torn asunder, yielded the sensation. Whatever gloss the various
  • spectators put upon the interest, according to their several arts and
  • powers of self-deceit, the interest was, at the root of it, Ogreish.
  • Silence in the court! Charles Darnay had yesterday pleaded Not Guilty to
  • an indictment denouncing him (with infinite jingle and jangle) for that
  • he was a false traitor to our serene, illustrious, excellent, and so
  • forth, prince, our Lord the King, by reason of his having, on divers
  • occasions, and by divers means and ways, assisted Lewis, the French
  • King, in his wars against our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and
  • so forth; that was to say, by coming and going, between the dominions of
  • our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth, and those of the
  • said French Lewis, and wickedly, falsely, traitorously, and otherwise
  • evil-adverbiously, revealing to the said French Lewis what forces our
  • said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth, had in preparation
  • to send to Canada and North America. This much, Jerry, with his head
  • becoming more and more spiky as the law terms bristled it, made out with
  • huge satisfaction, and so arrived circuitously at the understanding that
  • the aforesaid, and over and over again aforesaid, Charles Darnay, stood
  • there before him upon his trial; that the jury were swearing in; and
  • that Mr. Attorney-General was making ready to speak.
  • The accused, who was (and who knew he was) being mentally hanged,
  • beheaded, and quartered, by everybody there, neither flinched from
  • the situation, nor assumed any theatrical air in it. He was quiet and
  • attentive; watched the opening proceedings with a grave interest;
  • and stood with his hands resting on the slab of wood before him, so
  • composedly, that they had not displaced a leaf of the herbs with which
  • it was strewn. The court was all bestrewn with herbs and sprinkled with
  • vinegar, as a precaution against gaol air and gaol fever.
  • Over the prisoner's head there was a mirror, to throw the light down
  • upon him. Crowds of the wicked and the wretched had been reflected in
  • it, and had passed from its surface and this earth's together. Haunted
  • in a most ghastly manner that abominable place would have been, if the
  • glass could ever have rendered back its reflections, as the ocean is one
  • day to give up its dead. Some passing thought of the infamy and disgrace
  • for which it had been reserved, may have struck the prisoner's mind. Be
  • that as it may, a change in his position making him conscious of a bar
  • of light across his face, he looked up; and when he saw the glass his
  • face flushed, and his right hand pushed the herbs away.
  • It happened, that the action turned his face to that side of the court
  • which was on his left. About on a level with his eyes, there sat,
  • in that corner of the Judge's bench, two persons upon whom his look
  • immediately rested; so immediately, and so much to the changing of his
  • aspect, that all the eyes that were turned upon him, turned to them.
  • The spectators saw in the two figures, a young lady of little more than
  • twenty, and a gentleman who was evidently her father; a man of a very
  • remarkable appearance in respect of the absolute whiteness of his hair,
  • and a certain indescribable intensity of face: not of an active kind,
  • but pondering and self-communing. When this expression was upon him, he
  • looked as if he were old; but when it was stirred and broken up--as
  • it was now, in a moment, on his speaking to his daughter--he became a
  • handsome man, not past the prime of life.
  • His daughter had one of her hands drawn through his arm, as she sat by
  • him, and the other pressed upon it. She had drawn close to him, in her
  • dread of the scene, and in her pity for the prisoner. Her forehead had
  • been strikingly expressive of an engrossing terror and compassion
  • that saw nothing but the peril of the accused. This had been so very
  • noticeable, so very powerfully and naturally shown, that starers who
  • had had no pity for him were touched by her; and the whisper went about,
  • “Who are they?”
  • Jerry, the messenger, who had made his own observations, in his own
  • manner, and who had been sucking the rust off his fingers in his
  • absorption, stretched his neck to hear who they were. The crowd about
  • him had pressed and passed the inquiry on to the nearest attendant, and
  • from him it had been more slowly pressed and passed back; at last it got
  • to Jerry:
  • “Witnesses.”
  • “For which side?”
  • “Against.”
  • “Against what side?”
  • “The prisoner's.”
  • The Judge, whose eyes had gone in the general direction, recalled them,
  • leaned back in his seat, and looked steadily at the man whose life was
  • in his hand, as Mr. Attorney-General rose to spin the rope, grind the
  • axe, and hammer the nails into the scaffold.
  • III. A Disappointment
  • Mr. Attorney-General had to inform the jury, that the prisoner before
  • them, though young in years, was old in the treasonable practices which
  • claimed the forfeit of his life. That this correspondence with the
  • public enemy was not a correspondence of to-day, or of yesterday, or
  • even of last year, or of the year before. That, it was certain the
  • prisoner had, for longer than that, been in the habit of passing and
  • repassing between France and England, on secret business of which
  • he could give no honest account. That, if it were in the nature of
  • traitorous ways to thrive (which happily it never was), the real
  • wickedness and guilt of his business might have remained undiscovered.
  • That Providence, however, had put it into the heart of a person who
  • was beyond fear and beyond reproach, to ferret out the nature of the
  • prisoner's schemes, and, struck with horror, to disclose them to his
  • Majesty's Chief Secretary of State and most honourable Privy Council.
  • That, this patriot would be produced before them. That, his position and
  • attitude were, on the whole, sublime. That, he had been the prisoner's
  • friend, but, at once in an auspicious and an evil hour detecting his
  • infamy, had resolved to immolate the traitor he could no longer cherish
  • in his bosom, on the sacred altar of his country. That, if statues
  • were decreed in Britain, as in ancient Greece and Rome, to public
  • benefactors, this shining citizen would assuredly have had one. That, as
  • they were not so decreed, he probably would not have one. That, Virtue,
  • as had been observed by the poets (in many passages which he well
  • knew the jury would have, word for word, at the tips of their tongues;
  • whereat the jury's countenances displayed a guilty consciousness that
  • they knew nothing about the passages), was in a manner contagious; more
  • especially the bright virtue known as patriotism, or love of country.
  • That, the lofty example of this immaculate and unimpeachable witness
  • for the Crown, to refer to whom however unworthily was an honour, had
  • communicated itself to the prisoner's servant, and had engendered in him
  • a holy determination to examine his master's table-drawers and pockets,
  • and secrete his papers. That, he (Mr. Attorney-General) was prepared to
  • hear some disparagement attempted of this admirable servant; but that,
  • in a general way, he preferred him to his (Mr. Attorney-General's)
  • brothers and sisters, and honoured him more than his (Mr.
  • Attorney-General's) father and mother. That, he called with confidence
  • on the jury to come and do likewise. That, the evidence of these two
  • witnesses, coupled with the documents of their discovering that would be
  • produced, would show the prisoner to have been furnished with lists of
  • his Majesty's forces, and of their disposition and preparation, both by
  • sea and land, and would leave no doubt that he had habitually conveyed
  • such information to a hostile power. That, these lists could not be
  • proved to be in the prisoner's handwriting; but that it was all the
  • same; that, indeed, it was rather the better for the prosecution, as
  • showing the prisoner to be artful in his precautions. That, the proof
  • would go back five years, and would show the prisoner already engaged
  • in these pernicious missions, within a few weeks before the date of the
  • very first action fought between the British troops and the Americans.
  • That, for these reasons, the jury, being a loyal jury (as he knew they
  • were), and being a responsible jury (as _they_ knew they were), must
  • positively find the prisoner Guilty, and make an end of him, whether
  • they liked it or not. That, they never could lay their heads upon their
  • pillows; that, they never could tolerate the idea of their wives laying
  • their heads upon their pillows; that, they never could endure the notion
  • of their children laying their heads upon their pillows; in short, that
  • there never more could be, for them or theirs, any laying of heads upon
  • pillows at all, unless the prisoner's head was taken off. That head
  • Mr. Attorney-General concluded by demanding of them, in the name of
  • everything he could think of with a round turn in it, and on the faith
  • of his solemn asseveration that he already considered the prisoner as
  • good as dead and gone.
  • When the Attorney-General ceased, a buzz arose in the court as if
  • a cloud of great blue-flies were swarming about the prisoner, in
  • anticipation of what he was soon to become. When toned down again, the
  • unimpeachable patriot appeared in the witness-box.
  • Mr. Solicitor-General then, following his leader's lead, examined the
  • patriot: John Barsad, gentleman, by name. The story of his pure soul was
  • exactly what Mr. Attorney-General had described it to be--perhaps, if
  • it had a fault, a little too exactly. Having released his noble bosom
  • of its burden, he would have modestly withdrawn himself, but that the
  • wigged gentleman with the papers before him, sitting not far from Mr.
  • Lorry, begged to ask him a few questions. The wigged gentleman sitting
  • opposite, still looking at the ceiling of the court.
  • Had he ever been a spy himself? No, he scorned the base insinuation.
  • What did he live upon? His property. Where was his property? He didn't
  • precisely remember where it was. What was it? No business of anybody's.
  • Had he inherited it? Yes, he had. From whom? Distant relation. Very
  • distant? Rather. Ever been in prison? Certainly not. Never in a debtors'
  • prison? Didn't see what that had to do with it. Never in a debtors'
  • prison?--Come, once again. Never? Yes. How many times? Two or three
  • times. Not five or six? Perhaps. Of what profession? Gentleman. Ever
  • been kicked? Might have been. Frequently? No. Ever kicked downstairs?
  • Decidedly not; once received a kick on the top of a staircase, and fell
  • downstairs of his own accord. Kicked on that occasion for cheating at
  • dice? Something to that effect was said by the intoxicated liar who
  • committed the assault, but it was not true. Swear it was not true?
  • Positively. Ever live by cheating at play? Never. Ever live by play? Not
  • more than other gentlemen do. Ever borrow money of the prisoner? Yes.
  • Ever pay him? No. Was not this intimacy with the prisoner, in reality a
  • very slight one, forced upon the prisoner in coaches, inns, and packets?
  • No. Sure he saw the prisoner with these lists? Certain. Knew no more
  • about the lists? No. Had not procured them himself, for instance? No.
  • Expect to get anything by this evidence? No. Not in regular government
  • pay and employment, to lay traps? Oh dear no. Or to do anything? Oh dear
  • no. Swear that? Over and over again. No motives but motives of sheer
  • patriotism? None whatever.
  • The virtuous servant, Roger Cly, swore his way through the case at a
  • great rate. He had taken service with the prisoner, in good faith and
  • simplicity, four years ago. He had asked the prisoner, aboard the Calais
  • packet, if he wanted a handy fellow, and the prisoner had engaged him.
  • He had not asked the prisoner to take the handy fellow as an act of
  • charity--never thought of such a thing. He began to have suspicions of
  • the prisoner, and to keep an eye upon him, soon afterwards. In arranging
  • his clothes, while travelling, he had seen similar lists to these in the
  • prisoner's pockets, over and over again. He had taken these lists from
  • the drawer of the prisoner's desk. He had not put them there first. He
  • had seen the prisoner show these identical lists to French gentlemen
  • at Calais, and similar lists to French gentlemen, both at Calais and
  • Boulogne. He loved his country, and couldn't bear it, and had given
  • information. He had never been suspected of stealing a silver tea-pot;
  • he had been maligned respecting a mustard-pot, but it turned out to be
  • only a plated one. He had known the last witness seven or eight years;
  • that was merely a coincidence. He didn't call it a particularly curious
  • coincidence; most coincidences were curious. Neither did he call it a
  • curious coincidence that true patriotism was _his_ only motive too. He
  • was a true Briton, and hoped there were many like him.
  • The blue-flies buzzed again, and Mr. Attorney-General called Mr. Jarvis
  • Lorry.
  • “Mr. Jarvis Lorry, are you a clerk in Tellson's bank?”
  • “I am.”
  • “On a certain Friday night in November one thousand seven hundred and
  • seventy-five, did business occasion you to travel between London and
  • Dover by the mail?”
  • “It did.”
  • “Were there any other passengers in the mail?”
  • “Two.”
  • “Did they alight on the road in the course of the night?”
  • “They did.”
  • “Mr. Lorry, look upon the prisoner. Was he one of those two passengers?”
  • “I cannot undertake to say that he was.”
  • “Does he resemble either of these two passengers?”
  • “Both were so wrapped up, and the night was so dark, and we were all so
  • reserved, that I cannot undertake to say even that.”
  • “Mr. Lorry, look again upon the prisoner. Supposing him wrapped up as
  • those two passengers were, is there anything in his bulk and stature to
  • render it unlikely that he was one of them?”
  • “No.”
  • “You will not swear, Mr. Lorry, that he was not one of them?”
  • “No.”
  • “So at least you say he may have been one of them?”
  • “Yes. Except that I remember them both to have been--like
  • myself--timorous of highwaymen, and the prisoner has not a timorous
  • air.”
  • “Did you ever see a counterfeit of timidity, Mr. Lorry?”
  • “I certainly have seen that.”
  • “Mr. Lorry, look once more upon the prisoner. Have you seen him, to your
  • certain knowledge, before?”
  • “I have.”
  • “When?”
  • “I was returning from France a few days afterwards, and, at Calais, the
  • prisoner came on board the packet-ship in which I returned, and made the
  • voyage with me.”
  • “At what hour did he come on board?”
  • “At a little after midnight.”
  • “In the dead of the night. Was he the only passenger who came on board
  • at that untimely hour?”
  • “He happened to be the only one.”
  • “Never mind about 'happening,' Mr. Lorry. He was the only passenger who
  • came on board in the dead of the night?”
  • “He was.”
  • “Were you travelling alone, Mr. Lorry, or with any companion?”
  • “With two companions. A gentleman and lady. They are here.”
  • “They are here. Had you any conversation with the prisoner?”
  • “Hardly any. The weather was stormy, and the passage long and rough, and
  • I lay on a sofa, almost from shore to shore.”
  • “Miss Manette!”
  • The young lady, to whom all eyes had been turned before, and were now
  • turned again, stood up where she had sat. Her father rose with her, and
  • kept her hand drawn through his arm.
  • “Miss Manette, look upon the prisoner.”
  • To be confronted with such pity, and such earnest youth and beauty, was
  • far more trying to the accused than to be confronted with all the crowd.
  • Standing, as it were, apart with her on the edge of his grave, not all
  • the staring curiosity that looked on, could, for the moment, nerve him
  • to remain quite still. His hurried right hand parcelled out the herbs
  • before him into imaginary beds of flowers in a garden; and his efforts
  • to control and steady his breathing shook the lips from which the colour
  • rushed to his heart. The buzz of the great flies was loud again.
  • “Miss Manette, have you seen the prisoner before?”
  • “Yes, sir.”
  • “Where?”
  • “On board of the packet-ship just now referred to, sir, and on the same
  • occasion.”
  • “You are the young lady just now referred to?”
  • “O! most unhappily, I am!”
  • The plaintive tone of her compassion merged into the less musical voice
  • of the Judge, as he said something fiercely: “Answer the questions put
  • to you, and make no remark upon them.”
  • “Miss Manette, had you any conversation with the prisoner on that
  • passage across the Channel?”
  • “Yes, sir.”
  • “Recall it.”
  • In the midst of a profound stillness, she faintly began: “When the
  • gentleman came on board--”
  • “Do you mean the prisoner?” inquired the Judge, knitting his brows.
  • “Yes, my Lord.”
  • “Then say the prisoner.”
  • “When the prisoner came on board, he noticed that my father,” turning
  • her eyes lovingly to him as he stood beside her, “was much fatigued
  • and in a very weak state of health. My father was so reduced that I was
  • afraid to take him out of the air, and I had made a bed for him on the
  • deck near the cabin steps, and I sat on the deck at his side to take
  • care of him. There were no other passengers that night, but we four.
  • The prisoner was so good as to beg permission to advise me how I could
  • shelter my father from the wind and weather, better than I had done. I
  • had not known how to do it well, not understanding how the wind would
  • set when we were out of the harbour. He did it for me. He expressed
  • great gentleness and kindness for my father's state, and I am sure he
  • felt it. That was the manner of our beginning to speak together.”
  • “Let me interrupt you for a moment. Had he come on board alone?”
  • “No.”
  • “How many were with him?”
  • “Two French gentlemen.”
  • “Had they conferred together?”
  • “They had conferred together until the last moment, when it was
  • necessary for the French gentlemen to be landed in their boat.”
  • “Had any papers been handed about among them, similar to these lists?”
  • “Some papers had been handed about among them, but I don't know what
  • papers.”
  • “Like these in shape and size?”
  • “Possibly, but indeed I don't know, although they stood whispering very
  • near to me: because they stood at the top of the cabin steps to have the
  • light of the lamp that was hanging there; it was a dull lamp, and they
  • spoke very low, and I did not hear what they said, and saw only that
  • they looked at papers.”
  • “Now, to the prisoner's conversation, Miss Manette.”
  • “The prisoner was as open in his confidence with me--which arose out
  • of my helpless situation--as he was kind, and good, and useful to my
  • father. I hope,” bursting into tears, “I may not repay him by doing him
  • harm to-day.”
  • Buzzing from the blue-flies.
  • “Miss Manette, if the prisoner does not perfectly understand that
  • you give the evidence which it is your duty to give--which you must
  • give--and which you cannot escape from giving--with great unwillingness,
  • he is the only person present in that condition. Please to go on.”
  • “He told me that he was travelling on business of a delicate and
  • difficult nature, which might get people into trouble, and that he was
  • therefore travelling under an assumed name. He said that this business
  • had, within a few days, taken him to France, and might, at intervals,
  • take him backwards and forwards between France and England for a long
  • time to come.”
  • “Did he say anything about America, Miss Manette? Be particular.”
  • “He tried to explain to me how that quarrel had arisen, and he said
  • that, so far as he could judge, it was a wrong and foolish one on
  • England's part. He added, in a jesting way, that perhaps George
  • Washington might gain almost as great a name in history as George the
  • Third. But there was no harm in his way of saying this: it was said
  • laughingly, and to beguile the time.”
  • Any strongly marked expression of face on the part of a chief actor in
  • a scene of great interest to whom many eyes are directed, will be
  • unconsciously imitated by the spectators. Her forehead was painfully
  • anxious and intent as she gave this evidence, and, in the pauses when
  • she stopped for the Judge to write it down, watched its effect upon
  • the counsel for and against. Among the lookers-on there was the same
  • expression in all quarters of the court; insomuch, that a great majority
  • of the foreheads there, might have been mirrors reflecting the witness,
  • when the Judge looked up from his notes to glare at that tremendous
  • heresy about George Washington.
  • Mr. Attorney-General now signified to my Lord, that he deemed it
  • necessary, as a matter of precaution and form, to call the young lady's
  • father, Doctor Manette. Who was called accordingly.
  • “Doctor Manette, look upon the prisoner. Have you ever seen him before?”
  • “Once. When he called at my lodgings in London. Some three years, or
  • three years and a half ago.”
  • “Can you identify him as your fellow-passenger on board the packet, or
  • speak to his conversation with your daughter?”
  • “Sir, I can do neither.”
  • “Is there any particular and special reason for your being unable to do
  • either?”
  • He answered, in a low voice, “There is.”
  • “Has it been your misfortune to undergo a long imprisonment, without
  • trial, or even accusation, in your native country, Doctor Manette?”
  • He answered, in a tone that went to every heart, “A long imprisonment.”
  • “Were you newly released on the occasion in question?”
  • “They tell me so.”
  • “Have you no remembrance of the occasion?”
  • “None. My mind is a blank, from some time--I cannot even say what
  • time--when I employed myself, in my captivity, in making shoes, to the
  • time when I found myself living in London with my dear daughter
  • here. She had become familiar to me, when a gracious God restored
  • my faculties; but, I am quite unable even to say how she had become
  • familiar. I have no remembrance of the process.”
  • Mr. Attorney-General sat down, and the father and daughter sat down
  • together.
  • A singular circumstance then arose in the case. The object in hand being
  • to show that the prisoner went down, with some fellow-plotter untracked,
  • in the Dover mail on that Friday night in November five years ago, and
  • got out of the mail in the night, as a blind, at a place where he did
  • not remain, but from which he travelled back some dozen miles or more,
  • to a garrison and dockyard, and there collected information; a witness
  • was called to identify him as having been at the precise time required,
  • in the coffee-room of an hotel in that garrison-and-dockyard town,
  • waiting for another person. The prisoner's counsel was cross-examining
  • this witness with no result, except that he had never seen the prisoner
  • on any other occasion, when the wigged gentleman who had all this time
  • been looking at the ceiling of the court, wrote a word or two on a
  • little piece of paper, screwed it up, and tossed it to him. Opening
  • this piece of paper in the next pause, the counsel looked with great
  • attention and curiosity at the prisoner.
  • “You say again you are quite sure that it was the prisoner?”
  • The witness was quite sure.
  • “Did you ever see anybody very like the prisoner?”
  • Not so like (the witness said) as that he could be mistaken.
  • “Look well upon that gentleman, my learned friend there,” pointing
  • to him who had tossed the paper over, “and then look well upon the
  • prisoner. How say you? Are they very like each other?”
  • Allowing for my learned friend's appearance being careless and slovenly
  • if not debauched, they were sufficiently like each other to surprise,
  • not only the witness, but everybody present, when they were thus brought
  • into comparison. My Lord being prayed to bid my learned friend lay aside
  • his wig, and giving no very gracious consent, the likeness became
  • much more remarkable. My Lord inquired of Mr. Stryver (the prisoner's
  • counsel), whether they were next to try Mr. Carton (name of my learned
  • friend) for treason? But, Mr. Stryver replied to my Lord, no; but he
  • would ask the witness to tell him whether what happened once, might
  • happen twice; whether he would have been so confident if he had seen
  • this illustration of his rashness sooner, whether he would be so
  • confident, having seen it; and more. The upshot of which, was, to smash
  • this witness like a crockery vessel, and shiver his part of the case to
  • useless lumber.
  • Mr. Cruncher had by this time taken quite a lunch of rust off his
  • fingers in his following of the evidence. He had now to attend while Mr.
  • Stryver fitted the prisoner's case on the jury, like a compact suit
  • of clothes; showing them how the patriot, Barsad, was a hired spy and
  • traitor, an unblushing trafficker in blood, and one of the greatest
  • scoundrels upon earth since accursed Judas--which he certainly did look
  • rather like. How the virtuous servant, Cly, was his friend and partner,
  • and was worthy to be; how the watchful eyes of those forgers and false
  • swearers had rested on the prisoner as a victim, because some family
  • affairs in France, he being of French extraction, did require his making
  • those passages across the Channel--though what those affairs were, a
  • consideration for others who were near and dear to him, forbade him,
  • even for his life, to disclose. How the evidence that had been warped
  • and wrested from the young lady, whose anguish in giving it they
  • had witnessed, came to nothing, involving the mere little innocent
  • gallantries and politenesses likely to pass between any young gentleman
  • and young lady so thrown together;--with the exception of that
  • reference to George Washington, which was altogether too extravagant and
  • impossible to be regarded in any other light than as a monstrous joke.
  • How it would be a weakness in the government to break down in this
  • attempt to practise for popularity on the lowest national antipathies
  • and fears, and therefore Mr. Attorney-General had made the most of it;
  • how, nevertheless, it rested upon nothing, save that vile and infamous
  • character of evidence too often disfiguring such cases, and of which the
  • State Trials of this country were full. But, there my Lord interposed
  • (with as grave a face as if it had not been true), saying that he could
  • not sit upon that Bench and suffer those allusions.
  • Mr. Stryver then called his few witnesses, and Mr. Cruncher had next to
  • attend while Mr. Attorney-General turned the whole suit of clothes Mr.
  • Stryver had fitted on the jury, inside out; showing how Barsad and
  • Cly were even a hundred times better than he had thought them, and the
  • prisoner a hundred times worse. Lastly, came my Lord himself, turning
  • the suit of clothes, now inside out, now outside in, but on the whole
  • decidedly trimming and shaping them into grave-clothes for the prisoner.
  • And now, the jury turned to consider, and the great flies swarmed again.
  • Mr. Carton, who had so long sat looking at the ceiling of the court,
  • changed neither his place nor his attitude, even in this excitement.
  • While his learned friend, Mr. Stryver, massing his papers before him,
  • whispered with those who sat near, and from time to time glanced
  • anxiously at the jury; while all the spectators moved more or less, and
  • grouped themselves anew; while even my Lord himself arose from his seat,
  • and slowly paced up and down his platform, not unattended by a suspicion
  • in the minds of the audience that his state was feverish; this one man
  • sat leaning back, with his torn gown half off him, his untidy wig put
  • on just as it had happened to light on his head after its removal, his
  • hands in his pockets, and his eyes on the ceiling as they had been all
  • day. Something especially reckless in his demeanour, not only gave him
  • a disreputable look, but so diminished the strong resemblance he
  • undoubtedly bore to the prisoner (which his momentary earnestness,
  • when they were compared together, had strengthened), that many of the
  • lookers-on, taking note of him now, said to one another they would
  • hardly have thought the two were so alike. Mr. Cruncher made the
  • observation to his next neighbour, and added, “I'd hold half a guinea
  • that _he_ don't get no law-work to do. Don't look like the sort of one
  • to get any, do he?”
  • Yet, this Mr. Carton took in more of the details of the scene than he
  • appeared to take in; for now, when Miss Manette's head dropped upon
  • her father's breast, he was the first to see it, and to say audibly:
  • “Officer! look to that young lady. Help the gentleman to take her out.
  • Don't you see she will fall!”
  • There was much commiseration for her as she was removed, and much
  • sympathy with her father. It had evidently been a great distress to
  • him, to have the days of his imprisonment recalled. He had shown
  • strong internal agitation when he was questioned, and that pondering or
  • brooding look which made him old, had been upon him, like a heavy cloud,
  • ever since. As he passed out, the jury, who had turned back and paused a
  • moment, spoke, through their foreman.
  • They were not agreed, and wished to retire. My Lord (perhaps with George
  • Washington on his mind) showed some surprise that they were not agreed,
  • but signified his pleasure that they should retire under watch and ward,
  • and retired himself. The trial had lasted all day, and the lamps in
  • the court were now being lighted. It began to be rumoured that the
  • jury would be out a long while. The spectators dropped off to get
  • refreshment, and the prisoner withdrew to the back of the dock, and sat
  • down.
  • Mr. Lorry, who had gone out when the young lady and her father went out,
  • now reappeared, and beckoned to Jerry: who, in the slackened interest,
  • could easily get near him.
  • “Jerry, if you wish to take something to eat, you can. But, keep in the
  • way. You will be sure to hear when the jury come in. Don't be a moment
  • behind them, for I want you to take the verdict back to the bank. You
  • are the quickest messenger I know, and will get to Temple Bar long
  • before I can.”
  • Jerry had just enough forehead to knuckle, and he knuckled it in
  • acknowledgment of this communication and a shilling. Mr. Carton came up
  • at the moment, and touched Mr. Lorry on the arm.
  • “How is the young lady?”
  • “She is greatly distressed; but her father is comforting her, and she
  • feels the better for being out of court.”
  • “I'll tell the prisoner so. It won't do for a respectable bank gentleman
  • like you, to be seen speaking to him publicly, you know.”
  • Mr. Lorry reddened as if he were conscious of having debated the point
  • in his mind, and Mr. Carton made his way to the outside of the bar.
  • The way out of court lay in that direction, and Jerry followed him, all
  • eyes, ears, and spikes.
  • “Mr. Darnay!”
  • The prisoner came forward directly.
  • “You will naturally be anxious to hear of the witness, Miss Manette. She
  • will do very well. You have seen the worst of her agitation.”
  • “I am deeply sorry to have been the cause of it. Could you tell her so
  • for me, with my fervent acknowledgments?”
  • “Yes, I could. I will, if you ask it.”
  • Mr. Carton's manner was so careless as to be almost insolent. He stood,
  • half turned from the prisoner, lounging with his elbow against the bar.
  • “I do ask it. Accept my cordial thanks.”
  • “What,” said Carton, still only half turned towards him, “do you expect,
  • Mr. Darnay?”
  • “The worst.”
  • “It's the wisest thing to expect, and the likeliest. But I think their
  • withdrawing is in your favour.”
  • Loitering on the way out of court not being allowed, Jerry heard no
  • more: but left them--so like each other in feature, so unlike each other
  • in manner--standing side by side, both reflected in the glass above
  • them.
  • An hour and a half limped heavily away in the thief-and-rascal crowded
  • passages below, even though assisted off with mutton pies and ale.
  • The hoarse messenger, uncomfortably seated on a form after taking that
  • refection, had dropped into a doze, when a loud murmur and a rapid tide
  • of people setting up the stairs that led to the court, carried him along
  • with them.
  • “Jerry! Jerry!” Mr. Lorry was already calling at the door when he got
  • there.
  • “Here, sir! It's a fight to get back again. Here I am, sir!”
  • Mr. Lorry handed him a paper through the throng. “Quick! Have you got
  • it?”
  • “Yes, sir.”
  • Hastily written on the paper was the word “ACQUITTED.”
  • “If you had sent the message, 'Recalled to Life,' again,” muttered
  • Jerry, as he turned, “I should have known what you meant, this time.”
  • He had no opportunity of saying, or so much as thinking, anything else,
  • until he was clear of the Old Bailey; for, the crowd came pouring out
  • with a vehemence that nearly took him off his legs, and a loud buzz
  • swept into the street as if the baffled blue-flies were dispersing in
  • search of other carrion.
  • IV. Congratulatory
  • From the dimly-lighted passages of the court, the last sediment of the
  • human stew that had been boiling there all day, was straining off, when
  • Doctor Manette, Lucie Manette, his daughter, Mr. Lorry, the solicitor
  • for the defence, and its counsel, Mr. Stryver, stood gathered round Mr.
  • Charles Darnay--just released--congratulating him on his escape from
  • death.
  • It would have been difficult by a far brighter light, to recognise
  • in Doctor Manette, intellectual of face and upright of bearing, the
  • shoemaker of the garret in Paris. Yet, no one could have looked at him
  • twice, without looking again: even though the opportunity of observation
  • had not extended to the mournful cadence of his low grave voice, and
  • to the abstraction that overclouded him fitfully, without any apparent
  • reason. While one external cause, and that a reference to his long
  • lingering agony, would always--as on the trial--evoke this condition
  • from the depths of his soul, it was also in its nature to arise of
  • itself, and to draw a gloom over him, as incomprehensible to those
  • unacquainted with his story as if they had seen the shadow of the actual
  • Bastille thrown upon him by a summer sun, when the substance was three
  • hundred miles away.
  • Only his daughter had the power of charming this black brooding from
  • his mind. She was the golden thread that united him to a Past beyond his
  • misery, and to a Present beyond his misery: and the sound of her voice,
  • the light of her face, the touch of her hand, had a strong beneficial
  • influence with him almost always. Not absolutely always, for she could
  • recall some occasions on which her power had failed; but they were few
  • and slight, and she believed them over.
  • Mr. Darnay had kissed her hand fervently and gratefully, and had turned
  • to Mr. Stryver, whom he warmly thanked. Mr. Stryver, a man of little
  • more than thirty, but looking twenty years older than he was, stout,
  • loud, red, bluff, and free from any drawback of delicacy, had a pushing
  • way of shouldering himself (morally and physically) into companies and
  • conversations, that argued well for his shouldering his way up in life.
  • He still had his wig and gown on, and he said, squaring himself at his
  • late client to that degree that he squeezed the innocent Mr. Lorry clean
  • out of the group: “I am glad to have brought you off with honour, Mr.
  • Darnay. It was an infamous prosecution, grossly infamous; but not the
  • less likely to succeed on that account.”
  • “You have laid me under an obligation to you for life--in two senses,”
  • said his late client, taking his hand.
  • “I have done my best for you, Mr. Darnay; and my best is as good as
  • another man's, I believe.”
  • It clearly being incumbent on some one to say, “Much better,” Mr. Lorry
  • said it; perhaps not quite disinterestedly, but with the interested
  • object of squeezing himself back again.
  • “You think so?” said Mr. Stryver. “Well! you have been present all day,
  • and you ought to know. You are a man of business, too.”
  • “And as such,” quoth Mr. Lorry, whom the counsel learned in the law had
  • now shouldered back into the group, just as he had previously shouldered
  • him out of it--“as such I will appeal to Doctor Manette, to break up
  • this conference and order us all to our homes. Miss Lucie looks ill, Mr.
  • Darnay has had a terrible day, we are worn out.”
  • “Speak for yourself, Mr. Lorry,” said Stryver; “I have a night's work to
  • do yet. Speak for yourself.”
  • “I speak for myself,” answered Mr. Lorry, “and for Mr. Darnay, and for
  • Miss Lucie, and--Miss Lucie, do you not think I may speak for us all?”
  • He asked her the question pointedly, and with a glance at her father.
  • His face had become frozen, as it were, in a very curious look at
  • Darnay: an intent look, deepening into a frown of dislike and distrust,
  • not even unmixed with fear. With this strange expression on him his
  • thoughts had wandered away.
  • “My father,” said Lucie, softly laying her hand on his.
  • He slowly shook the shadow off, and turned to her.
  • “Shall we go home, my father?”
  • With a long breath, he answered “Yes.”
  • The friends of the acquitted prisoner had dispersed, under the
  • impression--which he himself had originated--that he would not be
  • released that night. The lights were nearly all extinguished in the
  • passages, the iron gates were being closed with a jar and a rattle,
  • and the dismal place was deserted until to-morrow morning's interest of
  • gallows, pillory, whipping-post, and branding-iron, should repeople it.
  • Walking between her father and Mr. Darnay, Lucie Manette passed into
  • the open air. A hackney-coach was called, and the father and daughter
  • departed in it.
  • Mr. Stryver had left them in the passages, to shoulder his way back
  • to the robing-room. Another person, who had not joined the group, or
  • interchanged a word with any one of them, but who had been leaning
  • against the wall where its shadow was darkest, had silently strolled
  • out after the rest, and had looked on until the coach drove away. He now
  • stepped up to where Mr. Lorry and Mr. Darnay stood upon the pavement.
  • “So, Mr. Lorry! Men of business may speak to Mr. Darnay now?”
  • Nobody had made any acknowledgment of Mr. Carton's part in the day's
  • proceedings; nobody had known of it. He was unrobed, and was none the
  • better for it in appearance.
  • “If you knew what a conflict goes on in the business mind, when the
  • business mind is divided between good-natured impulse and business
  • appearances, you would be amused, Mr. Darnay.”
  • Mr. Lorry reddened, and said, warmly, “You have mentioned that before,
  • sir. We men of business, who serve a House, are not our own masters. We
  • have to think of the House more than ourselves.”
  • “_I_ know, _I_ know,” rejoined Mr. Carton, carelessly. “Don't be
  • nettled, Mr. Lorry. You are as good as another, I have no doubt: better,
  • I dare say.”
  • “And indeed, sir,” pursued Mr. Lorry, not minding him, “I really don't
  • know what you have to do with the matter. If you'll excuse me, as very
  • much your elder, for saying so, I really don't know that it is your
  • business.”
  • “Business! Bless you, _I_ have no business,” said Mr. Carton.
  • “It is a pity you have not, sir.”
  • “I think so, too.”
  • “If you had,” pursued Mr. Lorry, “perhaps you would attend to it.”
  • “Lord love you, no!--I shouldn't,” said Mr. Carton.
  • “Well, sir!” cried Mr. Lorry, thoroughly heated by his indifference,
  • “business is a very good thing, and a very respectable thing. And, sir,
  • if business imposes its restraints and its silences and impediments, Mr.
  • Darnay as a young gentleman of generosity knows how to make allowance
  • for that circumstance. Mr. Darnay, good night, God bless you, sir!
  • I hope you have been this day preserved for a prosperous and happy
  • life.--Chair there!”
  • Perhaps a little angry with himself, as well as with the barrister, Mr.
  • Lorry bustled into the chair, and was carried off to Tellson's. Carton,
  • who smelt of port wine, and did not appear to be quite sober, laughed
  • then, and turned to Darnay:
  • “This is a strange chance that throws you and me together. This must
  • be a strange night to you, standing alone here with your counterpart on
  • these street stones?”
  • “I hardly seem yet,” returned Charles Darnay, “to belong to this world
  • again.”
  • “I don't wonder at it; it's not so long since you were pretty far
  • advanced on your way to another. You speak faintly.”
  • “I begin to think I _am_ faint.”
  • “Then why the devil don't you dine? I dined, myself, while those
  • numskulls were deliberating which world you should belong to--this, or
  • some other. Let me show you the nearest tavern to dine well at.”
  • Drawing his arm through his own, he took him down Ludgate-hill to
  • Fleet-street, and so, up a covered way, into a tavern. Here, they were
  • shown into a little room, where Charles Darnay was soon recruiting
  • his strength with a good plain dinner and good wine: while Carton sat
  • opposite to him at the same table, with his separate bottle of port
  • before him, and his fully half-insolent manner upon him.
  • “Do you feel, yet, that you belong to this terrestrial scheme again, Mr.
  • Darnay?”
  • “I am frightfully confused regarding time and place; but I am so far
  • mended as to feel that.”
  • “It must be an immense satisfaction!”
  • He said it bitterly, and filled up his glass again: which was a large
  • one.
  • “As to me, the greatest desire I have, is to forget that I belong to it.
  • It has no good in it for me--except wine like this--nor I for it. So we
  • are not much alike in that particular. Indeed, I begin to think we are
  • not much alike in any particular, you and I.”
  • Confused by the emotion of the day, and feeling his being there with
  • this Double of coarse deportment, to be like a dream, Charles Darnay was
  • at a loss how to answer; finally, answered not at all.
  • “Now your dinner is done,” Carton presently said, “why don't you call a
  • health, Mr. Darnay; why don't you give your toast?”
  • “What health? What toast?”
  • “Why, it's on the tip of your tongue. It ought to be, it must be, I'll
  • swear it's there.”
  • “Miss Manette, then!”
  • “Miss Manette, then!”
  • Looking his companion full in the face while he drank the toast, Carton
  • flung his glass over his shoulder against the wall, where it shivered to
  • pieces; then, rang the bell, and ordered in another.
  • “That's a fair young lady to hand to a coach in the dark, Mr. Darnay!”
  • he said, filling his new goblet.
  • A slight frown and a laconic “Yes,” were the answer.
  • “That's a fair young lady to be pitied by and wept for by! How does it
  • feel? Is it worth being tried for one's life, to be the object of such
  • sympathy and compassion, Mr. Darnay?”
  • Again Darnay answered not a word.
  • “She was mightily pleased to have your message, when I gave it her. Not
  • that she showed she was pleased, but I suppose she was.”
  • The allusion served as a timely reminder to Darnay that this
  • disagreeable companion had, of his own free will, assisted him in the
  • strait of the day. He turned the dialogue to that point, and thanked him
  • for it.
  • “I neither want any thanks, nor merit any,” was the careless rejoinder.
  • “It was nothing to do, in the first place; and I don't know why I did
  • it, in the second. Mr. Darnay, let me ask you a question.”
  • “Willingly, and a small return for your good offices.”
  • “Do you think I particularly like you?”
  • “Really, Mr. Carton,” returned the other, oddly disconcerted, “I have
  • not asked myself the question.”
  • “But ask yourself the question now.”
  • “You have acted as if you do; but I don't think you do.”
  • “_I_ don't think I do,” said Carton. “I begin to have a very good
  • opinion of your understanding.”
  • “Nevertheless,” pursued Darnay, rising to ring the bell, “there is
  • nothing in that, I hope, to prevent my calling the reckoning, and our
  • parting without ill-blood on either side.”
  • Carton rejoining, “Nothing in life!” Darnay rang. “Do you call the whole
  • reckoning?” said Carton. On his answering in the affirmative, “Then
  • bring me another pint of this same wine, drawer, and come and wake me at
  • ten.”
  • The bill being paid, Charles Darnay rose and wished him good night.
  • Without returning the wish, Carton rose too, with something of a threat
  • of defiance in his manner, and said, “A last word, Mr. Darnay: you think
  • I am drunk?”
  • “I think you have been drinking, Mr. Carton.”
  • “Think? You know I have been drinking.”
  • “Since I must say so, I know it.”
  • “Then you shall likewise know why. I am a disappointed drudge, sir. I
  • care for no man on earth, and no man on earth cares for me.”
  • “Much to be regretted. You might have used your talents better.”
  • “May be so, Mr. Darnay; may be not. Don't let your sober face elate you,
  • however; you don't know what it may come to. Good night!”
  • When he was left alone, this strange being took up a candle, went to a
  • glass that hung against the wall, and surveyed himself minutely in it.
  • “Do you particularly like the man?” he muttered, at his own image; “why
  • should you particularly like a man who resembles you? There is nothing
  • in you to like; you know that. Ah, confound you! What a change you have
  • made in yourself! A good reason for taking to a man, that he shows you
  • what you have fallen away from, and what you might have been! Change
  • places with him, and would you have been looked at by those blue eyes as
  • he was, and commiserated by that agitated face as he was? Come on, and
  • have it out in plain words! You hate the fellow.”
  • He resorted to his pint of wine for consolation, drank it all in a few
  • minutes, and fell asleep on his arms, with his hair straggling over the
  • table, and a long winding-sheet in the candle dripping down upon him.
  • V. The Jackal
  • Those were drinking days, and most men drank hard. So very great is
  • the improvement Time has brought about in such habits, that a moderate
  • statement of the quantity of wine and punch which one man would swallow
  • in the course of a night, without any detriment to his reputation as a
  • perfect gentleman, would seem, in these days, a ridiculous exaggeration.
  • The learned profession of the law was certainly not behind any other
  • learned profession in its Bacchanalian propensities; neither was Mr.
  • Stryver, already fast shouldering his way to a large and lucrative
  • practice, behind his compeers in this particular, any more than in the
  • drier parts of the legal race.
  • A favourite at the Old Bailey, and eke at the Sessions, Mr. Stryver had
  • begun cautiously to hew away the lower staves of the ladder on which
  • he mounted. Sessions and Old Bailey had now to summon their favourite,
  • specially, to their longing arms; and shouldering itself towards the
  • visage of the Lord Chief Justice in the Court of King's Bench, the
  • florid countenance of Mr. Stryver might be daily seen, bursting out of
  • the bed of wigs, like a great sunflower pushing its way at the sun from
  • among a rank garden-full of flaring companions.
  • It had once been noted at the Bar, that while Mr. Stryver was a glib
  • man, and an unscrupulous, and a ready, and a bold, he had not that
  • faculty of extracting the essence from a heap of statements, which is
  • among the most striking and necessary of the advocate's accomplishments.
  • But, a remarkable improvement came upon him as to this. The more
  • business he got, the greater his power seemed to grow of getting at its
  • pith and marrow; and however late at night he sat carousing with Sydney
  • Carton, he always had his points at his fingers' ends in the morning.
  • Sydney Carton, idlest and most unpromising of men, was Stryver's great
  • ally. What the two drank together, between Hilary Term and Michaelmas,
  • might have floated a king's ship. Stryver never had a case in hand,
  • anywhere, but Carton was there, with his hands in his pockets, staring
  • at the ceiling of the court; they went the same Circuit, and even there
  • they prolonged their usual orgies late into the night, and Carton was
  • rumoured to be seen at broad day, going home stealthily and unsteadily
  • to his lodgings, like a dissipated cat. At last, it began to get about,
  • among such as were interested in the matter, that although Sydney Carton
  • would never be a lion, he was an amazingly good jackal, and that he
  • rendered suit and service to Stryver in that humble capacity.
  • “Ten o'clock, sir,” said the man at the tavern, whom he had charged to
  • wake him--“ten o'clock, sir.”
  • “_What's_ the matter?”
  • “Ten o'clock, sir.”
  • “What do you mean? Ten o'clock at night?”
  • “Yes, sir. Your honour told me to call you.”
  • “Oh! I remember. Very well, very well.”
  • After a few dull efforts to get to sleep again, which the man
  • dexterously combated by stirring the fire continuously for five minutes,
  • he got up, tossed his hat on, and walked out. He turned into the Temple,
  • and, having revived himself by twice pacing the pavements of King's
  • Bench-walk and Paper-buildings, turned into the Stryver chambers.
  • The Stryver clerk, who never assisted at these conferences, had gone
  • home, and the Stryver principal opened the door. He had his slippers on,
  • and a loose bed-gown, and his throat was bare for his greater ease. He
  • had that rather wild, strained, seared marking about the eyes, which
  • may be observed in all free livers of his class, from the portrait of
  • Jeffries downward, and which can be traced, under various disguises of
  • Art, through the portraits of every Drinking Age.
  • “You are a little late, Memory,” said Stryver.
  • “About the usual time; it may be a quarter of an hour later.”
  • They went into a dingy room lined with books and littered with papers,
  • where there was a blazing fire. A kettle steamed upon the hob, and in
  • the midst of the wreck of papers a table shone, with plenty of wine upon
  • it, and brandy, and rum, and sugar, and lemons.
  • “You have had your bottle, I perceive, Sydney.”
  • “Two to-night, I think. I have been dining with the day's client; or
  • seeing him dine--it's all one!”
  • “That was a rare point, Sydney, that you brought to bear upon the
  • identification. How did you come by it? When did it strike you?”
  • “I thought he was rather a handsome fellow, and I thought I should have
  • been much the same sort of fellow, if I had had any luck.”
  • Mr. Stryver laughed till he shook his precocious paunch.
  • “You and your luck, Sydney! Get to work, get to work.”
  • Sullenly enough, the jackal loosened his dress, went into an adjoining
  • room, and came back with a large jug of cold water, a basin, and a towel
  • or two. Steeping the towels in the water, and partially wringing them
  • out, he folded them on his head in a manner hideous to behold, sat down
  • at the table, and said, “Now I am ready!”
  • “Not much boiling down to be done to-night, Memory,” said Mr. Stryver,
  • gaily, as he looked among his papers.
  • “How much?”
  • “Only two sets of them.”
  • “Give me the worst first.”
  • “There they are, Sydney. Fire away!”
  • The lion then composed himself on his back on a sofa on one side of the
  • drinking-table, while the jackal sat at his own paper-bestrewn table
  • proper, on the other side of it, with the bottles and glasses ready to
  • his hand. Both resorted to the drinking-table without stint, but each in
  • a different way; the lion for the most part reclining with his hands in
  • his waistband, looking at the fire, or occasionally flirting with some
  • lighter document; the jackal, with knitted brows and intent face,
  • so deep in his task, that his eyes did not even follow the hand he
  • stretched out for his glass--which often groped about, for a minute or
  • more, before it found the glass for his lips. Two or three times, the
  • matter in hand became so knotty, that the jackal found it imperative on
  • him to get up, and steep his towels anew. From these pilgrimages to the
  • jug and basin, he returned with such eccentricities of damp headgear as
  • no words can describe; which were made the more ludicrous by his anxious
  • gravity.
  • At length the jackal had got together a compact repast for the lion, and
  • proceeded to offer it to him. The lion took it with care and caution,
  • made his selections from it, and his remarks upon it, and the jackal
  • assisted both. When the repast was fully discussed, the lion put his
  • hands in his waistband again, and lay down to meditate. The jackal then
  • invigorated himself with a bumper for his throttle, and a fresh application
  • to his head, and applied himself to the collection of a second meal;
  • this was administered to the lion in the same manner, and was not
  • disposed of until the clocks struck three in the morning.
  • “And now we have done, Sydney, fill a bumper of punch,” said Mr.
  • Stryver.
  • The jackal removed the towels from his head, which had been steaming
  • again, shook himself, yawned, shivered, and complied.
  • “You were very sound, Sydney, in the matter of those crown witnesses
  • to-day. Every question told.”
  • “I always am sound; am I not?”
  • “I don't gainsay it. What has roughened your temper? Put some punch to
  • it and smooth it again.”
  • With a deprecatory grunt, the jackal again complied.
  • “The old Sydney Carton of old Shrewsbury School,” said Stryver, nodding
  • his head over him as he reviewed him in the present and the past, “the
  • old seesaw Sydney. Up one minute and down the next; now in spirits and
  • now in despondency!”
  • “Ah!” returned the other, sighing: “yes! The same Sydney, with the same
  • luck. Even then, I did exercises for other boys, and seldom did my own.”
  • “And why not?”
  • “God knows. It was my way, I suppose.”
  • He sat, with his hands in his pockets and his legs stretched out before
  • him, looking at the fire.
  • “Carton,” said his friend, squaring himself at him with a bullying air,
  • as if the fire-grate had been the furnace in which sustained endeavour
  • was forged, and the one delicate thing to be done for the old Sydney
  • Carton of old Shrewsbury School was to shoulder him into it, “your way
  • is, and always was, a lame way. You summon no energy and purpose. Look
  • at me.”
  • “Oh, botheration!” returned Sydney, with a lighter and more
  • good-humoured laugh, “don't _you_ be moral!”
  • “How have I done what I have done?” said Stryver; “how do I do what I
  • do?”
  • “Partly through paying me to help you, I suppose. But it's not worth
  • your while to apostrophise me, or the air, about it; what you want to
  • do, you do. You were always in the front rank, and I was always behind.”
  • “I had to get into the front rank; I was not born there, was I?”
  • “I was not present at the ceremony; but my opinion is you were,” said
  • Carton. At this, he laughed again, and they both laughed.
  • “Before Shrewsbury, and at Shrewsbury, and ever since Shrewsbury,”
  • pursued Carton, “you have fallen into your rank, and I have fallen into
  • mine. Even when we were fellow-students in the Student-Quarter of Paris,
  • picking up French, and French law, and other French crumbs that we
  • didn't get much good of, you were always somewhere, and I was always
  • nowhere.”
  • “And whose fault was that?”
  • “Upon my soul, I am not sure that it was not yours. You were always
  • driving and riving and shouldering and passing, to that restless degree
  • that I had no chance for my life but in rust and repose. It's a gloomy
  • thing, however, to talk about one's own past, with the day breaking.
  • Turn me in some other direction before I go.”
  • “Well then! Pledge me to the pretty witness,” said Stryver, holding up
  • his glass. “Are you turned in a pleasant direction?”
  • Apparently not, for he became gloomy again.
  • “Pretty witness,” he muttered, looking down into his glass. “I have had
  • enough of witnesses to-day and to-night; who's your pretty witness?”
  • “The picturesque doctor's daughter, Miss Manette.”
  • “_She_ pretty?”
  • “Is she not?”
  • “No.”
  • “Why, man alive, she was the admiration of the whole Court!”
  • “Rot the admiration of the whole Court! Who made the Old Bailey a judge
  • of beauty? She was a golden-haired doll!”
  • “Do you know, Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, looking at him with sharp eyes,
  • and slowly drawing a hand across his florid face: “do you know, I rather
  • thought, at the time, that you sympathised with the golden-haired doll,
  • and were quick to see what happened to the golden-haired doll?”
  • “Quick to see what happened! If a girl, doll or no doll, swoons within a
  • yard or two of a man's nose, he can see it without a perspective-glass.
  • I pledge you, but I deny the beauty. And now I'll have no more drink;
  • I'll get to bed.”
  • When his host followed him out on the staircase with a candle, to light
  • him down the stairs, the day was coldly looking in through its grimy
  • windows. When he got out of the house, the air was cold and sad, the
  • dull sky overcast, the river dark and dim, the whole scene like a
  • lifeless desert. And wreaths of dust were spinning round and round
  • before the morning blast, as if the desert-sand had risen far away, and
  • the first spray of it in its advance had begun to overwhelm the city.
  • Waste forces within him, and a desert all around, this man stood still
  • on his way across a silent terrace, and saw for a moment, lying in the
  • wilderness before him, a mirage of honourable ambition, self-denial, and
  • perseverance. In the fair city of this vision, there were airy galleries
  • from which the loves and graces looked upon him, gardens in which the
  • fruits of life hung ripening, waters of Hope that sparkled in his sight.
  • A moment, and it was gone. Climbing to a high chamber in a well of
  • houses, he threw himself down in his clothes on a neglected bed, and its
  • pillow was wet with wasted tears.
  • Sadly, sadly, the sun rose; it rose upon no sadder sight than the man of
  • good abilities and good emotions, incapable of their directed exercise,
  • incapable of his own help and his own happiness, sensible of the blight
  • on him, and resigning himself to let it eat him away.
  • VI. Hundreds of People
  • The quiet lodgings of Doctor Manette were in a quiet street-corner not
  • far from Soho-square. On the afternoon of a certain fine Sunday when the
  • waves of four months had rolled over the trial for treason, and carried
  • it, as to the public interest and memory, far out to sea, Mr. Jarvis
  • Lorry walked along the sunny streets from Clerkenwell where he lived,
  • on his way to dine with the Doctor. After several relapses into
  • business-absorption, Mr. Lorry had become the Doctor's friend, and the
  • quiet street-corner was the sunny part of his life.
  • On this certain fine Sunday, Mr. Lorry walked towards Soho, early in
  • the afternoon, for three reasons of habit. Firstly, because, on fine
  • Sundays, he often walked out, before dinner, with the Doctor and Lucie;
  • secondly, because, on unfavourable Sundays, he was accustomed to be with
  • them as the family friend, talking, reading, looking out of window, and
  • generally getting through the day; thirdly, because he happened to have
  • his own little shrewd doubts to solve, and knew how the ways of the
  • Doctor's household pointed to that time as a likely time for solving
  • them.
  • A quainter corner than the corner where the Doctor lived, was not to be
  • found in London. There was no way through it, and the front windows of
  • the Doctor's lodgings commanded a pleasant little vista of street that
  • had a congenial air of retirement on it. There were few buildings then,
  • north of the Oxford-road, and forest-trees flourished, and wild flowers
  • grew, and the hawthorn blossomed, in the now vanished fields. As a
  • consequence, country airs circulated in Soho with vigorous freedom,
  • instead of languishing into the parish like stray paupers without a
  • settlement; and there was many a good south wall, not far off, on which
  • the peaches ripened in their season.
  • The summer light struck into the corner brilliantly in the earlier part
  • of the day; but, when the streets grew hot, the corner was in shadow,
  • though not in shadow so remote but that you could see beyond it into a
  • glare of brightness. It was a cool spot, staid but cheerful, a wonderful
  • place for echoes, and a very harbour from the raging streets.
  • There ought to have been a tranquil bark in such an anchorage, and
  • there was. The Doctor occupied two floors of a large stiff house, where
  • several callings purported to be pursued by day, but whereof little was
  • audible any day, and which was shunned by all of them at night. In
  • a building at the back, attainable by a courtyard where a plane-tree
  • rustled its green leaves, church-organs claimed to be made, and silver
  • to be chased, and likewise gold to be beaten by some mysterious giant
  • who had a golden arm starting out of the wall of the front hall--as if
  • he had beaten himself precious, and menaced a similar conversion of all
  • visitors. Very little of these trades, or of a lonely lodger rumoured
  • to live up-stairs, or of a dim coach-trimming maker asserted to have
  • a counting-house below, was ever heard or seen. Occasionally, a stray
  • workman putting his coat on, traversed the hall, or a stranger peered
  • about there, or a distant clink was heard across the courtyard, or a
  • thump from the golden giant. These, however, were only the exceptions
  • required to prove the rule that the sparrows in the plane-tree behind
  • the house, and the echoes in the corner before it, had their own way
  • from Sunday morning unto Saturday night.
  • Doctor Manette received such patients here as his old reputation, and
  • its revival in the floating whispers of his story, brought him.
  • His scientific knowledge, and his vigilance and skill in conducting
  • ingenious experiments, brought him otherwise into moderate request, and
  • he earned as much as he wanted.
  • These things were within Mr. Jarvis Lorry's knowledge, thoughts, and
  • notice, when he rang the door-bell of the tranquil house in the corner,
  • on the fine Sunday afternoon.
  • “Doctor Manette at home?”
  • Expected home.
  • “Miss Lucie at home?”
  • Expected home.
  • “Miss Pross at home?”
  • Possibly at home, but of a certainty impossible for handmaid to
  • anticipate intentions of Miss Pross, as to admission or denial of the
  • fact.
  • “As I am at home myself,” said Mr. Lorry, “I'll go upstairs.”
  • Although the Doctor's daughter had known nothing of the country of her
  • birth, she appeared to have innately derived from it that ability to
  • make much of little means, which is one of its most useful and most
  • agreeable characteristics. Simple as the furniture was, it was set off
  • by so many little adornments, of no value but for their taste and fancy,
  • that its effect was delightful. The disposition of everything in the
  • rooms, from the largest object to the least; the arrangement of colours,
  • the elegant variety and contrast obtained by thrift in trifles, by
  • delicate hands, clear eyes, and good sense; were at once so pleasant in
  • themselves, and so expressive of their originator, that, as Mr. Lorry
  • stood looking about him, the very chairs and tables seemed to ask him,
  • with something of that peculiar expression which he knew so well by this
  • time, whether he approved?
  • There were three rooms on a floor, and, the doors by which they
  • communicated being put open that the air might pass freely through them
  • all, Mr. Lorry, smilingly observant of that fanciful resemblance which
  • he detected all around him, walked from one to another. The first was
  • the best room, and in it were Lucie's birds, and flowers, and books,
  • and desk, and work-table, and box of water-colours; the second was
  • the Doctor's consulting-room, used also as the dining-room; the third,
  • changingly speckled by the rustle of the plane-tree in the yard, was the
  • Doctor's bedroom, and there, in a corner, stood the disused shoemaker's
  • bench and tray of tools, much as it had stood on the fifth floor of the
  • dismal house by the wine-shop, in the suburb of Saint Antoine in Paris.
  • “I wonder,” said Mr. Lorry, pausing in his looking about, “that he keeps
  • that reminder of his sufferings about him!”
  • “And why wonder at that?” was the abrupt inquiry that made him start.
  • It proceeded from Miss Pross, the wild red woman, strong of hand, whose
  • acquaintance he had first made at the Royal George Hotel at Dover, and
  • had since improved.
  • “I should have thought--” Mr. Lorry began.
  • “Pooh! You'd have thought!” said Miss Pross; and Mr. Lorry left off.
  • “How do you do?” inquired that lady then--sharply, and yet as if to
  • express that she bore him no malice.
  • “I am pretty well, I thank you,” answered Mr. Lorry, with meekness; “how
  • are you?”
  • “Nothing to boast of,” said Miss Pross.
  • “Indeed?”
  • “Ah! indeed!” said Miss Pross. “I am very much put out about my
  • Ladybird.”
  • “Indeed?”
  • “For gracious sake say something else besides 'indeed,' or you'll
  • fidget me to death,” said Miss Pross: whose character (dissociated from
  • stature) was shortness.
  • “Really, then?” said Mr. Lorry, as an amendment.
  • “Really, is bad enough,” returned Miss Pross, “but better. Yes, I am
  • very much put out.”
  • “May I ask the cause?”
  • “I don't want dozens of people who are not at all worthy of Ladybird, to
  • come here looking after her,” said Miss Pross.
  • “_Do_ dozens come for that purpose?”
  • “Hundreds,” said Miss Pross.
  • It was characteristic of this lady (as of some other people before her
  • time and since) that whenever her original proposition was questioned,
  • she exaggerated it.
  • “Dear me!” said Mr. Lorry, as the safest remark he could think of.
  • “I have lived with the darling--or the darling has lived with me, and
  • paid me for it; which she certainly should never have done, you may take
  • your affidavit, if I could have afforded to keep either myself or her
  • for nothing--since she was ten years old. And it's really very hard,”
  • said Miss Pross.
  • Not seeing with precision what was very hard, Mr. Lorry shook his head;
  • using that important part of himself as a sort of fairy cloak that would
  • fit anything.
  • “All sorts of people who are not in the least degree worthy of the pet,
  • are always turning up,” said Miss Pross. “When you began it--”
  • “_I_ began it, Miss Pross?”
  • “Didn't you? Who brought her father to life?”
  • “Oh! If _that_ was beginning it--” said Mr. Lorry.
  • “It wasn't ending it, I suppose? I say, when you began it, it was hard
  • enough; not that I have any fault to find with Doctor Manette, except
  • that he is not worthy of such a daughter, which is no imputation on
  • him, for it was not to be expected that anybody should be, under any
  • circumstances. But it really is doubly and trebly hard to have crowds
  • and multitudes of people turning up after him (I could have forgiven
  • him), to take Ladybird's affections away from me.”
  • Mr. Lorry knew Miss Pross to be very jealous, but he also knew her by
  • this time to be, beneath the service of her eccentricity, one of those
  • unselfish creatures--found only among women--who will, for pure love and
  • admiration, bind themselves willing slaves, to youth when they have lost
  • it, to beauty that they never had, to accomplishments that they were
  • never fortunate enough to gain, to bright hopes that never shone upon
  • their own sombre lives. He knew enough of the world to know that there
  • is nothing in it better than the faithful service of the heart; so
  • rendered and so free from any mercenary taint, he had such an exalted
  • respect for it, that in the retributive arrangements made by his own
  • mind--we all make such arrangements, more or less--he stationed Miss
  • Pross much nearer to the lower Angels than many ladies immeasurably
  • better got up both by Nature and Art, who had balances at Tellson's.
  • “There never was, nor will be, but one man worthy of Ladybird,” said
  • Miss Pross; “and that was my brother Solomon, if he hadn't made a
  • mistake in life.”
  • Here again: Mr. Lorry's inquiries into Miss Pross's personal history had
  • established the fact that her brother Solomon was a heartless scoundrel
  • who had stripped her of everything she possessed, as a stake to
  • speculate with, and had abandoned her in her poverty for evermore, with
  • no touch of compunction. Miss Pross's fidelity of belief in Solomon
  • (deducting a mere trifle for this slight mistake) was quite a serious
  • matter with Mr. Lorry, and had its weight in his good opinion of her.
  • “As we happen to be alone for the moment, and are both people of
  • business,” he said, when they had got back to the drawing-room and had
  • sat down there in friendly relations, “let me ask you--does the Doctor,
  • in talking with Lucie, never refer to the shoemaking time, yet?”
  • “Never.”
  • “And yet keeps that bench and those tools beside him?”
  • “Ah!” returned Miss Pross, shaking her head. “But I don't say he don't
  • refer to it within himself.”
  • “Do you believe that he thinks of it much?”
  • “I do,” said Miss Pross.
  • “Do you imagine--” Mr. Lorry had begun, when Miss Pross took him up
  • short with:
  • “Never imagine anything. Have no imagination at all.”
  • “I stand corrected; do you suppose--you go so far as to suppose,
  • sometimes?”
  • “Now and then,” said Miss Pross.
  • “Do you suppose,” Mr. Lorry went on, with a laughing twinkle in his
  • bright eye, as it looked kindly at her, “that Doctor Manette has any
  • theory of his own, preserved through all those years, relative to
  • the cause of his being so oppressed; perhaps, even to the name of his
  • oppressor?”
  • “I don't suppose anything about it but what Ladybird tells me.”
  • “And that is--?”
  • “That she thinks he has.”
  • “Now don't be angry at my asking all these questions; because I am a
  • mere dull man of business, and you are a woman of business.”
  • “Dull?” Miss Pross inquired, with placidity.
  • Rather wishing his modest adjective away, Mr. Lorry replied, “No, no,
  • no. Surely not. To return to business:--Is it not remarkable that Doctor
  • Manette, unquestionably innocent of any crime as we are all well assured
  • he is, should never touch upon that question? I will not say with me,
  • though he had business relations with me many years ago, and we are now
  • intimate; I will say with the fair daughter to whom he is so devotedly
  • attached, and who is so devotedly attached to him? Believe me, Miss
  • Pross, I don't approach the topic with you, out of curiosity, but out of
  • zealous interest.”
  • “Well! To the best of my understanding, and bad's the best, you'll tell
  • me,” said Miss Pross, softened by the tone of the apology, “he is afraid
  • of the whole subject.”
  • “Afraid?”
  • “It's plain enough, I should think, why he may be. It's a dreadful
  • remembrance. Besides that, his loss of himself grew out of it. Not
  • knowing how he lost himself, or how he recovered himself, he may never
  • feel certain of not losing himself again. That alone wouldn't make the
  • subject pleasant, I should think.”
  • It was a profounder remark than Mr. Lorry had looked for. “True,” said
  • he, “and fearful to reflect upon. Yet, a doubt lurks in my mind, Miss
  • Pross, whether it is good for Doctor Manette to have that suppression
  • always shut up within him. Indeed, it is this doubt and the uneasiness
  • it sometimes causes me that has led me to our present confidence.”
  • “Can't be helped,” said Miss Pross, shaking her head. “Touch that
  • string, and he instantly changes for the worse. Better leave it alone.
  • In short, must leave it alone, like or no like. Sometimes, he gets up in
  • the dead of the night, and will be heard, by us overhead there, walking
  • up and down, walking up and down, in his room. Ladybird has learnt to
  • know then that his mind is walking up and down, walking up and down, in
  • his old prison. She hurries to him, and they go on together, walking up
  • and down, walking up and down, until he is composed. But he never says
  • a word of the true reason of his restlessness, to her, and she finds it
  • best not to hint at it to him. In silence they go walking up and down
  • together, walking up and down together, till her love and company have
  • brought him to himself.”
  • Notwithstanding Miss Pross's denial of her own imagination, there was a
  • perception of the pain of being monotonously haunted by one sad idea,
  • in her repetition of the phrase, walking up and down, which testified to
  • her possessing such a thing.
  • The corner has been mentioned as a wonderful corner for echoes; it
  • had begun to echo so resoundingly to the tread of coming feet, that it
  • seemed as though the very mention of that weary pacing to and fro had
  • set it going.
  • “Here they are!” said Miss Pross, rising to break up the conference;
  • “and now we shall have hundreds of people pretty soon!”
  • It was such a curious corner in its acoustical properties, such a
  • peculiar Ear of a place, that as Mr. Lorry stood at the open window,
  • looking for the father and daughter whose steps he heard, he fancied
  • they would never approach. Not only would the echoes die away, as though
  • the steps had gone; but, echoes of other steps that never came would be
  • heard in their stead, and would die away for good when they seemed close
  • at hand. However, father and daughter did at last appear, and Miss Pross
  • was ready at the street door to receive them.
  • Miss Pross was a pleasant sight, albeit wild, and red, and grim, taking
  • off her darling's bonnet when she came up-stairs, and touching it up
  • with the ends of her handkerchief, and blowing the dust off it, and
  • folding her mantle ready for laying by, and smoothing her rich hair with
  • as much pride as she could possibly have taken in her own hair if she
  • had been the vainest and handsomest of women. Her darling was a pleasant
  • sight too, embracing her and thanking her, and protesting against
  • her taking so much trouble for her--which last she only dared to do
  • playfully, or Miss Pross, sorely hurt, would have retired to her own
  • chamber and cried. The Doctor was a pleasant sight too, looking on at
  • them, and telling Miss Pross how she spoilt Lucie, in accents and with
  • eyes that had as much spoiling in them as Miss Pross had, and would
  • have had more if it were possible. Mr. Lorry was a pleasant sight too,
  • beaming at all this in his little wig, and thanking his bachelor
  • stars for having lighted him in his declining years to a Home. But, no
  • Hundreds of people came to see the sights, and Mr. Lorry looked in vain
  • for the fulfilment of Miss Pross's prediction.
  • Dinner-time, and still no Hundreds of people. In the arrangements of
  • the little household, Miss Pross took charge of the lower regions, and
  • always acquitted herself marvellously. Her dinners, of a very modest
  • quality, were so well cooked and so well served, and so neat in their
  • contrivances, half English and half French, that nothing could be
  • better. Miss Pross's friendship being of the thoroughly practical
  • kind, she had ravaged Soho and the adjacent provinces, in search of
  • impoverished French, who, tempted by shillings and half-crowns, would
  • impart culinary mysteries to her. From these decayed sons and daughters
  • of Gaul, she had acquired such wonderful arts, that the woman and girl
  • who formed the staff of domestics regarded her as quite a Sorceress,
  • or Cinderella's Godmother: who would send out for a fowl, a rabbit,
  • a vegetable or two from the garden, and change them into anything she
  • pleased.
  • On Sundays, Miss Pross dined at the Doctor's table, but on other days
  • persisted in taking her meals at unknown periods, either in the lower
  • regions, or in her own room on the second floor--a blue chamber, to
  • which no one but her Ladybird ever gained admittance. On this occasion,
  • Miss Pross, responding to Ladybird's pleasant face and pleasant efforts
  • to please her, unbent exceedingly; so the dinner was very pleasant, too.
  • It was an oppressive day, and, after dinner, Lucie proposed that the
  • wine should be carried out under the plane-tree, and they should sit
  • there in the air. As everything turned upon her, and revolved about her,
  • they went out under the plane-tree, and she carried the wine down for
  • the special benefit of Mr. Lorry. She had installed herself, some
  • time before, as Mr. Lorry's cup-bearer; and while they sat under the
  • plane-tree, talking, she kept his glass replenished. Mysterious backs
  • and ends of houses peeped at them as they talked, and the plane-tree
  • whispered to them in its own way above their heads.
  • Still, the Hundreds of people did not present themselves. Mr. Darnay
  • presented himself while they were sitting under the plane-tree, but he
  • was only One.
  • Doctor Manette received him kindly, and so did Lucie. But, Miss Pross
  • suddenly became afflicted with a twitching in the head and body, and
  • retired into the house. She was not unfrequently the victim of this
  • disorder, and she called it, in familiar conversation, “a fit of the
  • jerks.”
  • The Doctor was in his best condition, and looked specially young. The
  • resemblance between him and Lucie was very strong at such times, and as
  • they sat side by side, she leaning on his shoulder, and he resting
  • his arm on the back of her chair, it was very agreeable to trace the
  • likeness.
  • He had been talking all day, on many subjects, and with unusual
  • vivacity. “Pray, Doctor Manette,” said Mr. Darnay, as they sat under the
  • plane-tree--and he said it in the natural pursuit of the topic in hand,
  • which happened to be the old buildings of London--“have you seen much of
  • the Tower?”
  • “Lucie and I have been there; but only casually. We have seen enough of
  • it, to know that it teems with interest; little more.”
  • “_I_ have been there, as you remember,” said Darnay, with a smile,
  • though reddening a little angrily, “in another character, and not in a
  • character that gives facilities for seeing much of it. They told me a
  • curious thing when I was there.”
  • “What was that?” Lucie asked.
  • “In making some alterations, the workmen came upon an old dungeon, which
  • had been, for many years, built up and forgotten. Every stone of
  • its inner wall was covered by inscriptions which had been carved by
  • prisoners--dates, names, complaints, and prayers. Upon a corner stone
  • in an angle of the wall, one prisoner, who seemed to have gone to
  • execution, had cut as his last work, three letters. They were done with
  • some very poor instrument, and hurriedly, with an unsteady hand.
  • At first, they were read as D. I. C.; but, on being more carefully
  • examined, the last letter was found to be G. There was no record or
  • legend of any prisoner with those initials, and many fruitless guesses
  • were made what the name could have been. At length, it was suggested
  • that the letters were not initials, but the complete word, DIG. The
  • floor was examined very carefully under the inscription, and, in the
  • earth beneath a stone, or tile, or some fragment of paving, were found
  • the ashes of a paper, mingled with the ashes of a small leathern case
  • or bag. What the unknown prisoner had written will never be read, but he
  • had written something, and hidden it away to keep it from the gaoler.”
  • “My father,” exclaimed Lucie, “you are ill!”
  • He had suddenly started up, with his hand to his head. His manner and
  • his look quite terrified them all.
  • “No, my dear, not ill. There are large drops of rain falling, and they
  • made me start. We had better go in.”
  • He recovered himself almost instantly. Rain was really falling in large
  • drops, and he showed the back of his hand with rain-drops on it. But, he
  • said not a single word in reference to the discovery that had been told
  • of, and, as they went into the house, the business eye of Mr. Lorry
  • either detected, or fancied it detected, on his face, as it turned
  • towards Charles Darnay, the same singular look that had been upon it
  • when it turned towards him in the passages of the Court House.
  • He recovered himself so quickly, however, that Mr. Lorry had doubts of
  • his business eye. The arm of the golden giant in the hall was not more
  • steady than he was, when he stopped under it to remark to them that he
  • was not yet proof against slight surprises (if he ever would be), and
  • that the rain had startled him.
  • Tea-time, and Miss Pross making tea, with another fit of the jerks upon
  • her, and yet no Hundreds of people. Mr. Carton had lounged in, but he
  • made only Two.
  • The night was so very sultry, that although they sat with doors and
  • windows open, they were overpowered by heat. When the tea-table was
  • done with, they all moved to one of the windows, and looked out into the
  • heavy twilight. Lucie sat by her father; Darnay sat beside her; Carton
  • leaned against a window. The curtains were long and white, and some of
  • the thunder-gusts that whirled into the corner, caught them up to the
  • ceiling, and waved them like spectral wings.
  • “The rain-drops are still falling, large, heavy, and few,” said Doctor
  • Manette. “It comes slowly.”
  • “It comes surely,” said Carton.
  • They spoke low, as people watching and waiting mostly do; as people in a
  • dark room, watching and waiting for Lightning, always do.
  • There was a great hurry in the streets of people speeding away to
  • get shelter before the storm broke; the wonderful corner for echoes
  • resounded with the echoes of footsteps coming and going, yet not a
  • footstep was there.
  • “A multitude of people, and yet a solitude!” said Darnay, when they had
  • listened for a while.
  • “Is it not impressive, Mr. Darnay?” asked Lucie. “Sometimes, I have
  • sat here of an evening, until I have fancied--but even the shade of
  • a foolish fancy makes me shudder to-night, when all is so black and
  • solemn--”
  • “Let us shudder too. We may know what it is.”
  • “It will seem nothing to you. Such whims are only impressive as we
  • originate them, I think; they are not to be communicated. I have
  • sometimes sat alone here of an evening, listening, until I have made
  • the echoes out to be the echoes of all the footsteps that are coming
  • by-and-bye into our lives.”
  • “There is a great crowd coming one day into our lives, if that be so,”
  • Sydney Carton struck in, in his moody way.
  • The footsteps were incessant, and the hurry of them became more and more
  • rapid. The corner echoed and re-echoed with the tread of feet; some,
  • as it seemed, under the windows; some, as it seemed, in the room; some
  • coming, some going, some breaking off, some stopping altogether; all in
  • the distant streets, and not one within sight.
  • “Are all these footsteps destined to come to all of us, Miss Manette, or
  • are we to divide them among us?”
  • “I don't know, Mr. Darnay; I told you it was a foolish fancy, but you
  • asked for it. When I have yielded myself to it, I have been alone, and
  • then I have imagined them the footsteps of the people who are to come
  • into my life, and my father's.”
  • “I take them into mine!” said Carton. “_I_ ask no questions and make no
  • stipulations. There is a great crowd bearing down upon us, Miss Manette,
  • and I see them--by the Lightning.” He added the last words, after there
  • had been a vivid flash which had shown him lounging in the window.
  • “And I hear them!” he added again, after a peal of thunder. “Here they
  • come, fast, fierce, and furious!”
  • It was the rush and roar of rain that he typified, and it stopped him,
  • for no voice could be heard in it. A memorable storm of thunder and
  • lightning broke with that sweep of water, and there was not a moment's
  • interval in crash, and fire, and rain, until after the moon rose at
  • midnight.
  • The great bell of Saint Paul's was striking one in the cleared air, when
  • Mr. Lorry, escorted by Jerry, high-booted and bearing a lantern, set
  • forth on his return-passage to Clerkenwell. There were solitary patches
  • of road on the way between Soho and Clerkenwell, and Mr. Lorry, mindful
  • of foot-pads, always retained Jerry for this service: though it was
  • usually performed a good two hours earlier.
  • “What a night it has been! Almost a night, Jerry,” said Mr. Lorry, “to
  • bring the dead out of their graves.”
  • “I never see the night myself, master--nor yet I don't expect to--what
  • would do that,” answered Jerry.
  • “Good night, Mr. Carton,” said the man of business. “Good night, Mr.
  • Darnay. Shall we ever see such a night again, together!”
  • Perhaps. Perhaps, see the great crowd of people with its rush and roar,
  • bearing down upon them, too.
  • VII. Monseigneur in Town
  • Monseigneur, one of the great lords in power at the Court, held his
  • fortnightly reception in his grand hotel in Paris. Monseigneur was in
  • his inner room, his sanctuary of sanctuaries, the Holiest of Holiests to
  • the crowd of worshippers in the suite of rooms without. Monseigneur
  • was about to take his chocolate. Monseigneur could swallow a great many
  • things with ease, and was by some few sullen minds supposed to be rather
  • rapidly swallowing France; but, his morning's chocolate could not so
  • much as get into the throat of Monseigneur, without the aid of four
  • strong men besides the Cook.
  • Yes. It took four men, all four ablaze with gorgeous decoration, and the
  • Chief of them unable to exist with fewer than two gold watches in his
  • pocket, emulative of the noble and chaste fashion set by Monseigneur, to
  • conduct the happy chocolate to Monseigneur's lips. One lacquey carried
  • the chocolate-pot into the sacred presence; a second, milled and frothed
  • the chocolate with the little instrument he bore for that function;
  • a third, presented the favoured napkin; a fourth (he of the two gold
  • watches), poured the chocolate out. It was impossible for Monseigneur to
  • dispense with one of these attendants on the chocolate and hold his high
  • place under the admiring Heavens. Deep would have been the blot upon
  • his escutcheon if his chocolate had been ignobly waited on by only three
  • men; he must have died of two.
  • Monseigneur had been out at a little supper last night, where the Comedy
  • and the Grand Opera were charmingly represented. Monseigneur was out at
  • a little supper most nights, with fascinating company. So polite and so
  • impressible was Monseigneur, that the Comedy and the Grand Opera had far
  • more influence with him in the tiresome articles of state affairs and
  • state secrets, than the needs of all France. A happy circumstance
  • for France, as the like always is for all countries similarly
  • favoured!--always was for England (by way of example), in the regretted
  • days of the merry Stuart who sold it.
  • Monseigneur had one truly noble idea of general public business, which
  • was, to let everything go on in its own way; of particular public
  • business, Monseigneur had the other truly noble idea that it must all go
  • his way--tend to his own power and pocket. Of his pleasures, general and
  • particular, Monseigneur had the other truly noble idea, that the world
  • was made for them. The text of his order (altered from the original
  • by only a pronoun, which is not much) ran: “The earth and the fulness
  • thereof are mine, saith Monseigneur.”
  • Yet, Monseigneur had slowly found that vulgar embarrassments crept into
  • his affairs, both private and public; and he had, as to both classes of
  • affairs, allied himself perforce with a Farmer-General. As to finances
  • public, because Monseigneur could not make anything at all of them, and
  • must consequently let them out to somebody who could; as to finances
  • private, because Farmer-Generals were rich, and Monseigneur, after
  • generations of great luxury and expense, was growing poor. Hence
  • Monseigneur had taken his sister from a convent, while there was yet
  • time to ward off the impending veil, the cheapest garment she could
  • wear, and had bestowed her as a prize upon a very rich Farmer-General,
  • poor in family. Which Farmer-General, carrying an appropriate cane with
  • a golden apple on the top of it, was now among the company in the outer
  • rooms, much prostrated before by mankind--always excepting superior
  • mankind of the blood of Monseigneur, who, his own wife included, looked
  • down upon him with the loftiest contempt.
  • A sumptuous man was the Farmer-General. Thirty horses stood in his
  • stables, twenty-four male domestics sat in his halls, six body-women
  • waited on his wife. As one who pretended to do nothing but plunder and
  • forage where he could, the Farmer-General--howsoever his matrimonial
  • relations conduced to social morality--was at least the greatest reality
  • among the personages who attended at the hotel of Monseigneur that day.
  • For, the rooms, though a beautiful scene to look at, and adorned with
  • every device of decoration that the taste and skill of the time could
  • achieve, were, in truth, not a sound business; considered with any
  • reference to the scarecrows in the rags and nightcaps elsewhere (and not
  • so far off, either, but that the watching towers of Notre Dame, almost
  • equidistant from the two extremes, could see them both), they would
  • have been an exceedingly uncomfortable business--if that could have
  • been anybody's business, at the house of Monseigneur. Military officers
  • destitute of military knowledge; naval officers with no idea of a ship;
  • civil officers without a notion of affairs; brazen ecclesiastics, of the
  • worst world worldly, with sensual eyes, loose tongues, and looser lives;
  • all totally unfit for their several callings, all lying horribly in
  • pretending to belong to them, but all nearly or remotely of the order of
  • Monseigneur, and therefore foisted on all public employments from which
  • anything was to be got; these were to be told off by the score and the
  • score. People not immediately connected with Monseigneur or the State,
  • yet equally unconnected with anything that was real, or with lives
  • passed in travelling by any straight road to any true earthly end, were
  • no less abundant. Doctors who made great fortunes out of dainty remedies
  • for imaginary disorders that never existed, smiled upon their courtly
  • patients in the ante-chambers of Monseigneur. Projectors who had
  • discovered every kind of remedy for the little evils with which the
  • State was touched, except the remedy of setting to work in earnest to
  • root out a single sin, poured their distracting babble into any ears
  • they could lay hold of, at the reception of Monseigneur. Unbelieving
  • Philosophers who were remodelling the world with words, and making
  • card-towers of Babel to scale the skies with, talked with Unbelieving
  • Chemists who had an eye on the transmutation of metals, at this
  • wonderful gathering accumulated by Monseigneur. Exquisite gentlemen of
  • the finest breeding, which was at that remarkable time--and has been
  • since--to be known by its fruits of indifference to every natural
  • subject of human interest, were in the most exemplary state of
  • exhaustion, at the hotel of Monseigneur. Such homes had these various
  • notabilities left behind them in the fine world of Paris, that the spies
  • among the assembled devotees of Monseigneur--forming a goodly half
  • of the polite company--would have found it hard to discover among
  • the angels of that sphere one solitary wife, who, in her manners and
  • appearance, owned to being a Mother. Indeed, except for the mere act of
  • bringing a troublesome creature into this world--which does not go far
  • towards the realisation of the name of mother--there was no such thing
  • known to the fashion. Peasant women kept the unfashionable babies close,
  • and brought them up, and charming grandmammas of sixty dressed and
  • supped as at twenty.
  • The leprosy of unreality disfigured every human creature in attendance
  • upon Monseigneur. In the outermost room were half a dozen exceptional
  • people who had had, for a few years, some vague misgiving in them that
  • things in general were going rather wrong. As a promising way of setting
  • them right, half of the half-dozen had become members of a fantastic
  • sect of Convulsionists, and were even then considering within themselves
  • whether they should foam, rage, roar, and turn cataleptic on the
  • spot--thereby setting up a highly intelligible finger-post to the
  • Future, for Monseigneur's guidance. Besides these Dervishes, were other
  • three who had rushed into another sect, which mended matters with a
  • jargon about “the Centre of Truth:” holding that Man had got out of the
  • Centre of Truth--which did not need much demonstration--but had not got
  • out of the Circumference, and that he was to be kept from flying out of
  • the Circumference, and was even to be shoved back into the Centre,
  • by fasting and seeing of spirits. Among these, accordingly, much
  • discoursing with spirits went on--and it did a world of good which never
  • became manifest.
  • But, the comfort was, that all the company at the grand hotel of
  • Monseigneur were perfectly dressed. If the Day of Judgment had only been
  • ascertained to be a dress day, everybody there would have been eternally
  • correct. Such frizzling and powdering and sticking up of hair, such
  • delicate complexions artificially preserved and mended, such gallant
  • swords to look at, and such delicate honour to the sense of smell, would
  • surely keep anything going, for ever and ever. The exquisite gentlemen
  • of the finest breeding wore little pendent trinkets that chinked as they
  • languidly moved; these golden fetters rang like precious little bells;
  • and what with that ringing, and with the rustle of silk and brocade and
  • fine linen, there was a flutter in the air that fanned Saint Antoine and
  • his devouring hunger far away.
  • Dress was the one unfailing talisman and charm used for keeping all
  • things in their places. Everybody was dressed for a Fancy Ball that
  • was never to leave off. From the Palace of the Tuileries, through
  • Monseigneur and the whole Court, through the Chambers, the Tribunals
  • of Justice, and all society (except the scarecrows), the Fancy Ball
  • descended to the Common Executioner: who, in pursuance of the charm, was
  • required to officiate “frizzled, powdered, in a gold-laced coat, pumps,
  • and white silk stockings.” At the gallows and the wheel--the axe was a
  • rarity--Monsieur Paris, as it was the episcopal mode among his brother
  • Professors of the provinces, Monsieur Orleans, and the rest, to call
  • him, presided in this dainty dress. And who among the company at
  • Monseigneur's reception in that seventeen hundred and eightieth year
  • of our Lord, could possibly doubt, that a system rooted in a frizzled
  • hangman, powdered, gold-laced, pumped, and white-silk stockinged, would
  • see the very stars out!
  • Monseigneur having eased his four men of their burdens and taken his
  • chocolate, caused the doors of the Holiest of Holiests to be thrown
  • open, and issued forth. Then, what submission, what cringing and
  • fawning, what servility, what abject humiliation! As to bowing down in
  • body and spirit, nothing in that way was left for Heaven--which may have
  • been one among other reasons why the worshippers of Monseigneur never
  • troubled it.
  • Bestowing a word of promise here and a smile there, a whisper on one
  • happy slave and a wave of the hand on another, Monseigneur affably
  • passed through his rooms to the remote region of the Circumference of
  • Truth. There, Monseigneur turned, and came back again, and so in due
  • course of time got himself shut up in his sanctuary by the chocolate
  • sprites, and was seen no more.
  • The show being over, the flutter in the air became quite a little storm,
  • and the precious little bells went ringing downstairs. There was soon
  • but one person left of all the crowd, and he, with his hat under his arm
  • and his snuff-box in his hand, slowly passed among the mirrors on his
  • way out.
  • “I devote you,” said this person, stopping at the last door on his way,
  • and turning in the direction of the sanctuary, “to the Devil!”
  • With that, he shook the snuff from his fingers as if he had shaken the
  • dust from his feet, and quietly walked downstairs.
  • He was a man of about sixty, handsomely dressed, haughty in manner, and
  • with a face like a fine mask. A face of a transparent paleness; every
  • feature in it clearly defined; one set expression on it. The nose,
  • beautifully formed otherwise, was very slightly pinched at the top
  • of each nostril. In those two compressions, or dints, the only little
  • change that the face ever showed, resided. They persisted in changing
  • colour sometimes, and they would be occasionally dilated and contracted
  • by something like a faint pulsation; then, they gave a look of
  • treachery, and cruelty, to the whole countenance. Examined with
  • attention, its capacity of helping such a look was to be found in the
  • line of the mouth, and the lines of the orbits of the eyes, being much
  • too horizontal and thin; still, in the effect of the face made, it was a
  • handsome face, and a remarkable one.
  • Its owner went downstairs into the courtyard, got into his carriage, and
  • drove away. Not many people had talked with him at the reception; he had
  • stood in a little space apart, and Monseigneur might have been warmer
  • in his manner. It appeared, under the circumstances, rather agreeable
  • to him to see the common people dispersed before his horses, and
  • often barely escaping from being run down. His man drove as if he were
  • charging an enemy, and the furious recklessness of the man brought no
  • check into the face, or to the lips, of the master. The complaint had
  • sometimes made itself audible, even in that deaf city and dumb age,
  • that, in the narrow streets without footways, the fierce patrician
  • custom of hard driving endangered and maimed the mere vulgar in a
  • barbarous manner. But, few cared enough for that to think of it a second
  • time, and, in this matter, as in all others, the common wretches were
  • left to get out of their difficulties as they could.
  • With a wild rattle and clatter, and an inhuman abandonment of
  • consideration not easy to be understood in these days, the carriage
  • dashed through streets and swept round corners, with women screaming
  • before it, and men clutching each other and clutching children out of
  • its way. At last, swooping at a street corner by a fountain, one of its
  • wheels came to a sickening little jolt, and there was a loud cry from a
  • number of voices, and the horses reared and plunged.
  • But for the latter inconvenience, the carriage probably would not have
  • stopped; carriages were often known to drive on, and leave their wounded
  • behind, and why not? But the frightened valet had got down in a hurry,
  • and there were twenty hands at the horses' bridles.
  • “What has gone wrong?” said Monsieur, calmly looking out.
  • A tall man in a nightcap had caught up a bundle from among the feet of
  • the horses, and had laid it on the basement of the fountain, and was
  • down in the mud and wet, howling over it like a wild animal.
  • “Pardon, Monsieur the Marquis!” said a ragged and submissive man, “it is
  • a child.”
  • “Why does he make that abominable noise? Is it his child?”
  • “Excuse me, Monsieur the Marquis--it is a pity--yes.”
  • The fountain was a little removed; for the street opened, where it was,
  • into a space some ten or twelve yards square. As the tall man suddenly
  • got up from the ground, and came running at the carriage, Monsieur the
  • Marquis clapped his hand for an instant on his sword-hilt.
  • “Killed!” shrieked the man, in wild desperation, extending both arms at
  • their length above his head, and staring at him. “Dead!”
  • The people closed round, and looked at Monsieur the Marquis. There was
  • nothing revealed by the many eyes that looked at him but watchfulness
  • and eagerness; there was no visible menacing or anger. Neither did the
  • people say anything; after the first cry, they had been silent, and they
  • remained so. The voice of the submissive man who had spoken, was flat
  • and tame in its extreme submission. Monsieur the Marquis ran his eyes
  • over them all, as if they had been mere rats come out of their holes.
  • He took out his purse.
  • “It is extraordinary to me,” said he, “that you people cannot take care
  • of yourselves and your children. One or the other of you is for ever in
  • the way. How do I know what injury you have done my horses. See! Give
  • him that.”
  • He threw out a gold coin for the valet to pick up, and all the heads
  • craned forward that all the eyes might look down at it as it fell. The
  • tall man called out again with a most unearthly cry, “Dead!”
  • He was arrested by the quick arrival of another man, for whom the rest
  • made way. On seeing him, the miserable creature fell upon his shoulder,
  • sobbing and crying, and pointing to the fountain, where some women were
  • stooping over the motionless bundle, and moving gently about it. They
  • were as silent, however, as the men.
  • “I know all, I know all,” said the last comer. “Be a brave man, my
  • Gaspard! It is better for the poor little plaything to die so, than to
  • live. It has died in a moment without pain. Could it have lived an hour
  • as happily?”
  • “You are a philosopher, you there,” said the Marquis, smiling. “How do
  • they call you?”
  • “They call me Defarge.”
  • “Of what trade?”
  • “Monsieur the Marquis, vendor of wine.”
  • “Pick up that, philosopher and vendor of wine,” said the Marquis,
  • throwing him another gold coin, “and spend it as you will. The horses
  • there; are they right?”
  • Without deigning to look at the assemblage a second time, Monsieur the
  • Marquis leaned back in his seat, and was just being driven away with the
  • air of a gentleman who had accidentally broke some common thing, and had
  • paid for it, and could afford to pay for it; when his ease was suddenly
  • disturbed by a coin flying into his carriage, and ringing on its floor.
  • “Hold!” said Monsieur the Marquis. “Hold the horses! Who threw that?”
  • He looked to the spot where Defarge the vendor of wine had stood, a
  • moment before; but the wretched father was grovelling on his face on
  • the pavement in that spot, and the figure that stood beside him was the
  • figure of a dark stout woman, knitting.
  • “You dogs!” said the Marquis, but smoothly, and with an unchanged front,
  • except as to the spots on his nose: “I would ride over any of you very
  • willingly, and exterminate you from the earth. If I knew which rascal
  • threw at the carriage, and if that brigand were sufficiently near it, he
  • should be crushed under the wheels.”
  • So cowed was their condition, and so long and hard their experience of
  • what such a man could do to them, within the law and beyond it, that not
  • a voice, or a hand, or even an eye was raised. Among the men, not one.
  • But the woman who stood knitting looked up steadily, and looked the
  • Marquis in the face. It was not for his dignity to notice it; his
  • contemptuous eyes passed over her, and over all the other rats; and he
  • leaned back in his seat again, and gave the word “Go on!”
  • He was driven on, and other carriages came whirling by in quick
  • succession; the Minister, the State-Projector, the Farmer-General, the
  • Doctor, the Lawyer, the Ecclesiastic, the Grand Opera, the Comedy, the
  • whole Fancy Ball in a bright continuous flow, came whirling by. The rats
  • had crept out of their holes to look on, and they remained looking
  • on for hours; soldiers and police often passing between them and the
  • spectacle, and making a barrier behind which they slunk, and through
  • which they peeped. The father had long ago taken up his bundle and
  • bidden himself away with it, when the women who had tended the bundle
  • while it lay on the base of the fountain, sat there watching the running
  • of the water and the rolling of the Fancy Ball--when the one woman who
  • had stood conspicuous, knitting, still knitted on with the steadfastness
  • of Fate. The water of the fountain ran, the swift river ran, the day ran
  • into evening, so much life in the city ran into death according to rule,
  • time and tide waited for no man, the rats were sleeping close together
  • in their dark holes again, the Fancy Ball was lighted up at supper, all
  • things ran their course.
  • VIII. Monseigneur in the Country
  • A beautiful landscape, with the corn bright in it, but not abundant.
  • Patches of poor rye where corn should have been, patches of poor peas
  • and beans, patches of most coarse vegetable substitutes for wheat. On
  • inanimate nature, as on the men and women who cultivated it, a prevalent
  • tendency towards an appearance of vegetating unwillingly--a dejected
  • disposition to give up, and wither away.
  • Monsieur the Marquis in his travelling carriage (which might have been
  • lighter), conducted by four post-horses and two postilions, fagged up
  • a steep hill. A blush on the countenance of Monsieur the Marquis was
  • no impeachment of his high breeding; it was not from within; it was
  • occasioned by an external circumstance beyond his control--the setting
  • sun.
  • The sunset struck so brilliantly into the travelling carriage when it
  • gained the hill-top, that its occupant was steeped in crimson. “It will
  • die out,” said Monsieur the Marquis, glancing at his hands, “directly.”
  • In effect, the sun was so low that it dipped at the moment. When the
  • heavy drag had been adjusted to the wheel, and the carriage slid down
  • hill, with a cinderous smell, in a cloud of dust, the red glow departed
  • quickly; the sun and the Marquis going down together, there was no glow
  • left when the drag was taken off.
  • But, there remained a broken country, bold and open, a little village
  • at the bottom of the hill, a broad sweep and rise beyond it, a
  • church-tower, a windmill, a forest for the chase, and a crag with a
  • fortress on it used as a prison. Round upon all these darkening objects
  • as the night drew on, the Marquis looked, with the air of one who was
  • coming near home.
  • The village had its one poor street, with its poor brewery, poor
  • tannery, poor tavern, poor stable-yard for relays of post-horses, poor
  • fountain, all usual poor appointments. It had its poor people too. All
  • its people were poor, and many of them were sitting at their doors,
  • shredding spare onions and the like for supper, while many were at the
  • fountain, washing leaves, and grasses, and any such small yieldings of
  • the earth that could be eaten. Expressive signs of what made them poor,
  • were not wanting; the tax for the state, the tax for the church, the tax
  • for the lord, tax local and tax general, were to be paid here and to be
  • paid there, according to solemn inscription in the little village, until
  • the wonder was, that there was any village left unswallowed.
  • Few children were to be seen, and no dogs. As to the men and women,
  • their choice on earth was stated in the prospect--Life on the lowest
  • terms that could sustain it, down in the little village under the mill;
  • or captivity and Death in the dominant prison on the crag.
  • Heralded by a courier in advance, and by the cracking of his postilions'
  • whips, which twined snake-like about their heads in the evening air, as
  • if he came attended by the Furies, Monsieur the Marquis drew up in
  • his travelling carriage at the posting-house gate. It was hard by the
  • fountain, and the peasants suspended their operations to look at him.
  • He looked at them, and saw in them, without knowing it, the slow
  • sure filing down of misery-worn face and figure, that was to make the
  • meagreness of Frenchmen an English superstition which should survive the
  • truth through the best part of a hundred years.
  • Monsieur the Marquis cast his eyes over the submissive faces that
  • drooped before him, as the like of himself had drooped before
  • Monseigneur of the Court--only the difference was, that these faces
  • drooped merely to suffer and not to propitiate--when a grizzled mender
  • of the roads joined the group.
  • “Bring me hither that fellow!” said the Marquis to the courier.
  • The fellow was brought, cap in hand, and the other fellows closed round
  • to look and listen, in the manner of the people at the Paris fountain.
  • “I passed you on the road?”
  • “Monseigneur, it is true. I had the honour of being passed on the road.”
  • “Coming up the hill, and at the top of the hill, both?”
  • “Monseigneur, it is true.”
  • “What did you look at, so fixedly?”
  • “Monseigneur, I looked at the man.”
  • He stooped a little, and with his tattered blue cap pointed under the
  • carriage. All his fellows stooped to look under the carriage.
  • “What man, pig? And why look there?”
  • “Pardon, Monseigneur; he swung by the chain of the shoe--the drag.”
  • “Who?” demanded the traveller.
  • “Monseigneur, the man.”
  • “May the Devil carry away these idiots! How do you call the man? You
  • know all the men of this part of the country. Who was he?”
  • “Your clemency, Monseigneur! He was not of this part of the country. Of
  • all the days of my life, I never saw him.”
  • “Swinging by the chain? To be suffocated?”
  • “With your gracious permission, that was the wonder of it, Monseigneur.
  • His head hanging over--like this!”
  • He turned himself sideways to the carriage, and leaned back, with his
  • face thrown up to the sky, and his head hanging down; then recovered
  • himself, fumbled with his cap, and made a bow.
  • “What was he like?”
  • “Monseigneur, he was whiter than the miller. All covered with dust,
  • white as a spectre, tall as a spectre!”
  • The picture produced an immense sensation in the little crowd; but all
  • eyes, without comparing notes with other eyes, looked at Monsieur
  • the Marquis. Perhaps, to observe whether he had any spectre on his
  • conscience.
  • “Truly, you did well,” said the Marquis, felicitously sensible that such
  • vermin were not to ruffle him, “to see a thief accompanying my carriage,
  • and not open that great mouth of yours. Bah! Put him aside, Monsieur
  • Gabelle!”
  • Monsieur Gabelle was the Postmaster, and some other taxing functionary
  • united; he had come out with great obsequiousness to assist at this
  • examination, and had held the examined by the drapery of his arm in an
  • official manner.
  • “Bah! Go aside!” said Monsieur Gabelle.
  • “Lay hands on this stranger if he seeks to lodge in your village
  • to-night, and be sure that his business is honest, Gabelle.”
  • “Monseigneur, I am flattered to devote myself to your orders.”
  • “Did he run away, fellow?--where is that Accursed?”
  • The accursed was already under the carriage with some half-dozen
  • particular friends, pointing out the chain with his blue cap. Some
  • half-dozen other particular friends promptly hauled him out, and
  • presented him breathless to Monsieur the Marquis.
  • “Did the man run away, Dolt, when we stopped for the drag?”
  • “Monseigneur, he precipitated himself over the hill-side, head first, as
  • a person plunges into the river.”
  • “See to it, Gabelle. Go on!”
  • The half-dozen who were peering at the chain were still among the
  • wheels, like sheep; the wheels turned so suddenly that they were lucky
  • to save their skins and bones; they had very little else to save, or
  • they might not have been so fortunate.
  • The burst with which the carriage started out of the village and up the
  • rise beyond, was soon checked by the steepness of the hill. Gradually,
  • it subsided to a foot pace, swinging and lumbering upward among the many
  • sweet scents of a summer night. The postilions, with a thousand gossamer
  • gnats circling about them in lieu of the Furies, quietly mended the
  • points to the lashes of their whips; the valet walked by the horses; the
  • courier was audible, trotting on ahead into the dull distance.
  • At the steepest point of the hill there was a little burial-ground,
  • with a Cross and a new large figure of Our Saviour on it; it was a poor
  • figure in wood, done by some inexperienced rustic carver, but he had
  • studied the figure from the life--his own life, maybe--for it was
  • dreadfully spare and thin.
  • To this distressful emblem of a great distress that had long been
  • growing worse, and was not at its worst, a woman was kneeling. She
  • turned her head as the carriage came up to her, rose quickly, and
  • presented herself at the carriage-door.
  • “It is you, Monseigneur! Monseigneur, a petition.”
  • With an exclamation of impatience, but with his unchangeable face,
  • Monseigneur looked out.
  • “How, then! What is it? Always petitions!”
  • “Monseigneur. For the love of the great God! My husband, the forester.”
  • “What of your husband, the forester? Always the same with you people. He
  • cannot pay something?”
  • “He has paid all, Monseigneur. He is dead.”
  • “Well! He is quiet. Can I restore him to you?”
  • “Alas, no, Monseigneur! But he lies yonder, under a little heap of poor
  • grass.”
  • “Well?”
  • “Monseigneur, there are so many little heaps of poor grass?”
  • “Again, well?”
  • She looked an old woman, but was young. Her manner was one of passionate
  • grief; by turns she clasped her veinous and knotted hands together
  • with wild energy, and laid one of them on the carriage-door--tenderly,
  • caressingly, as if it had been a human breast, and could be expected to
  • feel the appealing touch.
  • “Monseigneur, hear me! Monseigneur, hear my petition! My husband died of
  • want; so many die of want; so many more will die of want.”
  • “Again, well? Can I feed them?”
  • “Monseigneur, the good God knows; but I don't ask it. My petition is,
  • that a morsel of stone or wood, with my husband's name, may be placed
  • over him to show where he lies. Otherwise, the place will be quickly
  • forgotten, it will never be found when I am dead of the same malady, I
  • shall be laid under some other heap of poor grass. Monseigneur, they
  • are so many, they increase so fast, there is so much want. Monseigneur!
  • Monseigneur!”
  • The valet had put her away from the door, the carriage had broken into
  • a brisk trot, the postilions had quickened the pace, she was left far
  • behind, and Monseigneur, again escorted by the Furies, was rapidly
  • diminishing the league or two of distance that remained between him and
  • his chateau.
  • The sweet scents of the summer night rose all around him, and rose, as
  • the rain falls, impartially, on the dusty, ragged, and toil-worn group
  • at the fountain not far away; to whom the mender of roads, with the aid
  • of the blue cap without which he was nothing, still enlarged upon his
  • man like a spectre, as long as they could bear it. By degrees, as they
  • could bear no more, they dropped off one by one, and lights twinkled
  • in little casements; which lights, as the casements darkened, and more
  • stars came out, seemed to have shot up into the sky instead of having
  • been extinguished.
  • The shadow of a large high-roofed house, and of many over-hanging trees,
  • was upon Monsieur the Marquis by that time; and the shadow was exchanged
  • for the light of a flambeau, as his carriage stopped, and the great door
  • of his chateau was opened to him.
  • “Monsieur Charles, whom I expect; is he arrived from England?”
  • “Monseigneur, not yet.”
  • IX. The Gorgon's Head
  • It was a heavy mass of building, that chateau of Monsieur the Marquis,
  • with a large stone courtyard before it, and two stone sweeps of
  • staircase meeting in a stone terrace before the principal door. A stony
  • business altogether, with heavy stone balustrades, and stone urns, and
  • stone flowers, and stone faces of men, and stone heads of lions, in
  • all directions. As if the Gorgon's head had surveyed it, when it was
  • finished, two centuries ago.
  • Up the broad flight of shallow steps, Monsieur the Marquis, flambeau
  • preceded, went from his carriage, sufficiently disturbing the darkness
  • to elicit loud remonstrance from an owl in the roof of the great pile
  • of stable building away among the trees. All else was so quiet, that the
  • flambeau carried up the steps, and the other flambeau held at the great
  • door, burnt as if they were in a close room of state, instead of being
  • in the open night-air. Other sound than the owl's voice there was none,
  • save the falling of a fountain into its stone basin; for, it was one of
  • those dark nights that hold their breath by the hour together, and then
  • heave a long low sigh, and hold their breath again.
  • The great door clanged behind him, and Monsieur the Marquis crossed a
  • hall grim with certain old boar-spears, swords, and knives of the chase;
  • grimmer with certain heavy riding-rods and riding-whips, of which many a
  • peasant, gone to his benefactor Death, had felt the weight when his lord
  • was angry.
  • Avoiding the larger rooms, which were dark and made fast for the night,
  • Monsieur the Marquis, with his flambeau-bearer going on before, went up
  • the staircase to a door in a corridor. This thrown open, admitted him
  • to his own private apartment of three rooms: his bed-chamber and two
  • others. High vaulted rooms with cool uncarpeted floors, great dogs upon
  • the hearths for the burning of wood in winter time, and all luxuries
  • befitting the state of a marquis in a luxurious age and country.
  • The fashion of the last Louis but one, of the line that was never to
  • break--the fourteenth Louis--was conspicuous in their rich furniture;
  • but, it was diversified by many objects that were illustrations of old
  • pages in the history of France.
  • A supper-table was laid for two, in the third of the rooms; a round
  • room, in one of the chateau's four extinguisher-topped towers. A small
  • lofty room, with its window wide open, and the wooden jalousie-blinds
  • closed, so that the dark night only showed in slight horizontal lines of
  • black, alternating with their broad lines of stone colour.
  • “My nephew,” said the Marquis, glancing at the supper preparation; “they
  • said he was not arrived.”
  • Nor was he; but, he had been expected with Monseigneur.
  • “Ah! It is not probable he will arrive to-night; nevertheless, leave the
  • table as it is. I shall be ready in a quarter of an hour.”
  • In a quarter of an hour Monseigneur was ready, and sat down alone to his
  • sumptuous and choice supper. His chair was opposite to the window, and
  • he had taken his soup, and was raising his glass of Bordeaux to his
  • lips, when he put it down.
  • “What is that?” he calmly asked, looking with attention at the
  • horizontal lines of black and stone colour.
  • “Monseigneur? That?”
  • “Outside the blinds. Open the blinds.”
  • It was done.
  • “Well?”
  • “Monseigneur, it is nothing. The trees and the night are all that are
  • here.”
  • The servant who spoke, had thrown the blinds wide, had looked out into
  • the vacant darkness, and stood with that blank behind him, looking round
  • for instructions.
  • “Good,” said the imperturbable master. “Close them again.”
  • That was done too, and the Marquis went on with his supper. He was
  • half way through it, when he again stopped with his glass in his hand,
  • hearing the sound of wheels. It came on briskly, and came up to the
  • front of the chateau.
  • “Ask who is arrived.”
  • It was the nephew of Monseigneur. He had been some few leagues behind
  • Monseigneur, early in the afternoon. He had diminished the distance
  • rapidly, but not so rapidly as to come up with Monseigneur on the road.
  • He had heard of Monseigneur, at the posting-houses, as being before him.
  • He was to be told (said Monseigneur) that supper awaited him then and
  • there, and that he was prayed to come to it. In a little while he came.
  • He had been known in England as Charles Darnay.
  • Monseigneur received him in a courtly manner, but they did not shake
  • hands.
  • “You left Paris yesterday, sir?” he said to Monseigneur, as he took his
  • seat at table.
  • “Yesterday. And you?”
  • “I come direct.”
  • “From London?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “You have been a long time coming,” said the Marquis, with a smile.
  • “On the contrary; I come direct.”
  • “Pardon me! I mean, not a long time on the journey; a long time
  • intending the journey.”
  • “I have been detained by”--the nephew stopped a moment in his
  • answer--“various business.”
  • “Without doubt,” said the polished uncle.
  • So long as a servant was present, no other words passed between them.
  • When coffee had been served and they were alone together, the nephew,
  • looking at the uncle and meeting the eyes of the face that was like a
  • fine mask, opened a conversation.
  • “I have come back, sir, as you anticipate, pursuing the object that
  • took me away. It carried me into great and unexpected peril; but it is
  • a sacred object, and if it had carried me to death I hope it would have
  • sustained me.”
  • “Not to death,” said the uncle; “it is not necessary to say, to death.”
  • “I doubt, sir,” returned the nephew, “whether, if it had carried me to
  • the utmost brink of death, you would have cared to stop me there.”
  • The deepened marks in the nose, and the lengthening of the fine straight
  • lines in the cruel face, looked ominous as to that; the uncle made a
  • graceful gesture of protest, which was so clearly a slight form of good
  • breeding that it was not reassuring.
  • “Indeed, sir,” pursued the nephew, “for anything I know, you may have
  • expressly worked to give a more suspicious appearance to the suspicious
  • circumstances that surrounded me.”
  • “No, no, no,” said the uncle, pleasantly.
  • “But, however that may be,” resumed the nephew, glancing at him with
  • deep distrust, “I know that your diplomacy would stop me by any means,
  • and would know no scruple as to means.”
  • “My friend, I told you so,” said the uncle, with a fine pulsation in the
  • two marks. “Do me the favour to recall that I told you so, long ago.”
  • “I recall it.”
  • “Thank you,” said the Marquis--very sweetly indeed.
  • His tone lingered in the air, almost like the tone of a musical
  • instrument.
  • “In effect, sir,” pursued the nephew, “I believe it to be at once your
  • bad fortune, and my good fortune, that has kept me out of a prison in
  • France here.”
  • “I do not quite understand,” returned the uncle, sipping his coffee.
  • “Dare I ask you to explain?”
  • “I believe that if you were not in disgrace with the Court, and had not
  • been overshadowed by that cloud for years past, a letter de cachet would
  • have sent me to some fortress indefinitely.”
  • “It is possible,” said the uncle, with great calmness. “For the honour
  • of the family, I could even resolve to incommode you to that extent.
  • Pray excuse me!”
  • “I perceive that, happily for me, the Reception of the day before
  • yesterday was, as usual, a cold one,” observed the nephew.
  • “I would not say happily, my friend,” returned the uncle, with refined
  • politeness; “I would not be sure of that. A good opportunity for
  • consideration, surrounded by the advantages of solitude, might influence
  • your destiny to far greater advantage than you influence it for
  • yourself. But it is useless to discuss the question. I am, as you say,
  • at a disadvantage. These little instruments of correction, these gentle
  • aids to the power and honour of families, these slight favours that
  • might so incommode you, are only to be obtained now by interest
  • and importunity. They are sought by so many, and they are granted
  • (comparatively) to so few! It used not to be so, but France in all such
  • things is changed for the worse. Our not remote ancestors held the right
  • of life and death over the surrounding vulgar. From this room, many such
  • dogs have been taken out to be hanged; in the next room (my bedroom),
  • one fellow, to our knowledge, was poniarded on the spot for professing
  • some insolent delicacy respecting his daughter--_his_ daughter? We have
  • lost many privileges; a new philosophy has become the mode; and the
  • assertion of our station, in these days, might (I do not go so far as
  • to say would, but might) cause us real inconvenience. All very bad, very
  • bad!”
  • The Marquis took a gentle little pinch of snuff, and shook his head;
  • as elegantly despondent as he could becomingly be of a country still
  • containing himself, that great means of regeneration.
  • “We have so asserted our station, both in the old time and in the modern
  • time also,” said the nephew, gloomily, “that I believe our name to be
  • more detested than any name in France.”
  • “Let us hope so,” said the uncle. “Detestation of the high is the
  • involuntary homage of the low.”
  • “There is not,” pursued the nephew, in his former tone, “a face I can
  • look at, in all this country round about us, which looks at me with any
  • deference on it but the dark deference of fear and slavery.”
  • “A compliment,” said the Marquis, “to the grandeur of the family,
  • merited by the manner in which the family has sustained its grandeur.
  • Hah!” And he took another gentle little pinch of snuff, and lightly
  • crossed his legs.
  • But, when his nephew, leaning an elbow on the table, covered his eyes
  • thoughtfully and dejectedly with his hand, the fine mask looked at
  • him sideways with a stronger concentration of keenness, closeness,
  • and dislike, than was comportable with its wearer's assumption of
  • indifference.
  • “Repression is the only lasting philosophy. The dark deference of fear
  • and slavery, my friend,” observed the Marquis, “will keep the dogs
  • obedient to the whip, as long as this roof,” looking up to it, “shuts
  • out the sky.”
  • That might not be so long as the Marquis supposed. If a picture of the
  • chateau as it was to be a very few years hence, and of fifty like it as
  • they too were to be a very few years hence, could have been shown to
  • him that night, he might have been at a loss to claim his own from
  • the ghastly, fire-charred, plunder-wrecked rains. As for the roof
  • he vaunted, he might have found _that_ shutting out the sky in a new
  • way--to wit, for ever, from the eyes of the bodies into which its lead
  • was fired, out of the barrels of a hundred thousand muskets.
  • “Meanwhile,” said the Marquis, “I will preserve the honour and repose
  • of the family, if you will not. But you must be fatigued. Shall we
  • terminate our conference for the night?”
  • “A moment more.”
  • “An hour, if you please.”
  • “Sir,” said the nephew, “we have done wrong, and are reaping the fruits
  • of wrong.”
  • “_We_ have done wrong?” repeated the Marquis, with an inquiring smile,
  • and delicately pointing, first to his nephew, then to himself.
  • “Our family; our honourable family, whose honour is of so much account
  • to both of us, in such different ways. Even in my father's time, we did
  • a world of wrong, injuring every human creature who came between us and
  • our pleasure, whatever it was. Why need I speak of my father's time,
  • when it is equally yours? Can I separate my father's twin-brother, joint
  • inheritor, and next successor, from himself?”
  • “Death has done that!” said the Marquis.
  • “And has left me,” answered the nephew, “bound to a system that is
  • frightful to me, responsible for it, but powerless in it; seeking to
  • execute the last request of my dear mother's lips, and obey the last
  • look of my dear mother's eyes, which implored me to have mercy and to
  • redress; and tortured by seeking assistance and power in vain.”
  • “Seeking them from me, my nephew,” said the Marquis, touching him on the
  • breast with his forefinger--they were now standing by the hearth--“you
  • will for ever seek them in vain, be assured.”
  • Every fine straight line in the clear whiteness of his face, was
  • cruelly, craftily, and closely compressed, while he stood looking
  • quietly at his nephew, with his snuff-box in his hand. Once again he
  • touched him on the breast, as though his finger were the fine point of
  • a small sword, with which, in delicate finesse, he ran him through the
  • body, and said,
  • “My friend, I will die, perpetuating the system under which I have
  • lived.”
  • When he had said it, he took a culminating pinch of snuff, and put his
  • box in his pocket.
  • “Better to be a rational creature,” he added then, after ringing a small
  • bell on the table, “and accept your natural destiny. But you are lost,
  • Monsieur Charles, I see.”
  • “This property and France are lost to me,” said the nephew, sadly; “I
  • renounce them.”
  • “Are they both yours to renounce? France may be, but is the property? It
  • is scarcely worth mentioning; but, is it yet?”
  • “I had no intention, in the words I used, to claim it yet. If it passed
  • to me from you, to-morrow--”
  • “Which I have the vanity to hope is not probable.”
  • “--or twenty years hence--”
  • “You do me too much honour,” said the Marquis; “still, I prefer that
  • supposition.”
  • “--I would abandon it, and live otherwise and elsewhere. It is little to
  • relinquish. What is it but a wilderness of misery and ruin!”
  • “Hah!” said the Marquis, glancing round the luxurious room.
  • “To the eye it is fair enough, here; but seen in its integrity,
  • under the sky, and by the daylight, it is a crumbling tower of waste,
  • mismanagement, extortion, debt, mortgage, oppression, hunger, nakedness,
  • and suffering.”
  • “Hah!” said the Marquis again, in a well-satisfied manner.
  • “If it ever becomes mine, it shall be put into some hands better
  • qualified to free it slowly (if such a thing is possible) from the
  • weight that drags it down, so that the miserable people who cannot leave
  • it and who have been long wrung to the last point of endurance, may, in
  • another generation, suffer less; but it is not for me. There is a curse
  • on it, and on all this land.”
  • “And you?” said the uncle. “Forgive my curiosity; do you, under your new
  • philosophy, graciously intend to live?”
  • “I must do, to live, what others of my countrymen, even with nobility at
  • their backs, may have to do some day--work.”
  • “In England, for example?”
  • “Yes. The family honour, sir, is safe from me in this country. The
  • family name can suffer from me in no other, for I bear it in no other.”
  • The ringing of the bell had caused the adjoining bed-chamber to be
  • lighted. It now shone brightly, through the door of communication. The
  • Marquis looked that way, and listened for the retreating step of his
  • valet.
  • “England is very attractive to you, seeing how indifferently you have
  • prospered there,” he observed then, turning his calm face to his nephew
  • with a smile.
  • “I have already said, that for my prospering there, I am sensible I may
  • be indebted to you, sir. For the rest, it is my Refuge.”
  • “They say, those boastful English, that it is the Refuge of many. You
  • know a compatriot who has found a Refuge there? A Doctor?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “With a daughter?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Yes,” said the Marquis. “You are fatigued. Good night!”
  • As he bent his head in his most courtly manner, there was a secrecy
  • in his smiling face, and he conveyed an air of mystery to those words,
  • which struck the eyes and ears of his nephew forcibly. At the same
  • time, the thin straight lines of the setting of the eyes, and the thin
  • straight lips, and the markings in the nose, curved with a sarcasm that
  • looked handsomely diabolic.
  • “Yes,” repeated the Marquis. “A Doctor with a daughter. Yes. So
  • commences the new philosophy! You are fatigued. Good night!”
  • It would have been of as much avail to interrogate any stone face
  • outside the chateau as to interrogate that face of his. The nephew
  • looked at him, in vain, in passing on to the door.
  • “Good night!” said the uncle. “I look to the pleasure of seeing you
  • again in the morning. Good repose! Light Monsieur my nephew to his
  • chamber there!--And burn Monsieur my nephew in his bed, if you will,” he
  • added to himself, before he rang his little bell again, and summoned his
  • valet to his own bedroom.
  • The valet come and gone, Monsieur the Marquis walked to and fro in his
  • loose chamber-robe, to prepare himself gently for sleep, that hot still
  • night. Rustling about the room, his softly-slippered feet making no
  • noise on the floor, he moved like a refined tiger:--looked like some
  • enchanted marquis of the impenitently wicked sort, in story, whose
  • periodical change into tiger form was either just going off, or just
  • coming on.
  • He moved from end to end of his voluptuous bedroom, looking again at the
  • scraps of the day's journey that came unbidden into his mind; the slow
  • toil up the hill at sunset, the setting sun, the descent, the mill, the
  • prison on the crag, the little village in the hollow, the peasants at
  • the fountain, and the mender of roads with his blue cap pointing out the
  • chain under the carriage. That fountain suggested the Paris fountain,
  • the little bundle lying on the step, the women bending over it, and the
  • tall man with his arms up, crying, “Dead!”
  • “I am cool now,” said Monsieur the Marquis, “and may go to bed.”
  • So, leaving only one light burning on the large hearth, he let his thin
  • gauze curtains fall around him, and heard the night break its silence
  • with a long sigh as he composed himself to sleep.
  • The stone faces on the outer walls stared blindly at the black night
  • for three heavy hours; for three heavy hours, the horses in the stables
  • rattled at their racks, the dogs barked, and the owl made a noise with
  • very little resemblance in it to the noise conventionally assigned to
  • the owl by men-poets. But it is the obstinate custom of such creatures
  • hardly ever to say what is set down for them.
  • For three heavy hours, the stone faces of the chateau, lion and human,
  • stared blindly at the night. Dead darkness lay on all the landscape,
  • dead darkness added its own hush to the hushing dust on all the roads.
  • The burial-place had got to the pass that its little heaps of poor grass
  • were undistinguishable from one another; the figure on the Cross might
  • have come down, for anything that could be seen of it. In the village,
  • taxers and taxed were fast asleep. Dreaming, perhaps, of banquets, as
  • the starved usually do, and of ease and rest, as the driven slave and
  • the yoked ox may, its lean inhabitants slept soundly, and were fed and
  • freed.
  • The fountain in the village flowed unseen and unheard, and the fountain
  • at the chateau dropped unseen and unheard--both melting away, like the
  • minutes that were falling from the spring of Time--through three dark
  • hours. Then, the grey water of both began to be ghostly in the light,
  • and the eyes of the stone faces of the chateau were opened.
  • Lighter and lighter, until at last the sun touched the tops of the still
  • trees, and poured its radiance over the hill. In the glow, the water
  • of the chateau fountain seemed to turn to blood, and the stone faces
  • crimsoned. The carol of the birds was loud and high, and, on the
  • weather-beaten sill of the great window of the bed-chamber of Monsieur
  • the Marquis, one little bird sang its sweetest song with all its might.
  • At this, the nearest stone face seemed to stare amazed, and, with open
  • mouth and dropped under-jaw, looked awe-stricken.
  • Now, the sun was full up, and movement began in the village. Casement
  • windows opened, crazy doors were unbarred, and people came forth
  • shivering--chilled, as yet, by the new sweet air. Then began the rarely
  • lightened toil of the day among the village population. Some, to the
  • fountain; some, to the fields; men and women here, to dig and delve; men
  • and women there, to see to the poor live stock, and lead the bony cows
  • out, to such pasture as could be found by the roadside. In the church
  • and at the Cross, a kneeling figure or two; attendant on the latter
  • prayers, the led cow, trying for a breakfast among the weeds at its
  • foot.
  • The chateau awoke later, as became its quality, but awoke gradually and
  • surely. First, the lonely boar-spears and knives of the chase had been
  • reddened as of old; then, had gleamed trenchant in the morning sunshine;
  • now, doors and windows were thrown open, horses in their stables looked
  • round over their shoulders at the light and freshness pouring in at
  • doorways, leaves sparkled and rustled at iron-grated windows, dogs
  • pulled hard at their chains, and reared impatient to be loosed.
  • All these trivial incidents belonged to the routine of life, and the
  • return of morning. Surely, not so the ringing of the great bell of the
  • chateau, nor the running up and down the stairs; nor the hurried
  • figures on the terrace; nor the booting and tramping here and there and
  • everywhere, nor the quick saddling of horses and riding away?
  • What winds conveyed this hurry to the grizzled mender of roads, already
  • at work on the hill-top beyond the village, with his day's dinner (not
  • much to carry) lying in a bundle that it was worth no crow's while to
  • peck at, on a heap of stones? Had the birds, carrying some grains of it
  • to a distance, dropped one over him as they sow chance seeds? Whether or
  • no, the mender of roads ran, on the sultry morning, as if for his life,
  • down the hill, knee-high in dust, and never stopped till he got to the
  • fountain.
  • All the people of the village were at the fountain, standing about
  • in their depressed manner, and whispering low, but showing no other
  • emotions than grim curiosity and surprise. The led cows, hastily brought
  • in and tethered to anything that would hold them, were looking stupidly
  • on, or lying down chewing the cud of nothing particularly repaying their
  • trouble, which they had picked up in their interrupted saunter. Some of
  • the people of the chateau, and some of those of the posting-house, and
  • all the taxing authorities, were armed more or less, and were crowded
  • on the other side of the little street in a purposeless way, that was
  • highly fraught with nothing. Already, the mender of roads had penetrated
  • into the midst of a group of fifty particular friends, and was smiting
  • himself in the breast with his blue cap. What did all this portend,
  • and what portended the swift hoisting-up of Monsieur Gabelle behind
  • a servant on horseback, and the conveying away of the said Gabelle
  • (double-laden though the horse was), at a gallop, like a new version of
  • the German ballad of Leonora?
  • It portended that there was one stone face too many, up at the chateau.
  • The Gorgon had surveyed the building again in the night, and had added
  • the one stone face wanting; the stone face for which it had waited
  • through about two hundred years.
  • It lay back on the pillow of Monsieur the Marquis. It was like a fine
  • mask, suddenly startled, made angry, and petrified. Driven home into the
  • heart of the stone figure attached to it, was a knife. Round its hilt
  • was a frill of paper, on which was scrawled:
  • “Drive him fast to his tomb. This, from Jacques.”
  • X. Two Promises
  • More months, to the number of twelve, had come and gone, and Mr. Charles
  • Darnay was established in England as a higher teacher of the French
  • language who was conversant with French literature. In this age, he
  • would have been a Professor; in that age, he was a Tutor. He read with
  • young men who could find any leisure and interest for the study of a
  • living tongue spoken all over the world, and he cultivated a taste for
  • its stores of knowledge and fancy. He could write of them, besides, in
  • sound English, and render them into sound English. Such masters were not
  • at that time easily found; Princes that had been, and Kings that were
  • to be, were not yet of the Teacher class, and no ruined nobility had
  • dropped out of Tellson's ledgers, to turn cooks and carpenters. As a
  • tutor, whose attainments made the student's way unusually pleasant and
  • profitable, and as an elegant translator who brought something to his
  • work besides mere dictionary knowledge, young Mr. Darnay soon became
  • known and encouraged. He was well acquainted, more-over, with the
  • circumstances of his country, and those were of ever-growing interest.
  • So, with great perseverance and untiring industry, he prospered.
  • In London, he had expected neither to walk on pavements of gold, nor
  • to lie on beds of roses; if he had had any such exalted expectation, he
  • would not have prospered. He had expected labour, and he found it, and
  • did it and made the best of it. In this, his prosperity consisted.
  • A certain portion of his time was passed at Cambridge, where he
  • read with undergraduates as a sort of tolerated smuggler who drove a
  • contraband trade in European languages, instead of conveying Greek
  • and Latin through the Custom-house. The rest of his time he passed in
  • London.
  • Now, from the days when it was always summer in Eden, to these days
  • when it is mostly winter in fallen latitudes, the world of a man has
  • invariably gone one way--Charles Darnay's way--the way of the love of a
  • woman.
  • He had loved Lucie Manette from the hour of his danger. He had never
  • heard a sound so sweet and dear as the sound of her compassionate voice;
  • he had never seen a face so tenderly beautiful, as hers when it was
  • confronted with his own on the edge of the grave that had been dug for
  • him. But, he had not yet spoken to her on the subject; the assassination
  • at the deserted chateau far away beyond the heaving water and the long,
  • long, dusty roads--the solid stone chateau which had itself become the
  • mere mist of a dream--had been done a year, and he had never yet, by so
  • much as a single spoken word, disclosed to her the state of his heart.
  • That he had his reasons for this, he knew full well. It was again a
  • summer day when, lately arrived in London from his college occupation,
  • he turned into the quiet corner in Soho, bent on seeking an opportunity
  • of opening his mind to Doctor Manette. It was the close of the summer
  • day, and he knew Lucie to be out with Miss Pross.
  • He found the Doctor reading in his arm-chair at a window. The energy
  • which had at once supported him under his old sufferings and aggravated
  • their sharpness, had been gradually restored to him. He was now a
  • very energetic man indeed, with great firmness of purpose, strength
  • of resolution, and vigour of action. In his recovered energy he was
  • sometimes a little fitful and sudden, as he had at first been in the
  • exercise of his other recovered faculties; but, this had never been
  • frequently observable, and had grown more and more rare.
  • He studied much, slept little, sustained a great deal of fatigue with
  • ease, and was equably cheerful. To him, now entered Charles Darnay, at
  • sight of whom he laid aside his book and held out his hand.
  • “Charles Darnay! I rejoice to see you. We have been counting on your
  • return these three or four days past. Mr. Stryver and Sydney Carton were
  • both here yesterday, and both made you out to be more than due.”
  • “I am obliged to them for their interest in the matter,” he answered,
  • a little coldly as to them, though very warmly as to the Doctor. “Miss
  • Manette--”
  • “Is well,” said the Doctor, as he stopped short, “and your return will
  • delight us all. She has gone out on some household matters, but will
  • soon be home.”
  • “Doctor Manette, I knew she was from home. I took the opportunity of her
  • being from home, to beg to speak to you.”
  • There was a blank silence.
  • “Yes?” said the Doctor, with evident constraint. “Bring your chair here,
  • and speak on.”
  • He complied as to the chair, but appeared to find the speaking on less
  • easy.
  • “I have had the happiness, Doctor Manette, of being so intimate here,”
  • so he at length began, “for some year and a half, that I hope the topic
  • on which I am about to touch may not--”
  • He was stayed by the Doctor's putting out his hand to stop him. When he
  • had kept it so a little while, he said, drawing it back:
  • “Is Lucie the topic?”
  • “She is.”
  • “It is hard for me to speak of her at any time. It is very hard for me
  • to hear her spoken of in that tone of yours, Charles Darnay.”
  • “It is a tone of fervent admiration, true homage, and deep love, Doctor
  • Manette!” he said deferentially.
  • There was another blank silence before her father rejoined:
  • “I believe it. I do you justice; I believe it.”
  • His constraint was so manifest, and it was so manifest, too, that it
  • originated in an unwillingness to approach the subject, that Charles
  • Darnay hesitated.
  • “Shall I go on, sir?”
  • Another blank.
  • “Yes, go on.”
  • “You anticipate what I would say, though you cannot know how earnestly
  • I say it, how earnestly I feel it, without knowing my secret heart, and
  • the hopes and fears and anxieties with which it has long been
  • laden. Dear Doctor Manette, I love your daughter fondly, dearly,
  • disinterestedly, devotedly. If ever there were love in the world, I love
  • her. You have loved yourself; let your old love speak for me!”
  • The Doctor sat with his face turned away, and his eyes bent on the
  • ground. At the last words, he stretched out his hand again, hurriedly,
  • and cried:
  • “Not that, sir! Let that be! I adjure you, do not recall that!”
  • His cry was so like a cry of actual pain, that it rang in Charles
  • Darnay's ears long after he had ceased. He motioned with the hand he had
  • extended, and it seemed to be an appeal to Darnay to pause. The latter
  • so received it, and remained silent.
  • “I ask your pardon,” said the Doctor, in a subdued tone, after some
  • moments. “I do not doubt your loving Lucie; you may be satisfied of it.”
  • He turned towards him in his chair, but did not look at him, or
  • raise his eyes. His chin dropped upon his hand, and his white hair
  • overshadowed his face:
  • “Have you spoken to Lucie?”
  • “No.”
  • “Nor written?”
  • “Never.”
  • “It would be ungenerous to affect not to know that your self-denial is
  • to be referred to your consideration for her father. Her father thanks
  • you.”
  • He offered his hand; but his eyes did not go with it.
  • “I know,” said Darnay, respectfully, “how can I fail to know, Doctor
  • Manette, I who have seen you together from day to day, that between
  • you and Miss Manette there is an affection so unusual, so touching, so
  • belonging to the circumstances in which it has been nurtured, that it
  • can have few parallels, even in the tenderness between a father and
  • child. I know, Doctor Manette--how can I fail to know--that, mingled
  • with the affection and duty of a daughter who has become a woman, there
  • is, in her heart, towards you, all the love and reliance of infancy
  • itself. I know that, as in her childhood she had no parent, so she is
  • now devoted to you with all the constancy and fervour of her present
  • years and character, united to the trustfulness and attachment of the
  • early days in which you were lost to her. I know perfectly well that if
  • you had been restored to her from the world beyond this life, you could
  • hardly be invested, in her sight, with a more sacred character than that
  • in which you are always with her. I know that when she is clinging to
  • you, the hands of baby, girl, and woman, all in one, are round your
  • neck. I know that in loving you she sees and loves her mother at her
  • own age, sees and loves you at my age, loves her mother broken-hearted,
  • loves you through your dreadful trial and in your blessed restoration. I
  • have known this, night and day, since I have known you in your home.”
  • Her father sat silent, with his face bent down. His breathing was a
  • little quickened; but he repressed all other signs of agitation.
  • “Dear Doctor Manette, always knowing this, always seeing her and you
  • with this hallowed light about you, I have forborne, and forborne, as
  • long as it was in the nature of man to do it. I have felt, and do even
  • now feel, that to bring my love--even mine--between you, is to touch
  • your history with something not quite so good as itself. But I love her.
  • Heaven is my witness that I love her!”
  • “I believe it,” answered her father, mournfully. “I have thought so
  • before now. I believe it.”
  • “But, do not believe,” said Darnay, upon whose ear the mournful voice
  • struck with a reproachful sound, “that if my fortune were so cast as
  • that, being one day so happy as to make her my wife, I must at any time
  • put any separation between her and you, I could or would breathe a
  • word of what I now say. Besides that I should know it to be hopeless, I
  • should know it to be a baseness. If I had any such possibility, even at
  • a remote distance of years, harboured in my thoughts, and hidden in my
  • heart--if it ever had been there--if it ever could be there--I could not
  • now touch this honoured hand.”
  • He laid his own upon it as he spoke.
  • “No, dear Doctor Manette. Like you, a voluntary exile from France; like
  • you, driven from it by its distractions, oppressions, and miseries; like
  • you, striving to live away from it by my own exertions, and trusting
  • in a happier future; I look only to sharing your fortunes, sharing your
  • life and home, and being faithful to you to the death. Not to divide
  • with Lucie her privilege as your child, companion, and friend; but to
  • come in aid of it, and bind her closer to you, if such a thing can be.”
  • His touch still lingered on her father's hand. Answering the touch for a
  • moment, but not coldly, her father rested his hands upon the arms of
  • his chair, and looked up for the first time since the beginning of the
  • conference. A struggle was evidently in his face; a struggle with that
  • occasional look which had a tendency in it to dark doubt and dread.
  • “You speak so feelingly and so manfully, Charles Darnay, that I thank
  • you with all my heart, and will open all my heart--or nearly so. Have
  • you any reason to believe that Lucie loves you?”
  • “None. As yet, none.”
  • “Is it the immediate object of this confidence, that you may at once
  • ascertain that, with my knowledge?”
  • “Not even so. I might not have the hopefulness to do it for weeks; I
  • might (mistaken or not mistaken) have that hopefulness to-morrow.”
  • “Do you seek any guidance from me?”
  • “I ask none, sir. But I have thought it possible that you might have it
  • in your power, if you should deem it right, to give me some.”
  • “Do you seek any promise from me?”
  • “I do seek that.”
  • “What is it?”
  • “I well understand that, without you, I could have no hope. I well
  • understand that, even if Miss Manette held me at this moment in her
  • innocent heart--do not think I have the presumption to assume so much--I
  • could retain no place in it against her love for her father.”
  • “If that be so, do you see what, on the other hand, is involved in it?”
  • “I understand equally well, that a word from her father in any suitor's
  • favour, would outweigh herself and all the world. For which reason,
  • Doctor Manette,” said Darnay, modestly but firmly, “I would not ask that
  • word, to save my life.”
  • “I am sure of it. Charles Darnay, mysteries arise out of close love, as
  • well as out of wide division; in the former case, they are subtle and
  • delicate, and difficult to penetrate. My daughter Lucie is, in this one
  • respect, such a mystery to me; I can make no guess at the state of her
  • heart.”
  • “May I ask, sir, if you think she is--” As he hesitated, her father
  • supplied the rest.
  • “Is sought by any other suitor?”
  • “It is what I meant to say.”
  • Her father considered a little before he answered:
  • “You have seen Mr. Carton here, yourself. Mr. Stryver is here too,
  • occasionally. If it be at all, it can only be by one of these.”
  • “Or both,” said Darnay.
  • “I had not thought of both; I should not think either, likely. You want
  • a promise from me. Tell me what it is.”
  • “It is, that if Miss Manette should bring to you at any time, on her own
  • part, such a confidence as I have ventured to lay before you, you will
  • bear testimony to what I have said, and to your belief in it. I hope you
  • may be able to think so well of me, as to urge no influence against
  • me. I say nothing more of my stake in this; this is what I ask. The
  • condition on which I ask it, and which you have an undoubted right to
  • require, I will observe immediately.”
  • “I give the promise,” said the Doctor, “without any condition. I believe
  • your object to be, purely and truthfully, as you have stated it. I
  • believe your intention is to perpetuate, and not to weaken, the ties
  • between me and my other and far dearer self. If she should ever tell me
  • that you are essential to her perfect happiness, I will give her to you.
  • If there were--Charles Darnay, if there were--”
  • The young man had taken his hand gratefully; their hands were joined as
  • the Doctor spoke:
  • “--any fancies, any reasons, any apprehensions, anything whatsoever,
  • new or old, against the man she really loved--the direct responsibility
  • thereof not lying on his head--they should all be obliterated for her
  • sake. She is everything to me; more to me than suffering, more to me
  • than wrong, more to me--Well! This is idle talk.”
  • So strange was the way in which he faded into silence, and so strange
  • his fixed look when he had ceased to speak, that Darnay felt his own
  • hand turn cold in the hand that slowly released and dropped it.
  • “You said something to me,” said Doctor Manette, breaking into a smile.
  • “What was it you said to me?”
  • He was at a loss how to answer, until he remembered having spoken of a
  • condition. Relieved as his mind reverted to that, he answered:
  • “Your confidence in me ought to be returned with full confidence on my
  • part. My present name, though but slightly changed from my mother's, is
  • not, as you will remember, my own. I wish to tell you what that is, and
  • why I am in England.”
  • “Stop!” said the Doctor of Beauvais.
  • “I wish it, that I may the better deserve your confidence, and have no
  • secret from you.”
  • “Stop!”
  • For an instant, the Doctor even had his two hands at his ears; for
  • another instant, even had his two hands laid on Darnay's lips.
  • “Tell me when I ask you, not now. If your suit should prosper, if Lucie
  • should love you, you shall tell me on your marriage morning. Do you
  • promise?”
  • “Willingly.
  • “Give me your hand. She will be home directly, and it is better she
  • should not see us together to-night. Go! God bless you!”
  • It was dark when Charles Darnay left him, and it was an hour later and
  • darker when Lucie came home; she hurried into the room alone--for
  • Miss Pross had gone straight up-stairs--and was surprised to find his
  • reading-chair empty.
  • “My father!” she called to him. “Father dear!”
  • Nothing was said in answer, but she heard a low hammering sound in his
  • bedroom. Passing lightly across the intermediate room, she looked in at
  • his door and came running back frightened, crying to herself, with her
  • blood all chilled, “What shall I do! What shall I do!”
  • Her uncertainty lasted but a moment; she hurried back, and tapped at
  • his door, and softly called to him. The noise ceased at the sound of
  • her voice, and he presently came out to her, and they walked up and down
  • together for a long time.
  • She came down from her bed, to look at him in his sleep that night. He
  • slept heavily, and his tray of shoemaking tools, and his old unfinished
  • work, were all as usual.
  • XI. A Companion Picture
  • “Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, on that self-same night, or morning, to his
  • jackal; “mix another bowl of punch; I have something to say to you.”
  • Sydney had been working double tides that night, and the night before,
  • and the night before that, and a good many nights in succession, making
  • a grand clearance among Mr. Stryver's papers before the setting in
  • of the long vacation. The clearance was effected at last; the Stryver
  • arrears were handsomely fetched up; everything was got rid of until
  • November should come with its fogs atmospheric, and fogs legal, and
  • bring grist to the mill again.
  • Sydney was none the livelier and none the soberer for so much
  • application. It had taken a deal of extra wet-towelling to pull him
  • through the night; a correspondingly extra quantity of wine had preceded
  • the towelling; and he was in a very damaged condition, as he now pulled
  • his turban off and threw it into the basin in which he had steeped it at
  • intervals for the last six hours.
  • “Are you mixing that other bowl of punch?” said Stryver the portly, with
  • his hands in his waistband, glancing round from the sofa where he lay on
  • his back.
  • “I am.”
  • “Now, look here! I am going to tell you something that will rather
  • surprise you, and that perhaps will make you think me not quite as
  • shrewd as you usually do think me. I intend to marry.”
  • “_Do_ you?”
  • “Yes. And not for money. What do you say now?”
  • “I don't feel disposed to say much. Who is she?”
  • “Guess.”
  • “Do I know her?”
  • “Guess.”
  • “I am not going to guess, at five o'clock in the morning, with my brains
  • frying and sputtering in my head. If you want me to guess, you must ask
  • me to dinner.”
  • “Well then, I'll tell you,” said Stryver, coming slowly into a sitting
  • posture. “Sydney, I rather despair of making myself intelligible to you,
  • because you are such an insensible dog.”
  • “And you,” returned Sydney, busy concocting the punch, “are such a
  • sensitive and poetical spirit--”
  • “Come!” rejoined Stryver, laughing boastfully, “though I don't prefer
  • any claim to being the soul of Romance (for I hope I know better), still
  • I am a tenderer sort of fellow than _you_.”
  • “You are a luckier, if you mean that.”
  • “I don't mean that. I mean I am a man of more--more--”
  • “Say gallantry, while you are about it,” suggested Carton.
  • “Well! I'll say gallantry. My meaning is that I am a man,” said Stryver,
  • inflating himself at his friend as he made the punch, “who cares more to
  • be agreeable, who takes more pains to be agreeable, who knows better how
  • to be agreeable, in a woman's society, than you do.”
  • “Go on,” said Sydney Carton.
  • “No; but before I go on,” said Stryver, shaking his head in his bullying
  • way, “I'll have this out with you. You've been at Doctor Manette's house
  • as much as I have, or more than I have. Why, I have been ashamed of your
  • moroseness there! Your manners have been of that silent and sullen and
  • hangdog kind, that, upon my life and soul, I have been ashamed of you,
  • Sydney!”
  • “It should be very beneficial to a man in your practice at the bar, to
  • be ashamed of anything,” returned Sydney; “you ought to be much obliged
  • to me.”
  • “You shall not get off in that way,” rejoined Stryver, shouldering the
  • rejoinder at him; “no, Sydney, it's my duty to tell you--and I tell you
  • to your face to do you good--that you are a devilish ill-conditioned
  • fellow in that sort of society. You are a disagreeable fellow.”
  • Sydney drank a bumper of the punch he had made, and laughed.
  • “Look at me!” said Stryver, squaring himself; “I have less need to make
  • myself agreeable than you have, being more independent in circumstances.
  • Why do I do it?”
  • “I never saw you do it yet,” muttered Carton.
  • “I do it because it's politic; I do it on principle. And look at me! I
  • get on.”
  • “You don't get on with your account of your matrimonial intentions,”
  • answered Carton, with a careless air; “I wish you would keep to that. As
  • to me--will you never understand that I am incorrigible?”
  • He asked the question with some appearance of scorn.
  • “You have no business to be incorrigible,” was his friend's answer,
  • delivered in no very soothing tone.
  • “I have no business to be, at all, that I know of,” said Sydney Carton.
  • “Who is the lady?”
  • “Now, don't let my announcement of the name make you uncomfortable,
  • Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, preparing him with ostentatious friendliness
  • for the disclosure he was about to make, “because I know you don't mean
  • half you say; and if you meant it all, it would be of no importance. I
  • make this little preface, because you once mentioned the young lady to
  • me in slighting terms.”
  • “I did?”
  • “Certainly; and in these chambers.”
  • Sydney Carton looked at his punch and looked at his complacent friend;
  • drank his punch and looked at his complacent friend.
  • “You made mention of the young lady as a golden-haired doll. The young
  • lady is Miss Manette. If you had been a fellow of any sensitiveness or
  • delicacy of feeling in that kind of way, Sydney, I might have been a
  • little resentful of your employing such a designation; but you are not.
  • You want that sense altogether; therefore I am no more annoyed when I
  • think of the expression, than I should be annoyed by a man's opinion of
  • a picture of mine, who had no eye for pictures: or of a piece of music
  • of mine, who had no ear for music.”
  • Sydney Carton drank the punch at a great rate; drank it by bumpers,
  • looking at his friend.
  • “Now you know all about it, Syd,” said Mr. Stryver. “I don't care about
  • fortune: she is a charming creature, and I have made up my mind to
  • please myself: on the whole, I think I can afford to please myself. She
  • will have in me a man already pretty well off, and a rapidly rising man,
  • and a man of some distinction: it is a piece of good fortune for her,
  • but she is worthy of good fortune. Are you astonished?”
  • Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, “Why should I be
  • astonished?”
  • “You approve?”
  • Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, “Why should I not approve?”
  • “Well!” said his friend Stryver, “you take it more easily than I fancied
  • you would, and are less mercenary on my behalf than I thought you would
  • be; though, to be sure, you know well enough by this time that your
  • ancient chum is a man of a pretty strong will. Yes, Sydney, I have had
  • enough of this style of life, with no other as a change from it; I
  • feel that it is a pleasant thing for a man to have a home when he feels
  • inclined to go to it (when he doesn't, he can stay away), and I feel
  • that Miss Manette will tell well in any station, and will always do me
  • credit. So I have made up my mind. And now, Sydney, old boy, I want to
  • say a word to _you_ about _your_ prospects. You are in a bad way, you
  • know; you really are in a bad way. You don't know the value of money,
  • you live hard, you'll knock up one of these days, and be ill and poor;
  • you really ought to think about a nurse.”
  • The prosperous patronage with which he said it, made him look twice as
  • big as he was, and four times as offensive.
  • “Now, let me recommend you,” pursued Stryver, “to look it in the face.
  • I have looked it in the face, in my different way; look it in the face,
  • you, in your different way. Marry. Provide somebody to take care of
  • you. Never mind your having no enjoyment of women's society, nor
  • understanding of it, nor tact for it. Find out somebody. Find out some
  • respectable woman with a little property--somebody in the landlady way,
  • or lodging-letting way--and marry her, against a rainy day. That's the
  • kind of thing for _you_. Now think of it, Sydney.”
  • “I'll think of it,” said Sydney.
  • XII. The Fellow of Delicacy
  • Mr. Stryver having made up his mind to that magnanimous bestowal of good
  • fortune on the Doctor's daughter, resolved to make her happiness known
  • to her before he left town for the Long Vacation. After some mental
  • debating of the point, he came to the conclusion that it would be as
  • well to get all the preliminaries done with, and they could then arrange
  • at their leisure whether he should give her his hand a week or two
  • before Michaelmas Term, or in the little Christmas vacation between it
  • and Hilary.
  • As to the strength of his case, he had not a doubt about it, but clearly
  • saw his way to the verdict. Argued with the jury on substantial worldly
  • grounds--the only grounds ever worth taking into account--it was a
  • plain case, and had not a weak spot in it. He called himself for the
  • plaintiff, there was no getting over his evidence, the counsel for
  • the defendant threw up his brief, and the jury did not even turn to
  • consider. After trying it, Stryver, C. J., was satisfied that no plainer
  • case could be.
  • Accordingly, Mr. Stryver inaugurated the Long Vacation with a formal
  • proposal to take Miss Manette to Vauxhall Gardens; that failing, to
  • Ranelagh; that unaccountably failing too, it behoved him to present
  • himself in Soho, and there declare his noble mind.
  • Towards Soho, therefore, Mr. Stryver shouldered his way from the Temple,
  • while the bloom of the Long Vacation's infancy was still upon it.
  • Anybody who had seen him projecting himself into Soho while he was yet
  • on Saint Dunstan's side of Temple Bar, bursting in his full-blown way
  • along the pavement, to the jostlement of all weaker people, might have
  • seen how safe and strong he was.
  • His way taking him past Tellson's, and he both banking at Tellson's and
  • knowing Mr. Lorry as the intimate friend of the Manettes, it entered Mr.
  • Stryver's mind to enter the bank, and reveal to Mr. Lorry the brightness
  • of the Soho horizon. So, he pushed open the door with the weak rattle
  • in its throat, stumbled down the two steps, got past the two ancient
  • cashiers, and shouldered himself into the musty back closet where Mr.
  • Lorry sat at great books ruled for figures, with perpendicular iron
  • bars to his window as if that were ruled for figures too, and everything
  • under the clouds were a sum.
  • “Halloa!” said Mr. Stryver. “How do you do? I hope you are well!”
  • It was Stryver's grand peculiarity that he always seemed too big for any
  • place, or space. He was so much too big for Tellson's, that old clerks
  • in distant corners looked up with looks of remonstrance, as though he
  • squeezed them against the wall. The House itself, magnificently reading
  • the paper quite in the far-off perspective, lowered displeased, as if
  • the Stryver head had been butted into its responsible waistcoat.
  • The discreet Mr. Lorry said, in a sample tone of the voice he would
  • recommend under the circumstances, “How do you do, Mr. Stryver? How do
  • you do, sir?” and shook hands. There was a peculiarity in his manner
  • of shaking hands, always to be seen in any clerk at Tellson's who shook
  • hands with a customer when the House pervaded the air. He shook in a
  • self-abnegating way, as one who shook for Tellson and Co.
  • “Can I do anything for you, Mr. Stryver?” asked Mr. Lorry, in his
  • business character.
  • “Why, no, thank you; this is a private visit to yourself, Mr. Lorry; I
  • have come for a private word.”
  • “Oh indeed!” said Mr. Lorry, bending down his ear, while his eye strayed
  • to the House afar off.
  • “I am going,” said Mr. Stryver, leaning his arms confidentially on the
  • desk: whereupon, although it was a large double one, there appeared to
  • be not half desk enough for him: “I am going to make an offer of myself
  • in marriage to your agreeable little friend, Miss Manette, Mr. Lorry.”
  • “Oh dear me!” cried Mr. Lorry, rubbing his chin, and looking at his
  • visitor dubiously.
  • “Oh dear me, sir?” repeated Stryver, drawing back. “Oh dear you, sir?
  • What may your meaning be, Mr. Lorry?”
  • “My meaning,” answered the man of business, “is, of course, friendly and
  • appreciative, and that it does you the greatest credit, and--in short,
  • my meaning is everything you could desire. But--really, you know, Mr.
  • Stryver--” Mr. Lorry paused, and shook his head at him in the oddest
  • manner, as if he were compelled against his will to add, internally,
  • “you know there really is so much too much of you!”
  • “Well!” said Stryver, slapping the desk with his contentious hand,
  • opening his eyes wider, and taking a long breath, “if I understand you,
  • Mr. Lorry, I'll be hanged!”
  • Mr. Lorry adjusted his little wig at both ears as a means towards that
  • end, and bit the feather of a pen.
  • “D--n it all, sir!” said Stryver, staring at him, “am I not eligible?”
  • “Oh dear yes! Yes. Oh yes, you're eligible!” said Mr. Lorry. “If you say
  • eligible, you are eligible.”
  • “Am I not prosperous?” asked Stryver.
  • “Oh! if you come to prosperous, you are prosperous,” said Mr. Lorry.
  • “And advancing?”
  • “If you come to advancing you know,” said Mr. Lorry, delighted to be
  • able to make another admission, “nobody can doubt that.”
  • “Then what on earth is your meaning, Mr. Lorry?” demanded Stryver,
  • perceptibly crestfallen.
  • “Well! I--Were you going there now?” asked Mr. Lorry.
  • “Straight!” said Stryver, with a plump of his fist on the desk.
  • “Then I think I wouldn't, if I was you.”
  • “Why?” said Stryver. “Now, I'll put you in a corner,” forensically
  • shaking a forefinger at him. “You are a man of business and bound to
  • have a reason. State your reason. Why wouldn't you go?”
  • “Because,” said Mr. Lorry, “I wouldn't go on such an object without
  • having some cause to believe that I should succeed.”
  • “D--n _me_!” cried Stryver, “but this beats everything.”
  • Mr. Lorry glanced at the distant House, and glanced at the angry
  • Stryver.
  • “Here's a man of business--a man of years--a man of experience--_in_
  • a Bank,” said Stryver; “and having summed up three leading reasons for
  • complete success, he says there's no reason at all! Says it with his
  • head on!” Mr. Stryver remarked upon the peculiarity as if it would have
  • been infinitely less remarkable if he had said it with his head off.
  • “When I speak of success, I speak of success with the young lady; and
  • when I speak of causes and reasons to make success probable, I speak of
  • causes and reasons that will tell as such with the young lady. The young
  • lady, my good sir,” said Mr. Lorry, mildly tapping the Stryver arm, “the
  • young lady. The young lady goes before all.”
  • “Then you mean to tell me, Mr. Lorry,” said Stryver, squaring his
  • elbows, “that it is your deliberate opinion that the young lady at
  • present in question is a mincing Fool?”
  • “Not exactly so. I mean to tell you, Mr. Stryver,” said Mr. Lorry,
  • reddening, “that I will hear no disrespectful word of that young lady
  • from any lips; and that if I knew any man--which I hope I do not--whose
  • taste was so coarse, and whose temper was so overbearing, that he could
  • not restrain himself from speaking disrespectfully of that young lady at
  • this desk, not even Tellson's should prevent my giving him a piece of my
  • mind.”
  • The necessity of being angry in a suppressed tone had put Mr. Stryver's
  • blood-vessels into a dangerous state when it was his turn to be angry;
  • Mr. Lorry's veins, methodical as their courses could usually be, were in
  • no better state now it was his turn.
  • “That is what I mean to tell you, sir,” said Mr. Lorry. “Pray let there
  • be no mistake about it.”
  • Mr. Stryver sucked the end of a ruler for a little while, and then stood
  • hitting a tune out of his teeth with it, which probably gave him the
  • toothache. He broke the awkward silence by saying:
  • “This is something new to me, Mr. Lorry. You deliberately advise me not
  • to go up to Soho and offer myself--_my_self, Stryver of the King's Bench
  • bar?”
  • “Do you ask me for my advice, Mr. Stryver?”
  • “Yes, I do.”
  • “Very good. Then I give it, and you have repeated it correctly.”
  • “And all I can say of it is,” laughed Stryver with a vexed laugh, “that
  • this--ha, ha!--beats everything past, present, and to come.”
  • “Now understand me,” pursued Mr. Lorry. “As a man of business, I am
  • not justified in saying anything about this matter, for, as a man of
  • business, I know nothing of it. But, as an old fellow, who has carried
  • Miss Manette in his arms, who is the trusted friend of Miss Manette and
  • of her father too, and who has a great affection for them both, I have
  • spoken. The confidence is not of my seeking, recollect. Now, you think I
  • may not be right?”
  • “Not I!” said Stryver, whistling. “I can't undertake to find third
  • parties in common sense; I can only find it for myself. I suppose sense
  • in certain quarters; you suppose mincing bread-and-butter nonsense. It's
  • new to me, but you are right, I dare say.”
  • “What I suppose, Mr. Stryver, I claim to characterise for myself--And
  • understand me, sir,” said Mr. Lorry, quickly flushing again, “I
  • will not--not even at Tellson's--have it characterised for me by any
  • gentleman breathing.”
  • “There! I beg your pardon!” said Stryver.
  • “Granted. Thank you. Well, Mr. Stryver, I was about to say:--it might be
  • painful to you to find yourself mistaken, it might be painful to Doctor
  • Manette to have the task of being explicit with you, it might be very
  • painful to Miss Manette to have the task of being explicit with you. You
  • know the terms upon which I have the honour and happiness to stand with
  • the family. If you please, committing you in no way, representing you
  • in no way, I will undertake to correct my advice by the exercise of a
  • little new observation and judgment expressly brought to bear upon
  • it. If you should then be dissatisfied with it, you can but test its
  • soundness for yourself; if, on the other hand, you should be satisfied
  • with it, and it should be what it now is, it may spare all sides what is
  • best spared. What do you say?”
  • “How long would you keep me in town?”
  • “Oh! It is only a question of a few hours. I could go to Soho in the
  • evening, and come to your chambers afterwards.”
  • “Then I say yes,” said Stryver: “I won't go up there now, I am not so
  • hot upon it as that comes to; I say yes, and I shall expect you to look
  • in to-night. Good morning.”
  • Then Mr. Stryver turned and burst out of the Bank, causing such a
  • concussion of air on his passage through, that to stand up against it
  • bowing behind the two counters, required the utmost remaining strength
  • of the two ancient clerks. Those venerable and feeble persons were
  • always seen by the public in the act of bowing, and were popularly
  • believed, when they had bowed a customer out, still to keep on bowing in
  • the empty office until they bowed another customer in.
  • The barrister was keen enough to divine that the banker would not have
  • gone so far in his expression of opinion on any less solid ground than
  • moral certainty. Unprepared as he was for the large pill he had to
  • swallow, he got it down. “And now,” said Mr. Stryver, shaking his
  • forensic forefinger at the Temple in general, when it was down, “my way
  • out of this, is, to put you all in the wrong.”
  • It was a bit of the art of an Old Bailey tactician, in which he found
  • great relief. “You shall not put me in the wrong, young lady,” said Mr.
  • Stryver; “I'll do that for you.”
  • Accordingly, when Mr. Lorry called that night as late as ten o'clock,
  • Mr. Stryver, among a quantity of books and papers littered out for the
  • purpose, seemed to have nothing less on his mind than the subject of
  • the morning. He even showed surprise when he saw Mr. Lorry, and was
  • altogether in an absent and preoccupied state.
  • “Well!” said that good-natured emissary, after a full half-hour of
  • bootless attempts to bring him round to the question. “I have been to
  • Soho.”
  • “To Soho?” repeated Mr. Stryver, coldly. “Oh, to be sure! What am I
  • thinking of!”
  • “And I have no doubt,” said Mr. Lorry, “that I was right in the
  • conversation we had. My opinion is confirmed, and I reiterate my
  • advice.”
  • “I assure you,” returned Mr. Stryver, in the friendliest way, “that I
  • am sorry for it on your account, and sorry for it on the poor father's
  • account. I know this must always be a sore subject with the family; let
  • us say no more about it.”
  • “I don't understand you,” said Mr. Lorry.
  • “I dare say not,” rejoined Stryver, nodding his head in a smoothing and
  • final way; “no matter, no matter.”
  • “But it does matter,” Mr. Lorry urged.
  • “No it doesn't; I assure you it doesn't. Having supposed that there was
  • sense where there is no sense, and a laudable ambition where there is
  • not a laudable ambition, I am well out of my mistake, and no harm is
  • done. Young women have committed similar follies often before, and have
  • repented them in poverty and obscurity often before. In an unselfish
  • aspect, I am sorry that the thing is dropped, because it would have been
  • a bad thing for me in a worldly point of view; in a selfish aspect, I am
  • glad that the thing has dropped, because it would have been a bad thing
  • for me in a worldly point of view--it is hardly necessary to say I could
  • have gained nothing by it. There is no harm at all done. I have not
  • proposed to the young lady, and, between ourselves, I am by no means
  • certain, on reflection, that I ever should have committed myself to
  • that extent. Mr. Lorry, you cannot control the mincing vanities and
  • giddinesses of empty-headed girls; you must not expect to do it, or you
  • will always be disappointed. Now, pray say no more about it. I tell you,
  • I regret it on account of others, but I am satisfied on my own account.
  • And I am really very much obliged to you for allowing me to sound you,
  • and for giving me your advice; you know the young lady better than I do;
  • you were right, it never would have done.”
  • Mr. Lorry was so taken aback, that he looked quite stupidly at Mr.
  • Stryver shouldering him towards the door, with an appearance of
  • showering generosity, forbearance, and goodwill, on his erring head.
  • “Make the best of it, my dear sir,” said Stryver; “say no more about it;
  • thank you again for allowing me to sound you; good night!”
  • Mr. Lorry was out in the night, before he knew where he was. Mr. Stryver
  • was lying back on his sofa, winking at his ceiling.
  • XIII. The Fellow of No Delicacy
  • If Sydney Carton ever shone anywhere, he certainly never shone in the
  • house of Doctor Manette. He had been there often, during a whole year,
  • and had always been the same moody and morose lounger there. When he
  • cared to talk, he talked well; but, the cloud of caring for nothing,
  • which overshadowed him with such a fatal darkness, was very rarely
  • pierced by the light within him.
  • And yet he did care something for the streets that environed that house,
  • and for the senseless stones that made their pavements. Many a night
  • he vaguely and unhappily wandered there, when wine had brought no
  • transitory gladness to him; many a dreary daybreak revealed his solitary
  • figure lingering there, and still lingering there when the first beams
  • of the sun brought into strong relief, removed beauties of architecture
  • in spires of churches and lofty buildings, as perhaps the quiet time
  • brought some sense of better things, else forgotten and unattainable,
  • into his mind. Of late, the neglected bed in the Temple Court had known
  • him more scantily than ever; and often when he had thrown himself upon
  • it no longer than a few minutes, he had got up again, and haunted that
  • neighbourhood.
  • On a day in August, when Mr. Stryver (after notifying to his jackal
  • that “he had thought better of that marrying matter”) had carried his
  • delicacy into Devonshire, and when the sight and scent of flowers in the
  • City streets had some waifs of goodness in them for the worst, of health
  • for the sickliest, and of youth for the oldest, Sydney's feet still trod
  • those stones. From being irresolute and purposeless, his feet became
  • animated by an intention, and, in the working out of that intention,
  • they took him to the Doctor's door.
  • He was shown up-stairs, and found Lucie at her work, alone. She had
  • never been quite at her ease with him, and received him with some little
  • embarrassment as he seated himself near her table. But, looking up at
  • his face in the interchange of the first few common-places, she observed
  • a change in it.
  • “I fear you are not well, Mr. Carton!”
  • “No. But the life I lead, Miss Manette, is not conducive to health. What
  • is to be expected of, or by, such profligates?”
  • “Is it not--forgive me; I have begun the question on my lips--a pity to
  • live no better life?”
  • “God knows it is a shame!”
  • “Then why not change it?”
  • Looking gently at him again, she was surprised and saddened to see that
  • there were tears in his eyes. There were tears in his voice too, as he
  • answered:
  • “It is too late for that. I shall never be better than I am. I shall
  • sink lower, and be worse.”
  • He leaned an elbow on her table, and covered his eyes with his hand. The
  • table trembled in the silence that followed.
  • She had never seen him softened, and was much distressed. He knew her to
  • be so, without looking at her, and said:
  • “Pray forgive me, Miss Manette. I break down before the knowledge of
  • what I want to say to you. Will you hear me?”
  • “If it will do you any good, Mr. Carton, if it would make you happier,
  • it would make me very glad!”
  • “God bless you for your sweet compassion!”
  • He unshaded his face after a little while, and spoke steadily.
  • “Don't be afraid to hear me. Don't shrink from anything I say. I am like
  • one who died young. All my life might have been.”
  • “No, Mr. Carton. I am sure that the best part of it might still be; I am
  • sure that you might be much, much worthier of yourself.”
  • “Say of you, Miss Manette, and although I know better--although in the
  • mystery of my own wretched heart I know better--I shall never forget
  • it!”
  • She was pale and trembling. He came to her relief with a fixed despair
  • of himself which made the interview unlike any other that could have
  • been holden.
  • “If it had been possible, Miss Manette, that you could have returned the
  • love of the man you see before yourself--flung away, wasted, drunken,
  • poor creature of misuse as you know him to be--he would have been
  • conscious this day and hour, in spite of his happiness, that he would
  • bring you to misery, bring you to sorrow and repentance, blight you,
  • disgrace you, pull you down with him. I know very well that you can have
  • no tenderness for me; I ask for none; I am even thankful that it cannot
  • be.”
  • “Without it, can I not save you, Mr. Carton? Can I not recall
  • you--forgive me again!--to a better course? Can I in no way repay your
  • confidence? I know this is a confidence,” she modestly said, after a
  • little hesitation, and in earnest tears, “I know you would say this to
  • no one else. Can I turn it to no good account for yourself, Mr. Carton?”
  • He shook his head.
  • “To none. No, Miss Manette, to none. If you will hear me through a very
  • little more, all you can ever do for me is done. I wish you to know that
  • you have been the last dream of my soul. In my degradation I have not
  • been so degraded but that the sight of you with your father, and of this
  • home made such a home by you, has stirred old shadows that I thought had
  • died out of me. Since I knew you, I have been troubled by a remorse that
  • I thought would never reproach me again, and have heard whispers from
  • old voices impelling me upward, that I thought were silent for ever. I
  • have had unformed ideas of striving afresh, beginning anew, shaking off
  • sloth and sensuality, and fighting out the abandoned fight. A dream, all
  • a dream, that ends in nothing, and leaves the sleeper where he lay down,
  • but I wish you to know that you inspired it.”
  • “Will nothing of it remain? O Mr. Carton, think again! Try again!”
  • “No, Miss Manette; all through it, I have known myself to be quite
  • undeserving. And yet I have had the weakness, and have still the
  • weakness, to wish you to know with what a sudden mastery you kindled me,
  • heap of ashes that I am, into fire--a fire, however, inseparable in
  • its nature from myself, quickening nothing, lighting nothing, doing no
  • service, idly burning away.”
  • “Since it is my misfortune, Mr. Carton, to have made you more unhappy
  • than you were before you knew me--”
  • “Don't say that, Miss Manette, for you would have reclaimed me, if
  • anything could. You will not be the cause of my becoming worse.”
  • “Since the state of your mind that you describe, is, at all events,
  • attributable to some influence of mine--this is what I mean, if I can
  • make it plain--can I use no influence to serve you? Have I no power for
  • good, with you, at all?”
  • “The utmost good that I am capable of now, Miss Manette, I have come
  • here to realise. Let me carry through the rest of my misdirected life,
  • the remembrance that I opened my heart to you, last of all the world;
  • and that there was something left in me at this time which you could
  • deplore and pity.”
  • “Which I entreated you to believe, again and again, most fervently, with
  • all my heart, was capable of better things, Mr. Carton!”
  • “Entreat me to believe it no more, Miss Manette. I have proved myself,
  • and I know better. I distress you; I draw fast to an end. Will you let
  • me believe, when I recall this day, that the last confidence of my life
  • was reposed in your pure and innocent breast, and that it lies there
  • alone, and will be shared by no one?”
  • “If that will be a consolation to you, yes.”
  • “Not even by the dearest one ever to be known to you?”
  • “Mr. Carton,” she answered, after an agitated pause, “the secret is
  • yours, not mine; and I promise to respect it.”
  • “Thank you. And again, God bless you.”
  • He put her hand to his lips, and moved towards the door.
  • “Be under no apprehension, Miss Manette, of my ever resuming this
  • conversation by so much as a passing word. I will never refer to it
  • again. If I were dead, that could not be surer than it is henceforth. In
  • the hour of my death, I shall hold sacred the one good remembrance--and
  • shall thank and bless you for it--that my last avowal of myself was made
  • to you, and that my name, and faults, and miseries were gently carried
  • in your heart. May it otherwise be light and happy!”
  • He was so unlike what he had ever shown himself to be, and it was so
  • sad to think how much he had thrown away, and how much he every day kept
  • down and perverted, that Lucie Manette wept mournfully for him as he
  • stood looking back at her.
  • “Be comforted!” he said, “I am not worth such feeling, Miss Manette. An
  • hour or two hence, and the low companions and low habits that I scorn
  • but yield to, will render me less worth such tears as those, than any
  • wretch who creeps along the streets. Be comforted! But, within myself, I
  • shall always be, towards you, what I am now, though outwardly I shall be
  • what you have heretofore seen me. The last supplication but one I make
  • to you, is, that you will believe this of me.”
  • “I will, Mr. Carton.”
  • “My last supplication of all, is this; and with it, I will relieve
  • you of a visitor with whom I well know you have nothing in unison, and
  • between whom and you there is an impassable space. It is useless to say
  • it, I know, but it rises out of my soul. For you, and for any dear to
  • you, I would do anything. If my career were of that better kind that
  • there was any opportunity or capacity of sacrifice in it, I would
  • embrace any sacrifice for you and for those dear to you. Try to hold
  • me in your mind, at some quiet times, as ardent and sincere in this one
  • thing. The time will come, the time will not be long in coming, when new
  • ties will be formed about you--ties that will bind you yet more tenderly
  • and strongly to the home you so adorn--the dearest ties that will ever
  • grace and gladden you. O Miss Manette, when the little picture of a
  • happy father's face looks up in yours, when you see your own bright
  • beauty springing up anew at your feet, think now and then that there is
  • a man who would give his life, to keep a life you love beside you!”
  • He said, “Farewell!” said a last “God bless you!” and left her.
  • XIV. The Honest Tradesman
  • To the eyes of Mr. Jeremiah Cruncher, sitting on his stool in
  • Fleet-street with his grisly urchin beside him, a vast number and
  • variety of objects in movement were every day presented. Who could sit
  • upon anything in Fleet-street during the busy hours of the day, and
  • not be dazed and deafened by two immense processions, one ever tending
  • westward with the sun, the other ever tending eastward from the sun,
  • both ever tending to the plains beyond the range of red and purple where
  • the sun goes down!
  • With his straw in his mouth, Mr. Cruncher sat watching the two streams,
  • like the heathen rustic who has for several centuries been on duty
  • watching one stream--saving that Jerry had no expectation of their ever
  • running dry. Nor would it have been an expectation of a hopeful kind,
  • since a small part of his income was derived from the pilotage of timid
  • women (mostly of a full habit and past the middle term of life) from
  • Tellson's side of the tides to the opposite shore. Brief as such
  • companionship was in every separate instance, Mr. Cruncher never failed
  • to become so interested in the lady as to express a strong desire to
  • have the honour of drinking her very good health. And it was from
  • the gifts bestowed upon him towards the execution of this benevolent
  • purpose, that he recruited his finances, as just now observed.
  • Time was, when a poet sat upon a stool in a public place, and mused in
  • the sight of men. Mr. Cruncher, sitting on a stool in a public place,
  • but not being a poet, mused as little as possible, and looked about him.
  • It fell out that he was thus engaged in a season when crowds were
  • few, and belated women few, and when his affairs in general were so
  • unprosperous as to awaken a strong suspicion in his breast that Mrs.
  • Cruncher must have been “flopping” in some pointed manner, when an
  • unusual concourse pouring down Fleet-street westward, attracted his
  • attention. Looking that way, Mr. Cruncher made out that some kind of
  • funeral was coming along, and that there was popular objection to this
  • funeral, which engendered uproar.
  • “Young Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, turning to his offspring, “it's a
  • buryin'.”
  • “Hooroar, father!” cried Young Jerry.
  • The young gentleman uttered this exultant sound with mysterious
  • significance. The elder gentleman took the cry so ill, that he watched
  • his opportunity, and smote the young gentleman on the ear.
  • “What d'ye mean? What are you hooroaring at? What do you want to conwey
  • to your own father, you young Rip? This boy is a getting too many for
  • _me_!” said Mr. Cruncher, surveying him. “Him and his hooroars! Don't
  • let me hear no more of you, or you shall feel some more of me. D'ye
  • hear?”
  • “I warn't doing no harm,” Young Jerry protested, rubbing his cheek.
  • “Drop it then,” said Mr. Cruncher; “I won't have none of _your_ no
  • harms. Get a top of that there seat, and look at the crowd.”
  • His son obeyed, and the crowd approached; they were bawling and hissing
  • round a dingy hearse and dingy mourning coach, in which mourning coach
  • there was only one mourner, dressed in the dingy trappings that were
  • considered essential to the dignity of the position. The position
  • appeared by no means to please him, however, with an increasing rabble
  • surrounding the coach, deriding him, making grimaces at him, and
  • incessantly groaning and calling out: “Yah! Spies! Tst! Yaha! Spies!”
  • with many compliments too numerous and forcible to repeat.
  • Funerals had at all times a remarkable attraction for Mr. Cruncher; he
  • always pricked up his senses, and became excited, when a funeral passed
  • Tellson's. Naturally, therefore, a funeral with this uncommon attendance
  • excited him greatly, and he asked of the first man who ran against him:
  • “What is it, brother? What's it about?”
  • “_I_ don't know,” said the man. “Spies! Yaha! Tst! Spies!”
  • He asked another man. “Who is it?”
  • “_I_ don't know,” returned the man, clapping his hands to his mouth
  • nevertheless, and vociferating in a surprising heat and with the
  • greatest ardour, “Spies! Yaha! Tst, tst! Spi--ies!”
  • At length, a person better informed on the merits of the case, tumbled
  • against him, and from this person he learned that the funeral was the
  • funeral of one Roger Cly.
  • “Was he a spy?” asked Mr. Cruncher.
  • “Old Bailey spy,” returned his informant. “Yaha! Tst! Yah! Old Bailey
  • Spi--i--ies!”
  • “Why, to be sure!” exclaimed Jerry, recalling the Trial at which he had
  • assisted. “I've seen him. Dead, is he?”
  • “Dead as mutton,” returned the other, “and can't be too dead. Have 'em
  • out, there! Spies! Pull 'em out, there! Spies!”
  • The idea was so acceptable in the prevalent absence of any idea,
  • that the crowd caught it up with eagerness, and loudly repeating the
  • suggestion to have 'em out, and to pull 'em out, mobbed the two vehicles
  • so closely that they came to a stop. On the crowd's opening the coach
  • doors, the one mourner scuffled out by himself and was in their hands
  • for a moment; but he was so alert, and made such good use of his time,
  • that in another moment he was scouring away up a bye-street, after
  • shedding his cloak, hat, long hatband, white pocket-handkerchief, and
  • other symbolical tears.
  • These, the people tore to pieces and scattered far and wide with great
  • enjoyment, while the tradesmen hurriedly shut up their shops; for a
  • crowd in those times stopped at nothing, and was a monster much dreaded.
  • They had already got the length of opening the hearse to take the coffin
  • out, when some brighter genius proposed instead, its being escorted to
  • its destination amidst general rejoicing. Practical suggestions being
  • much needed, this suggestion, too, was received with acclamation, and
  • the coach was immediately filled with eight inside and a dozen out,
  • while as many people got on the roof of the hearse as could by any
  • exercise of ingenuity stick upon it. Among the first of these volunteers
  • was Jerry Cruncher himself, who modestly concealed his spiky head from
  • the observation of Tellson's, in the further corner of the mourning
  • coach.
  • The officiating undertakers made some protest against these changes in
  • the ceremonies; but, the river being alarmingly near, and several voices
  • remarking on the efficacy of cold immersion in bringing refractory
  • members of the profession to reason, the protest was faint and brief.
  • The remodelled procession started, with a chimney-sweep driving the
  • hearse--advised by the regular driver, who was perched beside him, under
  • close inspection, for the purpose--and with a pieman, also attended
  • by his cabinet minister, driving the mourning coach. A bear-leader, a
  • popular street character of the time, was impressed as an additional
  • ornament, before the cavalcade had gone far down the Strand; and his
  • bear, who was black and very mangy, gave quite an Undertaking air to
  • that part of the procession in which he walked.
  • Thus, with beer-drinking, pipe-smoking, song-roaring, and infinite
  • caricaturing of woe, the disorderly procession went its way, recruiting
  • at every step, and all the shops shutting up before it. Its destination
  • was the old church of Saint Pancras, far off in the fields. It got there
  • in course of time; insisted on pouring into the burial-ground; finally,
  • accomplished the interment of the deceased Roger Cly in its own way, and
  • highly to its own satisfaction.
  • The dead man disposed of, and the crowd being under the necessity of
  • providing some other entertainment for itself, another brighter
  • genius (or perhaps the same) conceived the humour of impeaching casual
  • passers-by, as Old Bailey spies, and wreaking vengeance on them. Chase
  • was given to some scores of inoffensive persons who had never been near
  • the Old Bailey in their lives, in the realisation of this fancy, and
  • they were roughly hustled and maltreated. The transition to the sport of
  • window-breaking, and thence to the plundering of public-houses, was easy
  • and natural. At last, after several hours, when sundry summer-houses had
  • been pulled down, and some area-railings had been torn up, to arm
  • the more belligerent spirits, a rumour got about that the Guards were
  • coming. Before this rumour, the crowd gradually melted away, and perhaps
  • the Guards came, and perhaps they never came, and this was the usual
  • progress of a mob.
  • Mr. Cruncher did not assist at the closing sports, but had remained
  • behind in the churchyard, to confer and condole with the undertakers.
  • The place had a soothing influence on him. He procured a pipe from a
  • neighbouring public-house, and smoked it, looking in at the railings and
  • maturely considering the spot.
  • “Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, apostrophising himself in his usual way,
  • “you see that there Cly that day, and you see with your own eyes that he
  • was a young 'un and a straight made 'un.”
  • Having smoked his pipe out, and ruminated a little longer, he turned
  • himself about, that he might appear, before the hour of closing, on his
  • station at Tellson's. Whether his meditations on mortality had touched
  • his liver, or whether his general health had been previously at all
  • amiss, or whether he desired to show a little attention to an eminent
  • man, is not so much to the purpose, as that he made a short call upon
  • his medical adviser--a distinguished surgeon--on his way back.
  • Young Jerry relieved his father with dutiful interest, and reported No
  • job in his absence. The bank closed, the ancient clerks came out, the
  • usual watch was set, and Mr. Cruncher and his son went home to tea.
  • “Now, I tell you where it is!” said Mr. Cruncher to his wife, on
  • entering. “If, as a honest tradesman, my wenturs goes wrong to-night, I
  • shall make sure that you've been praying again me, and I shall work you
  • for it just the same as if I seen you do it.”
  • The dejected Mrs. Cruncher shook her head.
  • “Why, you're at it afore my face!” said Mr. Cruncher, with signs of
  • angry apprehension.
  • “I am saying nothing.”
  • “Well, then; don't meditate nothing. You might as well flop as meditate.
  • You may as well go again me one way as another. Drop it altogether.”
  • “Yes, Jerry.”
  • “Yes, Jerry,” repeated Mr. Cruncher sitting down to tea. “Ah! It _is_
  • yes, Jerry. That's about it. You may say yes, Jerry.”
  • Mr. Cruncher had no particular meaning in these sulky corroborations,
  • but made use of them, as people not unfrequently do, to express general
  • ironical dissatisfaction.
  • “You and your yes, Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, taking a bite out of his
  • bread-and-butter, and seeming to help it down with a large invisible
  • oyster out of his saucer. “Ah! I think so. I believe you.”
  • “You are going out to-night?” asked his decent wife, when he took
  • another bite.
  • “Yes, I am.”
  • “May I go with you, father?” asked his son, briskly.
  • “No, you mayn't. I'm a going--as your mother knows--a fishing. That's
  • where I'm going to. Going a fishing.”
  • “Your fishing-rod gets rayther rusty; don't it, father?”
  • “Never you mind.”
  • “Shall you bring any fish home, father?”
  • “If I don't, you'll have short commons, to-morrow,” returned that
  • gentleman, shaking his head; “that's questions enough for you; I ain't a
  • going out, till you've been long abed.”
  • He devoted himself during the remainder of the evening to keeping a
  • most vigilant watch on Mrs. Cruncher, and sullenly holding her in
  • conversation that she might be prevented from meditating any petitions
  • to his disadvantage. With this view, he urged his son to hold her in
  • conversation also, and led the unfortunate woman a hard life by dwelling
  • on any causes of complaint he could bring against her, rather than
  • he would leave her for a moment to her own reflections. The devoutest
  • person could have rendered no greater homage to the efficacy of an
  • honest prayer than he did in this distrust of his wife. It was as if a
  • professed unbeliever in ghosts should be frightened by a ghost story.
  • “And mind you!” said Mr. Cruncher. “No games to-morrow! If I, as a
  • honest tradesman, succeed in providing a jinte of meat or two, none
  • of your not touching of it, and sticking to bread. If I, as a honest
  • tradesman, am able to provide a little beer, none of your declaring
  • on water. When you go to Rome, do as Rome does. Rome will be a ugly
  • customer to you, if you don't. _I_'m your Rome, you know.”
  • Then he began grumbling again:
  • “With your flying into the face of your own wittles and drink! I don't
  • know how scarce you mayn't make the wittles and drink here, by your
  • flopping tricks and your unfeeling conduct. Look at your boy: he _is_
  • your'n, ain't he? He's as thin as a lath. Do you call yourself a mother,
  • and not know that a mother's first duty is to blow her boy out?”
  • This touched Young Jerry on a tender place; who adjured his mother to
  • perform her first duty, and, whatever else she did or neglected, above
  • all things to lay especial stress on the discharge of that maternal
  • function so affectingly and delicately indicated by his other parent.
  • Thus the evening wore away with the Cruncher family, until Young Jerry
  • was ordered to bed, and his mother, laid under similar injunctions,
  • obeyed them. Mr. Cruncher beguiled the earlier watches of the night with
  • solitary pipes, and did not start upon his excursion until nearly one
  • o'clock. Towards that small and ghostly hour, he rose up from his chair,
  • took a key out of his pocket, opened a locked cupboard, and brought
  • forth a sack, a crowbar of convenient size, a rope and chain, and other
  • fishing tackle of that nature. Disposing these articles about him
  • in skilful manner, he bestowed a parting defiance on Mrs. Cruncher,
  • extinguished the light, and went out.
  • Young Jerry, who had only made a feint of undressing when he went to
  • bed, was not long after his father. Under cover of the darkness he
  • followed out of the room, followed down the stairs, followed down the
  • court, followed out into the streets. He was in no uneasiness concerning
  • his getting into the house again, for it was full of lodgers, and the
  • door stood ajar all night.
  • Impelled by a laudable ambition to study the art and mystery of his
  • father's honest calling, Young Jerry, keeping as close to house fronts,
  • walls, and doorways, as his eyes were close to one another, held his
  • honoured parent in view. The honoured parent steering Northward, had not
  • gone far, when he was joined by another disciple of Izaak Walton, and
  • the two trudged on together.
  • Within half an hour from the first starting, they were beyond the
  • winking lamps, and the more than winking watchmen, and were out upon a
  • lonely road. Another fisherman was picked up here--and that so silently,
  • that if Young Jerry had been superstitious, he might have supposed the
  • second follower of the gentle craft to have, all of a sudden, split
  • himself into two.
  • The three went on, and Young Jerry went on, until the three stopped
  • under a bank overhanging the road. Upon the top of the bank was a low
  • brick wall, surmounted by an iron railing. In the shadow of bank and
  • wall the three turned out of the road, and up a blind lane, of which
  • the wall--there, risen to some eight or ten feet high--formed one side.
  • Crouching down in a corner, peeping up the lane, the next object that
  • Young Jerry saw, was the form of his honoured parent, pretty well
  • defined against a watery and clouded moon, nimbly scaling an iron gate.
  • He was soon over, and then the second fisherman got over, and then the
  • third. They all dropped softly on the ground within the gate, and lay
  • there a little--listening perhaps. Then, they moved away on their hands
  • and knees.
  • It was now Young Jerry's turn to approach the gate: which he did,
  • holding his breath. Crouching down again in a corner there, and looking
  • in, he made out the three fishermen creeping through some rank grass!
  • and all the gravestones in the churchyard--it was a large churchyard
  • that they were in--looking on like ghosts in white, while the church
  • tower itself looked on like the ghost of a monstrous giant. They did not
  • creep far, before they stopped and stood upright. And then they began to
  • fish.
  • They fished with a spade, at first. Presently the honoured parent
  • appeared to be adjusting some instrument like a great corkscrew.
  • Whatever tools they worked with, they worked hard, until the awful
  • striking of the church clock so terrified Young Jerry, that he made off,
  • with his hair as stiff as his father's.
  • But, his long-cherished desire to know more about these matters, not
  • only stopped him in his running away, but lured him back again. They
  • were still fishing perseveringly, when he peeped in at the gate for
  • the second time; but, now they seemed to have got a bite. There was a
  • screwing and complaining sound down below, and their bent figures were
  • strained, as if by a weight. By slow degrees the weight broke away the
  • earth upon it, and came to the surface. Young Jerry very well knew what
  • it would be; but, when he saw it, and saw his honoured parent about to
  • wrench it open, he was so frightened, being new to the sight, that he
  • made off again, and never stopped until he had run a mile or more.
  • He would not have stopped then, for anything less necessary than breath,
  • it being a spectral sort of race that he ran, and one highly desirable
  • to get to the end of. He had a strong idea that the coffin he had seen
  • was running after him; and, pictured as hopping on behind him, bolt
  • upright, upon its narrow end, always on the point of overtaking him
  • and hopping on at his side--perhaps taking his arm--it was a pursuer to
  • shun. It was an inconsistent and ubiquitous fiend too, for, while it
  • was making the whole night behind him dreadful, he darted out into the
  • roadway to avoid dark alleys, fearful of its coming hopping out of them
  • like a dropsical boy's kite without tail and wings. It hid in doorways
  • too, rubbing its horrible shoulders against doors, and drawing them up
  • to its ears, as if it were laughing. It got into shadows on the road,
  • and lay cunningly on its back to trip him up. All this time it was
  • incessantly hopping on behind and gaining on him, so that when the boy
  • got to his own door he had reason for being half dead. And even then
  • it would not leave him, but followed him upstairs with a bump on every
  • stair, scrambled into bed with him, and bumped down, dead and heavy, on
  • his breast when he fell asleep.
  • From his oppressed slumber, Young Jerry in his closet was awakened after
  • daybreak and before sunrise, by the presence of his father in the
  • family room. Something had gone wrong with him; at least, so Young Jerry
  • inferred, from the circumstance of his holding Mrs. Cruncher by the
  • ears, and knocking the back of her head against the head-board of the
  • bed.
  • “I told you I would,” said Mr. Cruncher, “and I did.”
  • “Jerry, Jerry, Jerry!” his wife implored.
  • “You oppose yourself to the profit of the business,” said Jerry, “and me
  • and my partners suffer. You was to honour and obey; why the devil don't
  • you?”
  • “I try to be a good wife, Jerry,” the poor woman protested, with tears.
  • “Is it being a good wife to oppose your husband's business? Is it
  • honouring your husband to dishonour his business? Is it obeying your
  • husband to disobey him on the wital subject of his business?”
  • “You hadn't taken to the dreadful business then, Jerry.”
  • “It's enough for you,” retorted Mr. Cruncher, “to be the wife of a
  • honest tradesman, and not to occupy your female mind with calculations
  • when he took to his trade or when he didn't. A honouring and obeying
  • wife would let his trade alone altogether. Call yourself a religious
  • woman? If you're a religious woman, give me a irreligious one! You have
  • no more nat'ral sense of duty than the bed of this here Thames river has
  • of a pile, and similarly it must be knocked into you.”
  • The altercation was conducted in a low tone of voice, and terminated in
  • the honest tradesman's kicking off his clay-soiled boots, and lying down
  • at his length on the floor. After taking a timid peep at him lying on
  • his back, with his rusty hands under his head for a pillow, his son lay
  • down too, and fell asleep again.
  • There was no fish for breakfast, and not much of anything else. Mr.
  • Cruncher was out of spirits, and out of temper, and kept an iron pot-lid
  • by him as a projectile for the correction of Mrs. Cruncher, in case
  • he should observe any symptoms of her saying Grace. He was brushed
  • and washed at the usual hour, and set off with his son to pursue his
  • ostensible calling.
  • Young Jerry, walking with the stool under his arm at his father's side
  • along sunny and crowded Fleet-street, was a very different Young Jerry
  • from him of the previous night, running home through darkness and
  • solitude from his grim pursuer. His cunning was fresh with the day,
  • and his qualms were gone with the night--in which particulars it is not
  • improbable that he had compeers in Fleet-street and the City of London,
  • that fine morning.
  • “Father,” said Young Jerry, as they walked along: taking care to keep
  • at arm's length and to have the stool well between them: “what's a
  • Resurrection-Man?”
  • Mr. Cruncher came to a stop on the pavement before he answered, “How
  • should I know?”
  • “I thought you knowed everything, father,” said the artless boy.
  • “Hem! Well,” returned Mr. Cruncher, going on again, and lifting off his
  • hat to give his spikes free play, “he's a tradesman.”
  • “What's his goods, father?” asked the brisk Young Jerry.
  • “His goods,” said Mr. Cruncher, after turning it over in his mind, “is a
  • branch of Scientific goods.”
  • “Persons' bodies, ain't it, father?” asked the lively boy.
  • “I believe it is something of that sort,” said Mr. Cruncher.
  • “Oh, father, I should so like to be a Resurrection-Man when I'm quite
  • growed up!”
  • Mr. Cruncher was soothed, but shook his head in a dubious and moral way.
  • “It depends upon how you dewelop your talents. Be careful to dewelop
  • your talents, and never to say no more than you can help to nobody, and
  • there's no telling at the present time what you may not come to be fit
  • for.” As Young Jerry, thus encouraged, went on a few yards in advance,
  • to plant the stool in the shadow of the Bar, Mr. Cruncher added to
  • himself: “Jerry, you honest tradesman, there's hopes wot that boy will
  • yet be a blessing to you, and a recompense to you for his mother!”
  • XV. Knitting
  • There had been earlier drinking than usual in the wine-shop of Monsieur
  • Defarge. As early as six o'clock in the morning, sallow faces peeping
  • through its barred windows had descried other faces within, bending over
  • measures of wine. Monsieur Defarge sold a very thin wine at the best
  • of times, but it would seem to have been an unusually thin wine that
  • he sold at this time. A sour wine, moreover, or a souring, for its
  • influence on the mood of those who drank it was to make them gloomy. No
  • vivacious Bacchanalian flame leaped out of the pressed grape of Monsieur
  • Defarge: but, a smouldering fire that burnt in the dark, lay hidden in
  • the dregs of it.
  • This had been the third morning in succession, on which there had been
  • early drinking at the wine-shop of Monsieur Defarge. It had begun
  • on Monday, and here was Wednesday come. There had been more of early
  • brooding than drinking; for, many men had listened and whispered and
  • slunk about there from the time of the opening of the door, who could
  • not have laid a piece of money on the counter to save their souls. These
  • were to the full as interested in the place, however, as if they could
  • have commanded whole barrels of wine; and they glided from seat to seat,
  • and from corner to corner, swallowing talk in lieu of drink, with greedy
  • looks.
  • Notwithstanding an unusual flow of company, the master of the wine-shop
  • was not visible. He was not missed; for, nobody who crossed the
  • threshold looked for him, nobody asked for him, nobody wondered to see
  • only Madame Defarge in her seat, presiding over the distribution of
  • wine, with a bowl of battered small coins before her, as much defaced
  • and beaten out of their original impress as the small coinage of
  • humanity from whose ragged pockets they had come.
  • A suspended interest and a prevalent absence of mind, were perhaps
  • observed by the spies who looked in at the wine-shop, as they looked in
  • at every place, high and low, from the king's palace to the criminal's
  • gaol. Games at cards languished, players at dominoes musingly built
  • towers with them, drinkers drew figures on the tables with spilt drops
  • of wine, Madame Defarge herself picked out the pattern on her sleeve
  • with her toothpick, and saw and heard something inaudible and invisible
  • a long way off.
  • Thus, Saint Antoine in this vinous feature of his, until midday. It was
  • high noontide, when two dusty men passed through his streets and under
  • his swinging lamps: of whom, one was Monsieur Defarge: the other a
  • mender of roads in a blue cap. All adust and athirst, the two entered
  • the wine-shop. Their arrival had lighted a kind of fire in the breast
  • of Saint Antoine, fast spreading as they came along, which stirred and
  • flickered in flames of faces at most doors and windows. Yet, no one had
  • followed them, and no man spoke when they entered the wine-shop, though
  • the eyes of every man there were turned upon them.
  • “Good day, gentlemen!” said Monsieur Defarge.
  • It may have been a signal for loosening the general tongue. It elicited
  • an answering chorus of “Good day!”
  • “It is bad weather, gentlemen,” said Defarge, shaking his head.
  • Upon which, every man looked at his neighbour, and then all cast down
  • their eyes and sat silent. Except one man, who got up and went out.
  • “My wife,” said Defarge aloud, addressing Madame Defarge: “I have
  • travelled certain leagues with this good mender of roads, called
  • Jacques. I met him--by accident--a day and half's journey out of Paris.
  • He is a good child, this mender of roads, called Jacques. Give him to
  • drink, my wife!”
  • A second man got up and went out. Madame Defarge set wine before the
  • mender of roads called Jacques, who doffed his blue cap to the company,
  • and drank. In the breast of his blouse he carried some coarse dark
  • bread; he ate of this between whiles, and sat munching and drinking near
  • Madame Defarge's counter. A third man got up and went out.
  • Defarge refreshed himself with a draught of wine--but, he took less
  • than was given to the stranger, as being himself a man to whom it was no
  • rarity--and stood waiting until the countryman had made his breakfast.
  • He looked at no one present, and no one now looked at him; not even
  • Madame Defarge, who had taken up her knitting, and was at work.
  • “Have you finished your repast, friend?” he asked, in due season.
  • “Yes, thank you.”
  • “Come, then! You shall see the apartment that I told you you could
  • occupy. It will suit you to a marvel.”
  • Out of the wine-shop into the street, out of the street into a
  • courtyard, out of the courtyard up a steep staircase, out of the
  • staircase into a garret--formerly the garret where a white-haired man
  • sat on a low bench, stooping forward and very busy, making shoes.
  • No white-haired man was there now; but, the three men were there who had
  • gone out of the wine-shop singly. And between them and the white-haired
  • man afar off, was the one small link, that they had once looked in at
  • him through the chinks in the wall.
  • Defarge closed the door carefully, and spoke in a subdued voice:
  • “Jacques One, Jacques Two, Jacques Three! This is the witness
  • encountered by appointment, by me, Jacques Four. He will tell you all.
  • Speak, Jacques Five!”
  • The mender of roads, blue cap in hand, wiped his swarthy forehead with
  • it, and said, “Where shall I commence, monsieur?”
  • “Commence,” was Monsieur Defarge's not unreasonable reply, “at the
  • commencement.”
  • “I saw him then, messieurs,” began the mender of roads, “a year ago this
  • running summer, underneath the carriage of the Marquis, hanging by the
  • chain. Behold the manner of it. I leaving my work on the road, the sun
  • going to bed, the carriage of the Marquis slowly ascending the hill, he
  • hanging by the chain--like this.”
  • Again the mender of roads went through the whole performance; in which
  • he ought to have been perfect by that time, seeing that it had been
  • the infallible resource and indispensable entertainment of his village
  • during a whole year.
  • Jacques One struck in, and asked if he had ever seen the man before?
  • “Never,” answered the mender of roads, recovering his perpendicular.
  • Jacques Three demanded how he afterwards recognised him then?
  • “By his tall figure,” said the mender of roads, softly, and with his
  • finger at his nose. “When Monsieur the Marquis demands that evening,
  • 'Say, what is he like?' I make response, 'Tall as a spectre.'”
  • “You should have said, short as a dwarf,” returned Jacques Two.
  • “But what did I know? The deed was not then accomplished, neither did he
  • confide in me. Observe! Under those circumstances even, I do not
  • offer my testimony. Monsieur the Marquis indicates me with his finger,
  • standing near our little fountain, and says, 'To me! Bring that rascal!'
  • My faith, messieurs, I offer nothing.”
  • “He is right there, Jacques,” murmured Defarge, to him who had
  • interrupted. “Go on!”
  • “Good!” said the mender of roads, with an air of mystery. “The tall man
  • is lost, and he is sought--how many months? Nine, ten, eleven?”
  • “No matter, the number,” said Defarge. “He is well hidden, but at last
  • he is unluckily found. Go on!”
  • “I am again at work upon the hill-side, and the sun is again about to
  • go to bed. I am collecting my tools to descend to my cottage down in the
  • village below, where it is already dark, when I raise my eyes, and see
  • coming over the hill six soldiers. In the midst of them is a tall man
  • with his arms bound--tied to his sides--like this!”
  • With the aid of his indispensable cap, he represented a man with his
  • elbows bound fast at his hips, with cords that were knotted behind him.
  • “I stand aside, messieurs, by my heap of stones, to see the soldiers
  • and their prisoner pass (for it is a solitary road, that, where any
  • spectacle is well worth looking at), and at first, as they approach, I
  • see no more than that they are six soldiers with a tall man bound, and
  • that they are almost black to my sight--except on the side of the sun
  • going to bed, where they have a red edge, messieurs. Also, I see that
  • their long shadows are on the hollow ridge on the opposite side of the
  • road, and are on the hill above it, and are like the shadows of giants.
  • Also, I see that they are covered with dust, and that the dust moves
  • with them as they come, tramp, tramp! But when they advance quite near
  • to me, I recognise the tall man, and he recognises me. Ah, but he would
  • be well content to precipitate himself over the hill-side once again, as
  • on the evening when he and I first encountered, close to the same spot!”
  • He described it as if he were there, and it was evident that he saw it
  • vividly; perhaps he had not seen much in his life.
  • “I do not show the soldiers that I recognise the tall man; he does not
  • show the soldiers that he recognises me; we do it, and we know it, with
  • our eyes. 'Come on!' says the chief of that company, pointing to the
  • village, 'bring him fast to his tomb!' and they bring him faster. I
  • follow. His arms are swelled because of being bound so tight, his wooden
  • shoes are large and clumsy, and he is lame. Because he is lame, and
  • consequently slow, they drive him with their guns--like this!”
  • He imitated the action of a man's being impelled forward by the
  • butt-ends of muskets.
  • “As they descend the hill like madmen running a race, he falls. They
  • laugh and pick him up again. His face is bleeding and covered with dust,
  • but he cannot touch it; thereupon they laugh again. They bring him into
  • the village; all the village runs to look; they take him past the mill,
  • and up to the prison; all the village sees the prison gate open in the
  • darkness of the night, and swallow him--like this!”
  • He opened his mouth as wide as he could, and shut it with a sounding
  • snap of his teeth. Observant of his unwillingness to mar the effect by
  • opening it again, Defarge said, “Go on, Jacques.”
  • “All the village,” pursued the mender of roads, on tiptoe and in a low
  • voice, “withdraws; all the village whispers by the fountain; all the
  • village sleeps; all the village dreams of that unhappy one, within the
  • locks and bars of the prison on the crag, and never to come out of it,
  • except to perish. In the morning, with my tools upon my shoulder, eating
  • my morsel of black bread as I go, I make a circuit by the prison, on
  • my way to my work. There I see him, high up, behind the bars of a lofty
  • iron cage, bloody and dusty as last night, looking through. He has no
  • hand free, to wave to me; I dare not call to him; he regards me like a
  • dead man.”
  • Defarge and the three glanced darkly at one another. The looks of all
  • of them were dark, repressed, and revengeful, as they listened to the
  • countryman's story; the manner of all of them, while it was secret, was
  • authoritative too. They had the air of a rough tribunal; Jacques One
  • and Two sitting on the old pallet-bed, each with his chin resting on
  • his hand, and his eyes intent on the road-mender; Jacques Three, equally
  • intent, on one knee behind them, with his agitated hand always gliding
  • over the network of fine nerves about his mouth and nose; Defarge
  • standing between them and the narrator, whom he had stationed in the
  • light of the window, by turns looking from him to them, and from them to
  • him.
  • “Go on, Jacques,” said Defarge.
  • “He remains up there in his iron cage some days. The village looks
  • at him by stealth, for it is afraid. But it always looks up, from a
  • distance, at the prison on the crag; and in the evening, when the work
  • of the day is achieved and it assembles to gossip at the fountain, all
  • faces are turned towards the prison. Formerly, they were turned towards
  • the posting-house; now, they are turned towards the prison. They
  • whisper at the fountain, that although condemned to death he will not be
  • executed; they say that petitions have been presented in Paris, showing
  • that he was enraged and made mad by the death of his child; they say
  • that a petition has been presented to the King himself. What do I know?
  • It is possible. Perhaps yes, perhaps no.”
  • “Listen then, Jacques,” Number One of that name sternly interposed.
  • “Know that a petition was presented to the King and Queen. All here,
  • yourself excepted, saw the King take it, in his carriage in the street,
  • sitting beside the Queen. It is Defarge whom you see here, who, at the
  • hazard of his life, darted out before the horses, with the petition in
  • his hand.”
  • “And once again listen, Jacques!” said the kneeling Number Three:
  • his fingers ever wandering over and over those fine nerves, with a
  • strikingly greedy air, as if he hungered for something--that was neither
  • food nor drink; “the guard, horse and foot, surrounded the petitioner,
  • and struck him blows. You hear?”
  • “I hear, messieurs.”
  • “Go on then,” said Defarge.
  • “Again; on the other hand, they whisper at the fountain,” resumed the
  • countryman, “that he is brought down into our country to be executed on
  • the spot, and that he will very certainly be executed. They even whisper
  • that because he has slain Monseigneur, and because Monseigneur was the
  • father of his tenants--serfs--what you will--he will be executed as a
  • parricide. One old man says at the fountain, that his right hand, armed
  • with the knife, will be burnt off before his face; that, into wounds
  • which will be made in his arms, his breast, and his legs, there will be
  • poured boiling oil, melted lead, hot resin, wax, and sulphur; finally,
  • that he will be torn limb from limb by four strong horses. That old man
  • says, all this was actually done to a prisoner who made an attempt on
  • the life of the late King, Louis Fifteen. But how do I know if he lies?
  • I am not a scholar.”
  • “Listen once again then, Jacques!” said the man with the restless hand
  • and the craving air. “The name of that prisoner was Damiens, and it was
  • all done in open day, in the open streets of this city of Paris; and
  • nothing was more noticed in the vast concourse that saw it done, than
  • the crowd of ladies of quality and fashion, who were full of eager
  • attention to the last--to the last, Jacques, prolonged until nightfall,
  • when he had lost two legs and an arm, and still breathed! And it was
  • done--why, how old are you?”
  • “Thirty-five,” said the mender of roads, who looked sixty.
  • “It was done when you were more than ten years old; you might have seen
  • it.”
  • “Enough!” said Defarge, with grim impatience. “Long live the Devil! Go
  • on.”
  • “Well! Some whisper this, some whisper that; they speak of nothing else;
  • even the fountain appears to fall to that tune. At length, on Sunday
  • night when all the village is asleep, come soldiers, winding down from
  • the prison, and their guns ring on the stones of the little street.
  • Workmen dig, workmen hammer, soldiers laugh and sing; in the morning, by
  • the fountain, there is raised a gallows forty feet high, poisoning the
  • water.”
  • The mender of roads looked _through_ rather than _at_ the low ceiling,
  • and pointed as if he saw the gallows somewhere in the sky.
  • “All work is stopped, all assemble there, nobody leads the cows out,
  • the cows are there with the rest. At midday, the roll of drums. Soldiers
  • have marched into the prison in the night, and he is in the midst
  • of many soldiers. He is bound as before, and in his mouth there is
  • a gag--tied so, with a tight string, making him look almost as if he
  • laughed.” He suggested it, by creasing his face with his two thumbs,
  • from the corners of his mouth to his ears. “On the top of the gallows is
  • fixed the knife, blade upwards, with its point in the air. He is hanged
  • there forty feet high--and is left hanging, poisoning the water.”
  • They looked at one another, as he used his blue cap to wipe his face,
  • on which the perspiration had started afresh while he recalled the
  • spectacle.
  • “It is frightful, messieurs. How can the women and the children draw
  • water! Who can gossip of an evening, under that shadow! Under it, have
  • I said? When I left the village, Monday evening as the sun was going to
  • bed, and looked back from the hill, the shadow struck across the church,
  • across the mill, across the prison--seemed to strike across the earth,
  • messieurs, to where the sky rests upon it!”
  • The hungry man gnawed one of his fingers as he looked at the other
  • three, and his finger quivered with the craving that was on him.
  • “That's all, messieurs. I left at sunset (as I had been warned to do),
  • and I walked on, that night and half next day, until I met (as I was
  • warned I should) this comrade. With him, I came on, now riding and now
  • walking, through the rest of yesterday and through last night. And here
  • you see me!”
  • After a gloomy silence, the first Jacques said, “Good! You have acted
  • and recounted faithfully. Will you wait for us a little, outside the
  • door?”
  • “Very willingly,” said the mender of roads. Whom Defarge escorted to the
  • top of the stairs, and, leaving seated there, returned.
  • The three had risen, and their heads were together when he came back to
  • the garret.
  • “How say you, Jacques?” demanded Number One. “To be registered?”
  • “To be registered, as doomed to destruction,” returned Defarge.
  • “Magnificent!” croaked the man with the craving.
  • “The chateau, and all the race?” inquired the first.
  • “The chateau and all the race,” returned Defarge. “Extermination.”
  • The hungry man repeated, in a rapturous croak, “Magnificent!” and began
  • gnawing another finger.
  • “Are you sure,” asked Jacques Two, of Defarge, “that no embarrassment
  • can arise from our manner of keeping the register? Without doubt it is
  • safe, for no one beyond ourselves can decipher it; but shall we always
  • be able to decipher it--or, I ought to say, will she?”
  • “Jacques,” returned Defarge, drawing himself up, “if madame my wife
  • undertook to keep the register in her memory alone, she would not lose
  • a word of it--not a syllable of it. Knitted, in her own stitches and her
  • own symbols, it will always be as plain to her as the sun. Confide in
  • Madame Defarge. It would be easier for the weakest poltroon that lives,
  • to erase himself from existence, than to erase one letter of his name or
  • crimes from the knitted register of Madame Defarge.”
  • There was a murmur of confidence and approval, and then the man who
  • hungered, asked: “Is this rustic to be sent back soon? I hope so. He is
  • very simple; is he not a little dangerous?”
  • “He knows nothing,” said Defarge; “at least nothing more than would
  • easily elevate himself to a gallows of the same height. I charge myself
  • with him; let him remain with me; I will take care of him, and set him
  • on his road. He wishes to see the fine world--the King, the Queen, and
  • Court; let him see them on Sunday.”
  • “What?” exclaimed the hungry man, staring. “Is it a good sign, that he
  • wishes to see Royalty and Nobility?”
  • “Jacques,” said Defarge; “judiciously show a cat milk, if you wish her
  • to thirst for it. Judiciously show a dog his natural prey, if you wish
  • him to bring it down one day.”
  • Nothing more was said, and the mender of roads, being found already
  • dozing on the topmost stair, was advised to lay himself down on the
  • pallet-bed and take some rest. He needed no persuasion, and was soon
  • asleep.
  • Worse quarters than Defarge's wine-shop, could easily have been found
  • in Paris for a provincial slave of that degree. Saving for a mysterious
  • dread of madame by which he was constantly haunted, his life was very
  • new and agreeable. But, madame sat all day at her counter, so expressly
  • unconscious of him, and so particularly determined not to perceive that
  • his being there had any connection with anything below the surface, that
  • he shook in his wooden shoes whenever his eye lighted on her. For, he
  • contended with himself that it was impossible to foresee what that lady
  • might pretend next; and he felt assured that if she should take it
  • into her brightly ornamented head to pretend that she had seen him do a
  • murder and afterwards flay the victim, she would infallibly go through
  • with it until the play was played out.
  • Therefore, when Sunday came, the mender of roads was not enchanted
  • (though he said he was) to find that madame was to accompany monsieur
  • and himself to Versailles. It was additionally disconcerting to have
  • madame knitting all the way there, in a public conveyance; it was
  • additionally disconcerting yet, to have madame in the crowd in the
  • afternoon, still with her knitting in her hands as the crowd waited to
  • see the carriage of the King and Queen.
  • “You work hard, madame,” said a man near her.
  • “Yes,” answered Madame Defarge; “I have a good deal to do.”
  • “What do you make, madame?”
  • “Many things.”
  • “For instance--”
  • “For instance,” returned Madame Defarge, composedly, “shrouds.”
  • The man moved a little further away, as soon as he could, and the mender
  • of roads fanned himself with his blue cap: feeling it mightily close
  • and oppressive. If he needed a King and Queen to restore him, he was
  • fortunate in having his remedy at hand; for, soon the large-faced King
  • and the fair-faced Queen came in their golden coach, attended by the
  • shining Bull's Eye of their Court, a glittering multitude of laughing
  • ladies and fine lords; and in jewels and silks and powder and splendour
  • and elegantly spurning figures and handsomely disdainful faces of both
  • sexes, the mender of roads bathed himself, so much to his temporary
  • intoxication, that he cried Long live the King, Long live the Queen,
  • Long live everybody and everything! as if he had never heard of
  • ubiquitous Jacques in his time. Then, there were gardens, courtyards,
  • terraces, fountains, green banks, more King and Queen, more Bull's Eye,
  • more lords and ladies, more Long live they all! until he absolutely wept
  • with sentiment. During the whole of this scene, which lasted some three
  • hours, he had plenty of shouting and weeping and sentimental company,
  • and throughout Defarge held him by the collar, as if to restrain him
  • from flying at the objects of his brief devotion and tearing them to
  • pieces.
  • “Bravo!” said Defarge, clapping him on the back when it was over, like a
  • patron; “you are a good boy!”
  • The mender of roads was now coming to himself, and was mistrustful of
  • having made a mistake in his late demonstrations; but no.
  • “You are the fellow we want,” said Defarge, in his ear; “you make
  • these fools believe that it will last for ever. Then, they are the more
  • insolent, and it is the nearer ended.”
  • “Hey!” cried the mender of roads, reflectively; “that's true.”
  • “These fools know nothing. While they despise your breath, and would
  • stop it for ever and ever, in you or in a hundred like you rather than
  • in one of their own horses or dogs, they only know what your breath
  • tells them. Let it deceive them, then, a little longer; it cannot
  • deceive them too much.”
  • Madame Defarge looked superciliously at the client, and nodded in
  • confirmation.
  • “As to you,” said she, “you would shout and shed tears for anything, if
  • it made a show and a noise. Say! Would you not?”
  • “Truly, madame, I think so. For the moment.”
  • “If you were shown a great heap of dolls, and were set upon them to
  • pluck them to pieces and despoil them for your own advantage, you would
  • pick out the richest and gayest. Say! Would you not?”
  • “Truly yes, madame.”
  • “Yes. And if you were shown a flock of birds, unable to fly, and were
  • set upon them to strip them of their feathers for your own advantage,
  • you would set upon the birds of the finest feathers; would you not?”
  • “It is true, madame.”
  • “You have seen both dolls and birds to-day,” said Madame Defarge, with
  • a wave of her hand towards the place where they had last been apparent;
  • “now, go home!”
  • XVI. Still Knitting
  • Madame Defarge and monsieur her husband returned amicably to the
  • bosom of Saint Antoine, while a speck in a blue cap toiled through the
  • darkness, and through the dust, and down the weary miles of avenue by
  • the wayside, slowly tending towards that point of the compass where
  • the chateau of Monsieur the Marquis, now in his grave, listened to
  • the whispering trees. Such ample leisure had the stone faces, now,
  • for listening to the trees and to the fountain, that the few village
  • scarecrows who, in their quest for herbs to eat and fragments of dead
  • stick to burn, strayed within sight of the great stone courtyard and
  • terrace staircase, had it borne in upon their starved fancy that
  • the expression of the faces was altered. A rumour just lived in the
  • village--had a faint and bare existence there, as its people had--that
  • when the knife struck home, the faces changed, from faces of pride to
  • faces of anger and pain; also, that when that dangling figure was hauled
  • up forty feet above the fountain, they changed again, and bore a cruel
  • look of being avenged, which they would henceforth bear for ever. In the
  • stone face over the great window of the bed-chamber where the murder
  • was done, two fine dints were pointed out in the sculptured nose, which
  • everybody recognised, and which nobody had seen of old; and on the
  • scarce occasions when two or three ragged peasants emerged from the
  • crowd to take a hurried peep at Monsieur the Marquis petrified, a
  • skinny finger would not have pointed to it for a minute, before they all
  • started away among the moss and leaves, like the more fortunate hares
  • who could find a living there.
  • Chateau and hut, stone face and dangling figure, the red stain on the
  • stone floor, and the pure water in the village well--thousands of acres
  • of land--a whole province of France--all France itself--lay under the
  • night sky, concentrated into a faint hair-breadth line. So does a whole
  • world, with all its greatnesses and littlenesses, lie in a twinkling
  • star. And as mere human knowledge can split a ray of light and analyse
  • the manner of its composition, so, sublimer intelligences may read in
  • the feeble shining of this earth of ours, every thought and act, every
  • vice and virtue, of every responsible creature on it.
  • The Defarges, husband and wife, came lumbering under the starlight,
  • in their public vehicle, to that gate of Paris whereunto their
  • journey naturally tended. There was the usual stoppage at the barrier
  • guardhouse, and the usual lanterns came glancing forth for the usual
  • examination and inquiry. Monsieur Defarge alighted; knowing one or two
  • of the soldiery there, and one of the police. The latter he was intimate
  • with, and affectionately embraced.
  • When Saint Antoine had again enfolded the Defarges in his dusky wings,
  • and they, having finally alighted near the Saint's boundaries, were
  • picking their way on foot through the black mud and offal of his
  • streets, Madame Defarge spoke to her husband:
  • “Say then, my friend; what did Jacques of the police tell thee?”
  • “Very little to-night, but all he knows. There is another spy
  • commissioned for our quarter. There may be many more, for all that he
  • can say, but he knows of one.”
  • “Eh well!” said Madame Defarge, raising her eyebrows with a cool
  • business air. “It is necessary to register him. How do they call that
  • man?”
  • “He is English.”
  • “So much the better. His name?”
  • “Barsad,” said Defarge, making it French by pronunciation. But, he had
  • been so careful to get it accurately, that he then spelt it with perfect
  • correctness.
  • “Barsad,” repeated madame. “Good. Christian name?”
  • “John.”
  • “John Barsad,” repeated madame, after murmuring it once to herself.
  • “Good. His appearance; is it known?”
  • “Age, about forty years; height, about five feet nine; black hair;
  • complexion dark; generally, rather handsome visage; eyes dark, face
  • thin, long, and sallow; nose aquiline, but not straight, having a
  • peculiar inclination towards the left cheek; expression, therefore,
  • sinister.”
  • “Eh my faith. It is a portrait!” said madame, laughing. “He shall be
  • registered to-morrow.”
  • They turned into the wine-shop, which was closed (for it was midnight),
  • and where Madame Defarge immediately took her post at her desk, counted
  • the small moneys that had been taken during her absence, examined the
  • stock, went through the entries in the book, made other entries of
  • her own, checked the serving man in every possible way, and finally
  • dismissed him to bed. Then she turned out the contents of the bowl
  • of money for the second time, and began knotting them up in her
  • handkerchief, in a chain of separate knots, for safe keeping through the
  • night. All this while, Defarge, with his pipe in his mouth, walked
  • up and down, complacently admiring, but never interfering; in which
  • condition, indeed, as to the business and his domestic affairs, he
  • walked up and down through life.
  • The night was hot, and the shop, close shut and surrounded by so foul a
  • neighbourhood, was ill-smelling. Monsieur Defarge's olfactory sense was
  • by no means delicate, but the stock of wine smelt much stronger than
  • it ever tasted, and so did the stock of rum and brandy and aniseed. He
  • whiffed the compound of scents away, as he put down his smoked-out pipe.
  • “You are fatigued,” said madame, raising her glance as she knotted the
  • money. “There are only the usual odours.”
  • “I am a little tired,” her husband acknowledged.
  • “You are a little depressed, too,” said madame, whose quick eyes had
  • never been so intent on the accounts, but they had had a ray or two for
  • him. “Oh, the men, the men!”
  • “But my dear!” began Defarge.
  • “But my dear!” repeated madame, nodding firmly; “but my dear! You are
  • faint of heart to-night, my dear!”
  • “Well, then,” said Defarge, as if a thought were wrung out of his
  • breast, “it _is_ a long time.”
  • “It is a long time,” repeated his wife; “and when is it not a long time?
  • Vengeance and retribution require a long time; it is the rule.”
  • “It does not take a long time to strike a man with Lightning,” said
  • Defarge.
  • “How long,” demanded madame, composedly, “does it take to make and store
  • the lightning? Tell me.”
  • Defarge raised his head thoughtfully, as if there were something in that
  • too.
  • “It does not take a long time,” said madame, “for an earthquake to
  • swallow a town. Eh well! Tell me how long it takes to prepare the
  • earthquake?”
  • “A long time, I suppose,” said Defarge.
  • “But when it is ready, it takes place, and grinds to pieces everything
  • before it. In the meantime, it is always preparing, though it is not
  • seen or heard. That is your consolation. Keep it.”
  • She tied a knot with flashing eyes, as if it throttled a foe.
  • “I tell thee,” said madame, extending her right hand, for emphasis,
  • “that although it is a long time on the road, it is on the road and
  • coming. I tell thee it never retreats, and never stops. I tell thee it
  • is always advancing. Look around and consider the lives of all the world
  • that we know, consider the faces of all the world that we know, consider
  • the rage and discontent to which the Jacquerie addresses itself with
  • more and more of certainty every hour. Can such things last? Bah! I mock
  • you.”
  • “My brave wife,” returned Defarge, standing before her with his head
  • a little bent, and his hands clasped at his back, like a docile and
  • attentive pupil before his catechist, “I do not question all this. But
  • it has lasted a long time, and it is possible--you know well, my wife,
  • it is possible--that it may not come, during our lives.”
  • “Eh well! How then?” demanded madame, tying another knot, as if there
  • were another enemy strangled.
  • “Well!” said Defarge, with a half complaining and half apologetic shrug.
  • “We shall not see the triumph.”
  • “We shall have helped it,” returned madame, with her extended hand in
  • strong action. “Nothing that we do, is done in vain. I believe, with all
  • my soul, that we shall see the triumph. But even if not, even if I knew
  • certainly not, show me the neck of an aristocrat and tyrant, and still I
  • would--”
  • Then madame, with her teeth set, tied a very terrible knot indeed.
  • “Hold!” cried Defarge, reddening a little as if he felt charged with
  • cowardice; “I too, my dear, will stop at nothing.”
  • “Yes! But it is your weakness that you sometimes need to see your victim
  • and your opportunity, to sustain you. Sustain yourself without that.
  • When the time comes, let loose a tiger and a devil; but wait for the
  • time with the tiger and the devil chained--not shown--yet always ready.”
  • Madame enforced the conclusion of this piece of advice by striking her
  • little counter with her chain of money as if she knocked its brains
  • out, and then gathering the heavy handkerchief under her arm in a serene
  • manner, and observing that it was time to go to bed.
  • Next noontide saw the admirable woman in her usual place in the
  • wine-shop, knitting away assiduously. A rose lay beside her, and if she
  • now and then glanced at the flower, it was with no infraction of her
  • usual preoccupied air. There were a few customers, drinking or not
  • drinking, standing or seated, sprinkled about. The day was very hot,
  • and heaps of flies, who were extending their inquisitive and adventurous
  • perquisitions into all the glutinous little glasses near madame, fell
  • dead at the bottom. Their decease made no impression on the other flies
  • out promenading, who looked at them in the coolest manner (as if they
  • themselves were elephants, or something as far removed), until they met
  • the same fate. Curious to consider how heedless flies are!--perhaps they
  • thought as much at Court that sunny summer day.
  • A figure entering at the door threw a shadow on Madame Defarge which she
  • felt to be a new one. She laid down her knitting, and began to pin her
  • rose in her head-dress, before she looked at the figure.
  • It was curious. The moment Madame Defarge took up the rose, the
  • customers ceased talking, and began gradually to drop out of the
  • wine-shop.
  • “Good day, madame,” said the new-comer.
  • “Good day, monsieur.”
  • She said it aloud, but added to herself, as she resumed her knitting:
  • “Hah! Good day, age about forty, height about five feet nine, black
  • hair, generally rather handsome visage, complexion dark, eyes dark,
  • thin, long and sallow face, aquiline nose but not straight, having a
  • peculiar inclination towards the left cheek which imparts a sinister
  • expression! Good day, one and all!”
  • “Have the goodness to give me a little glass of old cognac, and a
  • mouthful of cool fresh water, madame.”
  • Madame complied with a polite air.
  • “Marvellous cognac this, madame!”
  • It was the first time it had ever been so complimented, and Madame
  • Defarge knew enough of its antecedents to know better. She said,
  • however, that the cognac was flattered, and took up her knitting. The
  • visitor watched her fingers for a few moments, and took the opportunity
  • of observing the place in general.
  • “You knit with great skill, madame.”
  • “I am accustomed to it.”
  • “A pretty pattern too!”
  • “_You_ think so?” said madame, looking at him with a smile.
  • “Decidedly. May one ask what it is for?”
  • “Pastime,” said madame, still looking at him with a smile while her
  • fingers moved nimbly.
  • “Not for use?”
  • “That depends. I may find a use for it one day. If I do--Well,” said
  • madame, drawing a breath and nodding her head with a stern kind of
  • coquetry, “I'll use it!”
  • It was remarkable; but, the taste of Saint Antoine seemed to be
  • decidedly opposed to a rose on the head-dress of Madame Defarge. Two
  • men had entered separately, and had been about to order drink, when,
  • catching sight of that novelty, they faltered, made a pretence of
  • looking about as if for some friend who was not there, and went away.
  • Nor, of those who had been there when this visitor entered, was there
  • one left. They had all dropped off. The spy had kept his eyes open,
  • but had been able to detect no sign. They had lounged away in a
  • poverty-stricken, purposeless, accidental manner, quite natural and
  • unimpeachable.
  • “_John_,” thought madame, checking off her work as her fingers knitted,
  • and her eyes looked at the stranger. “Stay long enough, and I shall knit
  • 'BARSAD' before you go.”
  • “You have a husband, madame?”
  • “I have.”
  • “Children?”
  • “No children.”
  • “Business seems bad?”
  • “Business is very bad; the people are so poor.”
  • “Ah, the unfortunate, miserable people! So oppressed, too--as you say.”
  • “As _you_ say,” madame retorted, correcting him, and deftly knitting an
  • extra something into his name that boded him no good.
  • “Pardon me; certainly it was I who said so, but you naturally think so.
  • Of course.”
  • “_I_ think?” returned madame, in a high voice. “I and my husband have
  • enough to do to keep this wine-shop open, without thinking. All we
  • think, here, is how to live. That is the subject _we_ think of, and
  • it gives us, from morning to night, enough to think about, without
  • embarrassing our heads concerning others. _I_ think for others? No, no.”
  • The spy, who was there to pick up any crumbs he could find or make, did
  • not allow his baffled state to express itself in his sinister face; but,
  • stood with an air of gossiping gallantry, leaning his elbow on Madame
  • Defarge's little counter, and occasionally sipping his cognac.
  • “A bad business this, madame, of Gaspard's execution. Ah! the poor
  • Gaspard!” With a sigh of great compassion.
  • “My faith!” returned madame, coolly and lightly, “if people use knives
  • for such purposes, they have to pay for it. He knew beforehand what the
  • price of his luxury was; he has paid the price.”
  • “I believe,” said the spy, dropping his soft voice to a tone
  • that invited confidence, and expressing an injured revolutionary
  • susceptibility in every muscle of his wicked face: “I believe there
  • is much compassion and anger in this neighbourhood, touching the poor
  • fellow? Between ourselves.”
  • “Is there?” asked madame, vacantly.
  • “Is there not?”
  • “--Here is my husband!” said Madame Defarge.
  • As the keeper of the wine-shop entered at the door, the spy saluted
  • him by touching his hat, and saying, with an engaging smile, “Good day,
  • Jacques!” Defarge stopped short, and stared at him.
  • “Good day, Jacques!” the spy repeated; with not quite so much
  • confidence, or quite so easy a smile under the stare.
  • “You deceive yourself, monsieur,” returned the keeper of the wine-shop.
  • “You mistake me for another. That is not my name. I am Ernest Defarge.”
  • “It is all the same,” said the spy, airily, but discomfited too: “good
  • day!”
  • “Good day!” answered Defarge, drily.
  • “I was saying to madame, with whom I had the pleasure of chatting when
  • you entered, that they tell me there is--and no wonder!--much sympathy
  • and anger in Saint Antoine, touching the unhappy fate of poor Gaspard.”
  • “No one has told me so,” said Defarge, shaking his head. “I know nothing
  • of it.”
  • Having said it, he passed behind the little counter, and stood with his
  • hand on the back of his wife's chair, looking over that barrier at the
  • person to whom they were both opposed, and whom either of them would
  • have shot with the greatest satisfaction.
  • The spy, well used to his business, did not change his unconscious
  • attitude, but drained his little glass of cognac, took a sip of fresh
  • water, and asked for another glass of cognac. Madame Defarge poured it
  • out for him, took to her knitting again, and hummed a little song over
  • it.
  • “You seem to know this quarter well; that is to say, better than I do?”
  • observed Defarge.
  • “Not at all, but I hope to know it better. I am so profoundly interested
  • in its miserable inhabitants.”
  • “Hah!” muttered Defarge.
  • “The pleasure of conversing with you, Monsieur Defarge, recalls to me,”
  • pursued the spy, “that I have the honour of cherishing some interesting
  • associations with your name.”
  • “Indeed!” said Defarge, with much indifference.
  • “Yes, indeed. When Doctor Manette was released, you, his old domestic,
  • had the charge of him, I know. He was delivered to you. You see I am
  • informed of the circumstances?”
  • “Such is the fact, certainly,” said Defarge. He had had it conveyed
  • to him, in an accidental touch of his wife's elbow as she knitted and
  • warbled, that he would do best to answer, but always with brevity.
  • “It was to you,” said the spy, “that his daughter came; and it was
  • from your care that his daughter took him, accompanied by a neat brown
  • monsieur; how is he called?--in a little wig--Lorry--of the bank of
  • Tellson and Company--over to England.”
  • “Such is the fact,” repeated Defarge.
  • “Very interesting remembrances!” said the spy. “I have known Doctor
  • Manette and his daughter, in England.”
  • “Yes?” said Defarge.
  • “You don't hear much about them now?” said the spy.
  • “No,” said Defarge.
  • “In effect,” madame struck in, looking up from her work and her little
  • song, “we never hear about them. We received the news of their safe
  • arrival, and perhaps another letter, or perhaps two; but, since then,
  • they have gradually taken their road in life--we, ours--and we have held
  • no correspondence.”
  • “Perfectly so, madame,” replied the spy. “She is going to be married.”
  • “Going?” echoed madame. “She was pretty enough to have been married long
  • ago. You English are cold, it seems to me.”
  • “Oh! You know I am English.”
  • “I perceive your tongue is,” returned madame; “and what the tongue is, I
  • suppose the man is.”
  • He did not take the identification as a compliment; but he made the best
  • of it, and turned it off with a laugh. After sipping his cognac to the
  • end, he added:
  • “Yes, Miss Manette is going to be married. But not to an Englishman; to
  • one who, like herself, is French by birth. And speaking of Gaspard (ah,
  • poor Gaspard! It was cruel, cruel!), it is a curious thing that she is
  • going to marry the nephew of Monsieur the Marquis, for whom Gaspard
  • was exalted to that height of so many feet; in other words, the present
  • Marquis. But he lives unknown in England, he is no Marquis there; he is
  • Mr. Charles Darnay. D'Aulnais is the name of his mother's family.”
  • Madame Defarge knitted steadily, but the intelligence had a palpable
  • effect upon her husband. Do what he would, behind the little counter,
  • as to the striking of a light and the lighting of his pipe, he was
  • troubled, and his hand was not trustworthy. The spy would have been no
  • spy if he had failed to see it, or to record it in his mind.
  • Having made, at least, this one hit, whatever it might prove to be
  • worth, and no customers coming in to help him to any other, Mr. Barsad
  • paid for what he had drunk, and took his leave: taking occasion to say,
  • in a genteel manner, before he departed, that he looked forward to the
  • pleasure of seeing Monsieur and Madame Defarge again. For some minutes
  • after he had emerged into the outer presence of Saint Antoine, the
  • husband and wife remained exactly as he had left them, lest he should
  • come back.
  • “Can it be true,” said Defarge, in a low voice, looking down at his wife
  • as he stood smoking with his hand on the back of her chair: “what he has
  • said of Ma'amselle Manette?”
  • “As he has said it,” returned madame, lifting her eyebrows a little, “it
  • is probably false. But it may be true.”
  • “If it is--” Defarge began, and stopped.
  • “If it is?” repeated his wife.
  • “--And if it does come, while we live to see it triumph--I hope, for her
  • sake, Destiny will keep her husband out of France.”
  • “Her husband's destiny,” said Madame Defarge, with her usual composure,
  • “will take him where he is to go, and will lead him to the end that is
  • to end him. That is all I know.”
  • “But it is very strange--now, at least, is it not very strange”--said
  • Defarge, rather pleading with his wife to induce her to admit it,
  • “that, after all our sympathy for Monsieur her father, and herself, her
  • husband's name should be proscribed under your hand at this moment, by
  • the side of that infernal dog's who has just left us?”
  • “Stranger things than that will happen when it does come,” answered
  • madame. “I have them both here, of a certainty; and they are both here
  • for their merits; that is enough.”
  • She rolled up her knitting when she had said those words, and presently
  • took the rose out of the handkerchief that was wound about her head.
  • Either Saint Antoine had an instinctive sense that the objectionable
  • decoration was gone, or Saint Antoine was on the watch for its
  • disappearance; howbeit, the Saint took courage to lounge in, very
  • shortly afterwards, and the wine-shop recovered its habitual aspect.
  • In the evening, at which season of all others Saint Antoine turned
  • himself inside out, and sat on door-steps and window-ledges, and came
  • to the corners of vile streets and courts, for a breath of air, Madame
  • Defarge with her work in her hand was accustomed to pass from place
  • to place and from group to group: a Missionary--there were many like
  • her--such as the world will do well never to breed again. All the women
  • knitted. They knitted worthless things; but, the mechanical work was a
  • mechanical substitute for eating and drinking; the hands moved for the
  • jaws and the digestive apparatus: if the bony fingers had been still,
  • the stomachs would have been more famine-pinched.
  • But, as the fingers went, the eyes went, and the thoughts. And as Madame
  • Defarge moved on from group to group, all three went quicker and fiercer
  • among every little knot of women that she had spoken with, and left
  • behind.
  • Her husband smoked at his door, looking after her with admiration. “A
  • great woman,” said he, “a strong woman, a grand woman, a frightfully
  • grand woman!”
  • Darkness closed around, and then came the ringing of church bells and
  • the distant beating of the military drums in the Palace Courtyard, as
  • the women sat knitting, knitting. Darkness encompassed them. Another
  • darkness was closing in as surely, when the church bells, then ringing
  • pleasantly in many an airy steeple over France, should be melted into
  • thundering cannon; when the military drums should be beating to drown a
  • wretched voice, that night all potent as the voice of Power and Plenty,
  • Freedom and Life. So much was closing in about the women who sat
  • knitting, knitting, that they their very selves were closing in around
  • a structure yet unbuilt, where they were to sit knitting, knitting,
  • counting dropping heads.
  • XVII. One Night
  • Never did the sun go down with a brighter glory on the quiet corner in
  • Soho, than one memorable evening when the Doctor and his daughter sat
  • under the plane-tree together. Never did the moon rise with a milder
  • radiance over great London, than on that night when it found them still
  • seated under the tree, and shone upon their faces through its leaves.
  • Lucie was to be married to-morrow. She had reserved this last evening
  • for her father, and they sat alone under the plane-tree.
  • “You are happy, my dear father?”
  • “Quite, my child.”
  • They had said little, though they had been there a long time. When it
  • was yet light enough to work and read, she had neither engaged herself
  • in her usual work, nor had she read to him. She had employed herself in
  • both ways, at his side under the tree, many and many a time; but, this
  • time was not quite like any other, and nothing could make it so.
  • “And I am very happy to-night, dear father. I am deeply happy in the
  • love that Heaven has so blessed--my love for Charles, and Charles's love
  • for me. But, if my life were not to be still consecrated to you, or
  • if my marriage were so arranged as that it would part us, even by
  • the length of a few of these streets, I should be more unhappy and
  • self-reproachful now than I can tell you. Even as it is--”
  • Even as it was, she could not command her voice.
  • In the sad moonlight, she clasped him by the neck, and laid her face
  • upon his breast. In the moonlight which is always sad, as the light of
  • the sun itself is--as the light called human life is--at its coming and
  • its going.
  • “Dearest dear! Can you tell me, this last time, that you feel quite,
  • quite sure, no new affections of mine, and no new duties of mine, will
  • ever interpose between us? _I_ know it well, but do you know it? In your
  • own heart, do you feel quite certain?”
  • Her father answered, with a cheerful firmness of conviction he could
  • scarcely have assumed, “Quite sure, my darling! More than that,” he
  • added, as he tenderly kissed her: “my future is far brighter, Lucie,
  • seen through your marriage, than it could have been--nay, than it ever
  • was--without it.”
  • “If I could hope _that_, my father!--”
  • “Believe it, love! Indeed it is so. Consider how natural and how plain
  • it is, my dear, that it should be so. You, devoted and young, cannot
  • fully appreciate the anxiety I have felt that your life should not be
  • wasted--”
  • She moved her hand towards his lips, but he took it in his, and repeated
  • the word.
  • “--wasted, my child--should not be wasted, struck aside from the
  • natural order of things--for my sake. Your unselfishness cannot entirely
  • comprehend how much my mind has gone on this; but, only ask yourself,
  • how could my happiness be perfect, while yours was incomplete?”
  • “If I had never seen Charles, my father, I should have been quite happy
  • with you.”
  • He smiled at her unconscious admission that she would have been unhappy
  • without Charles, having seen him; and replied:
  • “My child, you did see him, and it is Charles. If it had not been
  • Charles, it would have been another. Or, if it had been no other, I
  • should have been the cause, and then the dark part of my life would have
  • cast its shadow beyond myself, and would have fallen on you.”
  • It was the first time, except at the trial, of her ever hearing him
  • refer to the period of his suffering. It gave her a strange and new
  • sensation while his words were in her ears; and she remembered it long
  • afterwards.
  • “See!” said the Doctor of Beauvais, raising his hand towards the moon.
  • “I have looked at her from my prison-window, when I could not bear her
  • light. I have looked at her when it has been such torture to me to think
  • of her shining upon what I had lost, that I have beaten my head against
  • my prison-walls. I have looked at her, in a state so dull and lethargic,
  • that I have thought of nothing but the number of horizontal lines I
  • could draw across her at the full, and the number of perpendicular lines
  • with which I could intersect them.” He added in his inward and pondering
  • manner, as he looked at the moon, “It was twenty either way, I remember,
  • and the twentieth was difficult to squeeze in.”
  • The strange thrill with which she heard him go back to that time,
  • deepened as he dwelt upon it; but, there was nothing to shock her in
  • the manner of his reference. He only seemed to contrast his present
  • cheerfulness and felicity with the dire endurance that was over.
  • “I have looked at her, speculating thousands of times upon the unborn
  • child from whom I had been rent. Whether it was alive. Whether it had
  • been born alive, or the poor mother's shock had killed it. Whether it
  • was a son who would some day avenge his father. (There was a time in my
  • imprisonment, when my desire for vengeance was unbearable.) Whether it
  • was a son who would never know his father's story; who might even live
  • to weigh the possibility of his father's having disappeared of his own
  • will and act. Whether it was a daughter who would grow to be a woman.”
  • She drew closer to him, and kissed his cheek and his hand.
  • “I have pictured my daughter, to myself, as perfectly forgetful of
  • me--rather, altogether ignorant of me, and unconscious of me. I have
  • cast up the years of her age, year after year. I have seen her married
  • to a man who knew nothing of my fate. I have altogether perished from
  • the remembrance of the living, and in the next generation my place was a
  • blank.”
  • “My father! Even to hear that you had such thoughts of a daughter who
  • never existed, strikes to my heart as if I had been that child.”
  • “You, Lucie? It is out of the Consolation and restoration you have
  • brought to me, that these remembrances arise, and pass between us and
  • the moon on this last night.--What did I say just now?”
  • “She knew nothing of you. She cared nothing for you.”
  • “So! But on other moonlight nights, when the sadness and the silence
  • have touched me in a different way--have affected me with something as
  • like a sorrowful sense of peace, as any emotion that had pain for its
  • foundations could--I have imagined her as coming to me in my cell, and
  • leading me out into the freedom beyond the fortress. I have seen her
  • image in the moonlight often, as I now see you; except that I never held
  • her in my arms; it stood between the little grated window and the door.
  • But, you understand that that was not the child I am speaking of?”
  • “The figure was not; the--the--image; the fancy?”
  • “No. That was another thing. It stood before my disturbed sense of
  • sight, but it never moved. The phantom that my mind pursued, was another
  • and more real child. Of her outward appearance I know no more than
  • that she was like her mother. The other had that likeness too--as you
  • have--but was not the same. Can you follow me, Lucie? Hardly, I think?
  • I doubt you must have been a solitary prisoner to understand these
  • perplexed distinctions.”
  • His collected and calm manner could not prevent her blood from running
  • cold, as he thus tried to anatomise his old condition.
  • “In that more peaceful state, I have imagined her, in the moonlight,
  • coming to me and taking me out to show me that the home of her married
  • life was full of her loving remembrance of her lost father. My picture
  • was in her room, and I was in her prayers. Her life was active,
  • cheerful, useful; but my poor history pervaded it all.”
  • “I was that child, my father, I was not half so good, but in my love
  • that was I.”
  • “And she showed me her children,” said the Doctor of Beauvais, “and
  • they had heard of me, and had been taught to pity me. When they passed
  • a prison of the State, they kept far from its frowning walls, and looked
  • up at its bars, and spoke in whispers. She could never deliver me; I
  • imagined that she always brought me back after showing me such things.
  • But then, blessed with the relief of tears, I fell upon my knees, and
  • blessed her.”
  • “I am that child, I hope, my father. O my dear, my dear, will you bless
  • me as fervently to-morrow?”
  • “Lucie, I recall these old troubles in the reason that I have to-night
  • for loving you better than words can tell, and thanking God for my great
  • happiness. My thoughts, when they were wildest, never rose near the
  • happiness that I have known with you, and that we have before us.”
  • He embraced her, solemnly commended her to Heaven, and humbly thanked
  • Heaven for having bestowed her on him. By-and-bye, they went into the
  • house.
  • There was no one bidden to the marriage but Mr. Lorry; there was even to
  • be no bridesmaid but the gaunt Miss Pross. The marriage was to make no
  • change in their place of residence; they had been able to extend it,
  • by taking to themselves the upper rooms formerly belonging to the
  • apocryphal invisible lodger, and they desired nothing more.
  • Doctor Manette was very cheerful at the little supper. They were only
  • three at table, and Miss Pross made the third. He regretted that Charles
  • was not there; was more than half disposed to object to the loving
  • little plot that kept him away; and drank to him affectionately.
  • So, the time came for him to bid Lucie good night, and they separated.
  • But, in the stillness of the third hour of the morning, Lucie came
  • downstairs again, and stole into his room; not free from unshaped fears,
  • beforehand.
  • All things, however, were in their places; all was quiet; and he lay
  • asleep, his white hair picturesque on the untroubled pillow, and his
  • hands lying quiet on the coverlet. She put her needless candle in the
  • shadow at a distance, crept up to his bed, and put her lips to his;
  • then, leaned over him, and looked at him.
  • Into his handsome face, the bitter waters of captivity had worn; but, he
  • covered up their tracks with a determination so strong, that he held the
  • mastery of them even in his sleep. A more remarkable face in its quiet,
  • resolute, and guarded struggle with an unseen assailant, was not to be
  • beheld in all the wide dominions of sleep, that night.
  • She timidly laid her hand on his dear breast, and put up a prayer that
  • she might ever be as true to him as her love aspired to be, and as his
  • sorrows deserved. Then, she withdrew her hand, and kissed his lips once
  • more, and went away. So, the sunrise came, and the shadows of the leaves
  • of the plane-tree moved upon his face, as softly as her lips had moved
  • in praying for him.
  • XVIII. Nine Days
  • The marriage-day was shining brightly, and they were ready outside the
  • closed door of the Doctor's room, where he was speaking with Charles
  • Darnay. They were ready to go to church; the beautiful bride, Mr.
  • Lorry, and Miss Pross--to whom the event, through a gradual process of
  • reconcilement to the inevitable, would have been one of absolute bliss,
  • but for the yet lingering consideration that her brother Solomon should
  • have been the bridegroom.
  • “And so,” said Mr. Lorry, who could not sufficiently admire the bride,
  • and who had been moving round her to take in every point of her quiet,
  • pretty dress; “and so it was for this, my sweet Lucie, that I brought
  • you across the Channel, such a baby! Lord bless me! How little I thought
  • what I was doing! How lightly I valued the obligation I was conferring
  • on my friend Mr. Charles!”
  • “You didn't mean it,” remarked the matter-of-fact Miss Pross, “and
  • therefore how could you know it? Nonsense!”
  • “Really? Well; but don't cry,” said the gentle Mr. Lorry.
  • “I am not crying,” said Miss Pross; “_you_ are.”
  • “I, my Pross?” (By this time, Mr. Lorry dared to be pleasant with her,
  • on occasion.)
  • “You were, just now; I saw you do it, and I don't wonder at it. Such
  • a present of plate as you have made 'em, is enough to bring tears into
  • anybody's eyes. There's not a fork or a spoon in the collection,” said
  • Miss Pross, “that I didn't cry over, last night after the box came, till
  • I couldn't see it.”
  • “I am highly gratified,” said Mr. Lorry, “though, upon my honour, I
  • had no intention of rendering those trifling articles of remembrance
  • invisible to any one. Dear me! This is an occasion that makes a man
  • speculate on all he has lost. Dear, dear, dear! To think that there
  • might have been a Mrs. Lorry, any time these fifty years almost!”
  • “Not at all!” From Miss Pross.
  • “You think there never might have been a Mrs. Lorry?” asked the
  • gentleman of that name.
  • “Pooh!” rejoined Miss Pross; “you were a bachelor in your cradle.”
  • “Well!” observed Mr. Lorry, beamingly adjusting his little wig, “that
  • seems probable, too.”
  • “And you were cut out for a bachelor,” pursued Miss Pross, “before you
  • were put in your cradle.”
  • “Then, I think,” said Mr. Lorry, “that I was very unhandsomely dealt
  • with, and that I ought to have had a voice in the selection of my
  • pattern. Enough! Now, my dear Lucie,” drawing his arm soothingly round
  • her waist, “I hear them moving in the next room, and Miss Pross and
  • I, as two formal folks of business, are anxious not to lose the final
  • opportunity of saying something to you that you wish to hear. You leave
  • your good father, my dear, in hands as earnest and as loving as your
  • own; he shall be taken every conceivable care of; during the next
  • fortnight, while you are in Warwickshire and thereabouts, even Tellson's
  • shall go to the wall (comparatively speaking) before him. And when, at
  • the fortnight's end, he comes to join you and your beloved husband, on
  • your other fortnight's trip in Wales, you shall say that we have sent
  • him to you in the best health and in the happiest frame. Now, I hear
  • Somebody's step coming to the door. Let me kiss my dear girl with an
  • old-fashioned bachelor blessing, before Somebody comes to claim his
  • own.”
  • For a moment, he held the fair face from him to look at the
  • well-remembered expression on the forehead, and then laid the bright
  • golden hair against his little brown wig, with a genuine tenderness and
  • delicacy which, if such things be old-fashioned, were as old as Adam.
  • The door of the Doctor's room opened, and he came out with Charles
  • Darnay. He was so deadly pale--which had not been the case when they
  • went in together--that no vestige of colour was to be seen in his face.
  • But, in the composure of his manner he was unaltered, except that to the
  • shrewd glance of Mr. Lorry it disclosed some shadowy indication that the
  • old air of avoidance and dread had lately passed over him, like a cold
  • wind.
  • He gave his arm to his daughter, and took her down-stairs to the chariot
  • which Mr. Lorry had hired in honour of the day. The rest followed in
  • another carriage, and soon, in a neighbouring church, where no strange
  • eyes looked on, Charles Darnay and Lucie Manette were happily married.
  • Besides the glancing tears that shone among the smiles of the little
  • group when it was done, some diamonds, very bright and sparkling,
  • glanced on the bride's hand, which were newly released from the
  • dark obscurity of one of Mr. Lorry's pockets. They returned home to
  • breakfast, and all went well, and in due course the golden hair that had
  • mingled with the poor shoemaker's white locks in the Paris garret, were
  • mingled with them again in the morning sunlight, on the threshold of the
  • door at parting.
  • It was a hard parting, though it was not for long. But her father
  • cheered her, and said at last, gently disengaging himself from her
  • enfolding arms, “Take her, Charles! She is yours!”
  • And her agitated hand waved to them from a chaise window, and she was
  • gone.
  • The corner being out of the way of the idle and curious, and the
  • preparations having been very simple and few, the Doctor, Mr. Lorry,
  • and Miss Pross, were left quite alone. It was when they turned into
  • the welcome shade of the cool old hall, that Mr. Lorry observed a great
  • change to have come over the Doctor; as if the golden arm uplifted
  • there, had struck him a poisoned blow.
  • He had naturally repressed much, and some revulsion might have been
  • expected in him when the occasion for repression was gone. But, it was
  • the old scared lost look that troubled Mr. Lorry; and through his absent
  • manner of clasping his head and drearily wandering away into his own
  • room when they got up-stairs, Mr. Lorry was reminded of Defarge the
  • wine-shop keeper, and the starlight ride.
  • “I think,” he whispered to Miss Pross, after anxious consideration, “I
  • think we had best not speak to him just now, or at all disturb him.
  • I must look in at Tellson's; so I will go there at once and come back
  • presently. Then, we will take him a ride into the country, and dine
  • there, and all will be well.”
  • It was easier for Mr. Lorry to look in at Tellson's, than to look out of
  • Tellson's. He was detained two hours. When he came back, he ascended the
  • old staircase alone, having asked no question of the servant; going thus
  • into the Doctor's rooms, he was stopped by a low sound of knocking.
  • “Good God!” he said, with a start. “What's that?”
  • Miss Pross, with a terrified face, was at his ear. “O me, O me! All is
  • lost!” cried she, wringing her hands. “What is to be told to Ladybird?
  • He doesn't know me, and is making shoes!”
  • Mr. Lorry said what he could to calm her, and went himself into the
  • Doctor's room. The bench was turned towards the light, as it had been
  • when he had seen the shoemaker at his work before, and his head was bent
  • down, and he was very busy.
  • “Doctor Manette. My dear friend, Doctor Manette!”
  • The Doctor looked at him for a moment--half inquiringly, half as if he
  • were angry at being spoken to--and bent over his work again.
  • He had laid aside his coat and waistcoat; his shirt was open at the
  • throat, as it used to be when he did that work; and even the old
  • haggard, faded surface of face had come back to him. He worked
  • hard--impatiently--as if in some sense of having been interrupted.
  • Mr. Lorry glanced at the work in his hand, and observed that it was a
  • shoe of the old size and shape. He took up another that was lying by
  • him, and asked what it was.
  • “A young lady's walking shoe,” he muttered, without looking up. “It
  • ought to have been finished long ago. Let it be.”
  • “But, Doctor Manette. Look at me!”
  • He obeyed, in the old mechanically submissive manner, without pausing in
  • his work.
  • “You know me, my dear friend? Think again. This is not your proper
  • occupation. Think, dear friend!”
  • Nothing would induce him to speak more. He looked up, for an instant at
  • a time, when he was requested to do so; but, no persuasion would extract
  • a word from him. He worked, and worked, and worked, in silence, and
  • words fell on him as they would have fallen on an echoless wall, or on
  • the air. The only ray of hope that Mr. Lorry could discover, was, that
  • he sometimes furtively looked up without being asked. In that, there
  • seemed a faint expression of curiosity or perplexity--as though he were
  • trying to reconcile some doubts in his mind.
  • Two things at once impressed themselves on Mr. Lorry, as important above
  • all others; the first, that this must be kept secret from Lucie;
  • the second, that it must be kept secret from all who knew him. In
  • conjunction with Miss Pross, he took immediate steps towards the latter
  • precaution, by giving out that the Doctor was not well, and required a
  • few days of complete rest. In aid of the kind deception to be practised
  • on his daughter, Miss Pross was to write, describing his having been
  • called away professionally, and referring to an imaginary letter of
  • two or three hurried lines in his own hand, represented to have been
  • addressed to her by the same post.
  • These measures, advisable to be taken in any case, Mr. Lorry took in
  • the hope of his coming to himself. If that should happen soon, he kept
  • another course in reserve; which was, to have a certain opinion that he
  • thought the best, on the Doctor's case.
  • In the hope of his recovery, and of resort to this third course
  • being thereby rendered practicable, Mr. Lorry resolved to watch him
  • attentively, with as little appearance as possible of doing so. He
  • therefore made arrangements to absent himself from Tellson's for the
  • first time in his life, and took his post by the window in the same
  • room.
  • He was not long in discovering that it was worse than useless to speak
  • to him, since, on being pressed, he became worried. He abandoned that
  • attempt on the first day, and resolved merely to keep himself always
  • before him, as a silent protest against the delusion into which he had
  • fallen, or was falling. He remained, therefore, in his seat near the
  • window, reading and writing, and expressing in as many pleasant and
  • natural ways as he could think of, that it was a free place.
  • Doctor Manette took what was given him to eat and drink, and worked on,
  • that first day, until it was too dark to see--worked on, half an hour
  • after Mr. Lorry could not have seen, for his life, to read or write.
  • When he put his tools aside as useless, until morning, Mr. Lorry rose
  • and said to him:
  • “Will you go out?”
  • He looked down at the floor on either side of him in the old manner,
  • looked up in the old manner, and repeated in the old low voice:
  • “Out?”
  • “Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?”
  • He made no effort to say why not, and said not a word more. But, Mr.
  • Lorry thought he saw, as he leaned forward on his bench in the dusk,
  • with his elbows on his knees and his head in his hands, that he was in
  • some misty way asking himself, “Why not?” The sagacity of the man of
  • business perceived an advantage here, and determined to hold it.
  • Miss Pross and he divided the night into two watches, and observed him
  • at intervals from the adjoining room. He paced up and down for a long
  • time before he lay down; but, when he did finally lay himself down, he
  • fell asleep. In the morning, he was up betimes, and went straight to his
  • bench and to work.
  • On this second day, Mr. Lorry saluted him cheerfully by his name,
  • and spoke to him on topics that had been of late familiar to them. He
  • returned no reply, but it was evident that he heard what was said, and
  • that he thought about it, however confusedly. This encouraged Mr. Lorry
  • to have Miss Pross in with her work, several times during the day;
  • at those times, they quietly spoke of Lucie, and of her father then
  • present, precisely in the usual manner, and as if there were nothing
  • amiss. This was done without any demonstrative accompaniment, not long
  • enough, or often enough to harass him; and it lightened Mr. Lorry's
  • friendly heart to believe that he looked up oftener, and that he
  • appeared to be stirred by some perception of inconsistencies surrounding
  • him.
  • When it fell dark again, Mr. Lorry asked him as before:
  • “Dear Doctor, will you go out?”
  • As before, he repeated, “Out?”
  • “Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?”
  • This time, Mr. Lorry feigned to go out when he could extract no answer
  • from him, and, after remaining absent for an hour, returned. In the
  • meanwhile, the Doctor had removed to the seat in the window, and had
  • sat there looking down at the plane-tree; but, on Mr. Lorry's return, he
  • slipped away to his bench.
  • The time went very slowly on, and Mr. Lorry's hope darkened, and his
  • heart grew heavier again, and grew yet heavier and heavier every day.
  • The third day came and went, the fourth, the fifth. Five days, six days,
  • seven days, eight days, nine days.
  • With a hope ever darkening, and with a heart always growing heavier and
  • heavier, Mr. Lorry passed through this anxious time. The secret was
  • well kept, and Lucie was unconscious and happy; but he could not fail to
  • observe that the shoemaker, whose hand had been a little out at first,
  • was growing dreadfully skilful, and that he had never been so intent on
  • his work, and that his hands had never been so nimble and expert, as in
  • the dusk of the ninth evening.
  • XIX. An Opinion
  • Worn out by anxious watching, Mr. Lorry fell asleep at his post. On the
  • tenth morning of his suspense, he was startled by the shining of the sun
  • into the room where a heavy slumber had overtaken him when it was dark
  • night.
  • He rubbed his eyes and roused himself; but he doubted, when he had
  • done so, whether he was not still asleep. For, going to the door of the
  • Doctor's room and looking in, he perceived that the shoemaker's bench
  • and tools were put aside again, and that the Doctor himself sat reading
  • at the window. He was in his usual morning dress, and his face (which
  • Mr. Lorry could distinctly see), though still very pale, was calmly
  • studious and attentive.
  • Even when he had satisfied himself that he was awake, Mr. Lorry felt
  • giddily uncertain for some few moments whether the late shoemaking might
  • not be a disturbed dream of his own; for, did not his eyes show him his
  • friend before him in his accustomed clothing and aspect, and employed
  • as usual; and was there any sign within their range, that the change of
  • which he had so strong an impression had actually happened?
  • It was but the inquiry of his first confusion and astonishment, the
  • answer being obvious. If the impression were not produced by a real
  • corresponding and sufficient cause, how came he, Jarvis Lorry, there?
  • How came he to have fallen asleep, in his clothes, on the sofa in Doctor
  • Manette's consulting-room, and to be debating these points outside the
  • Doctor's bedroom door in the early morning?
  • Within a few minutes, Miss Pross stood whispering at his side. If he
  • had had any particle of doubt left, her talk would of necessity have
  • resolved it; but he was by that time clear-headed, and had none.
  • He advised that they should let the time go by until the regular
  • breakfast-hour, and should then meet the Doctor as if nothing unusual
  • had occurred. If he appeared to be in his customary state of mind, Mr.
  • Lorry would then cautiously proceed to seek direction and guidance from
  • the opinion he had been, in his anxiety, so anxious to obtain.
  • Miss Pross, submitting herself to his judgment, the scheme was worked
  • out with care. Having abundance of time for his usual methodical
  • toilette, Mr. Lorry presented himself at the breakfast-hour in his usual
  • white linen, and with his usual neat leg. The Doctor was summoned in the
  • usual way, and came to breakfast.
  • So far as it was possible to comprehend him without overstepping those
  • delicate and gradual approaches which Mr. Lorry felt to be the only safe
  • advance, he at first supposed that his daughter's marriage had taken
  • place yesterday. An incidental allusion, purposely thrown out, to
  • the day of the week, and the day of the month, set him thinking and
  • counting, and evidently made him uneasy. In all other respects, however,
  • he was so composedly himself, that Mr. Lorry determined to have the aid
  • he sought. And that aid was his own.
  • Therefore, when the breakfast was done and cleared away, and he and the
  • Doctor were left together, Mr. Lorry said, feelingly:
  • “My dear Manette, I am anxious to have your opinion, in confidence, on a
  • very curious case in which I am deeply interested; that is to say, it is
  • very curious to me; perhaps, to your better information it may be less
  • so.”
  • Glancing at his hands, which were discoloured by his late work, the
  • Doctor looked troubled, and listened attentively. He had already glanced
  • at his hands more than once.
  • “Doctor Manette,” said Mr. Lorry, touching him affectionately on the
  • arm, “the case is the case of a particularly dear friend of mine. Pray
  • give your mind to it, and advise me well for his sake--and above all,
  • for his daughter's--his daughter's, my dear Manette.”
  • “If I understand,” said the Doctor, in a subdued tone, “some mental
  • shock--?”
  • “Yes!”
  • “Be explicit,” said the Doctor. “Spare no detail.”
  • Mr. Lorry saw that they understood one another, and proceeded.
  • “My dear Manette, it is the case of an old and a prolonged shock,
  • of great acuteness and severity to the affections, the feelings,
  • the--the--as you express it--the mind. The mind. It is the case of a
  • shock under which the sufferer was borne down, one cannot say for how
  • long, because I believe he cannot calculate the time himself, and there
  • are no other means of getting at it. It is the case of a shock from
  • which the sufferer recovered, by a process that he cannot trace
  • himself--as I once heard him publicly relate in a striking manner. It is
  • the case of a shock from which he has recovered, so completely, as to
  • be a highly intelligent man, capable of close application of mind, and
  • great exertion of body, and of constantly making fresh additions to his
  • stock of knowledge, which was already very large. But, unfortunately,
  • there has been,” he paused and took a deep breath--“a slight relapse.”
  • The Doctor, in a low voice, asked, “Of how long duration?”
  • “Nine days and nights.”
  • “How did it show itself? I infer,” glancing at his hands again, “in the
  • resumption of some old pursuit connected with the shock?”
  • “That is the fact.”
  • “Now, did you ever see him,” asked the Doctor, distinctly and
  • collectedly, though in the same low voice, “engaged in that pursuit
  • originally?”
  • “Once.”
  • “And when the relapse fell on him, was he in most respects--or in all
  • respects--as he was then?”
  • “I think in all respects.”
  • “You spoke of his daughter. Does his daughter know of the relapse?”
  • “No. It has been kept from her, and I hope will always be kept from her.
  • It is known only to myself, and to one other who may be trusted.”
  • The Doctor grasped his hand, and murmured, “That was very kind. That was
  • very thoughtful!” Mr. Lorry grasped his hand in return, and neither of
  • the two spoke for a little while.
  • “Now, my dear Manette,” said Mr. Lorry, at length, in his most
  • considerate and most affectionate way, “I am a mere man of business,
  • and unfit to cope with such intricate and difficult matters. I do not
  • possess the kind of information necessary; I do not possess the kind of
  • intelligence; I want guiding. There is no man in this world on whom
  • I could so rely for right guidance, as on you. Tell me, how does this
  • relapse come about? Is there danger of another? Could a repetition of it
  • be prevented? How should a repetition of it be treated? How does it come
  • about at all? What can I do for my friend? No man ever can have been
  • more desirous in his heart to serve a friend, than I am to serve mine,
  • if I knew how.
  • “But I don't know how to originate, in such a case. If your sagacity,
  • knowledge, and experience, could put me on the right track, I might be
  • able to do so much; unenlightened and undirected, I can do so little.
  • Pray discuss it with me; pray enable me to see it a little more clearly,
  • and teach me how to be a little more useful.”
  • Doctor Manette sat meditating after these earnest words were spoken, and
  • Mr. Lorry did not press him.
  • “I think it probable,” said the Doctor, breaking silence with an effort,
  • “that the relapse you have described, my dear friend, was not quite
  • unforeseen by its subject.”
  • “Was it dreaded by him?” Mr. Lorry ventured to ask.
  • “Very much.” He said it with an involuntary shudder.
  • “You have no idea how such an apprehension weighs on the sufferer's
  • mind, and how difficult--how almost impossible--it is, for him to force
  • himself to utter a word upon the topic that oppresses him.”
  • “Would he,” asked Mr. Lorry, “be sensibly relieved if he could prevail
  • upon himself to impart that secret brooding to any one, when it is on
  • him?”
  • “I think so. But it is, as I have told you, next to impossible. I even
  • believe it--in some cases--to be quite impossible.”
  • “Now,” said Mr. Lorry, gently laying his hand on the Doctor's arm again,
  • after a short silence on both sides, “to what would you refer this
  • attack?”
  • “I believe,” returned Doctor Manette, “that there had been a strong and
  • extraordinary revival of the train of thought and remembrance that
  • was the first cause of the malady. Some intense associations of a most
  • distressing nature were vividly recalled, I think. It is probable that
  • there had long been a dread lurking in his mind, that those associations
  • would be recalled--say, under certain circumstances--say, on a
  • particular occasion. He tried to prepare himself in vain; perhaps the
  • effort to prepare himself made him less able to bear it.”
  • “Would he remember what took place in the relapse?” asked Mr. Lorry,
  • with natural hesitation.
  • The Doctor looked desolately round the room, shook his head, and
  • answered, in a low voice, “Not at all.”
  • “Now, as to the future,” hinted Mr. Lorry.
  • “As to the future,” said the Doctor, recovering firmness, “I should have
  • great hope. As it pleased Heaven in its mercy to restore him so soon, I
  • should have great hope. He, yielding under the pressure of a complicated
  • something, long dreaded and long vaguely foreseen and contended against,
  • and recovering after the cloud had burst and passed, I should hope that
  • the worst was over.”
  • “Well, well! That's good comfort. I am thankful!” said Mr. Lorry.
  • “I am thankful!” repeated the Doctor, bending his head with reverence.
  • “There are two other points,” said Mr. Lorry, “on which I am anxious to
  • be instructed. I may go on?”
  • “You cannot do your friend a better service.” The Doctor gave him his
  • hand.
  • “To the first, then. He is of a studious habit, and unusually energetic;
  • he applies himself with great ardour to the acquisition of professional
  • knowledge, to the conducting of experiments, to many things. Now, does
  • he do too much?”
  • “I think not. It may be the character of his mind, to be always in
  • singular need of occupation. That may be, in part, natural to it; in
  • part, the result of affliction. The less it was occupied with healthy
  • things, the more it would be in danger of turning in the unhealthy
  • direction. He may have observed himself, and made the discovery.”
  • “You are sure that he is not under too great a strain?”
  • “I think I am quite sure of it.”
  • “My dear Manette, if he were overworked now--”
  • “My dear Lorry, I doubt if that could easily be. There has been a
  • violent stress in one direction, and it needs a counterweight.”
  • “Excuse me, as a persistent man of business. Assuming for a moment,
  • that he _was_ overworked; it would show itself in some renewal of this
  • disorder?”
  • “I do not think so. I do not think,” said Doctor Manette with the
  • firmness of self-conviction, “that anything but the one train of
  • association would renew it. I think that, henceforth, nothing but some
  • extraordinary jarring of that chord could renew it. After what has
  • happened, and after his recovery, I find it difficult to imagine any
  • such violent sounding of that string again. I trust, and I almost
  • believe, that the circumstances likely to renew it are exhausted.”
  • He spoke with the diffidence of a man who knew how slight a thing
  • would overset the delicate organisation of the mind, and yet with the
  • confidence of a man who had slowly won his assurance out of personal
  • endurance and distress. It was not for his friend to abate that
  • confidence. He professed himself more relieved and encouraged than he
  • really was, and approached his second and last point. He felt it to
  • be the most difficult of all; but, remembering his old Sunday morning
  • conversation with Miss Pross, and remembering what he had seen in the
  • last nine days, he knew that he must face it.
  • “The occupation resumed under the influence of this passing affliction
  • so happily recovered from,” said Mr. Lorry, clearing his throat, “we
  • will call--Blacksmith's work, Blacksmith's work. We will say, to put a
  • case and for the sake of illustration, that he had been used, in his bad
  • time, to work at a little forge. We will say that he was unexpectedly
  • found at his forge again. Is it not a pity that he should keep it by
  • him?”
  • The Doctor shaded his forehead with his hand, and beat his foot
  • nervously on the ground.
  • “He has always kept it by him,” said Mr. Lorry, with an anxious look at
  • his friend. “Now, would it not be better that he should let it go?”
  • Still, the Doctor, with shaded forehead, beat his foot nervously on the
  • ground.
  • “You do not find it easy to advise me?” said Mr. Lorry. “I quite
  • understand it to be a nice question. And yet I think--” And there he
  • shook his head, and stopped.
  • “You see,” said Doctor Manette, turning to him after an uneasy pause,
  • “it is very hard to explain, consistently, the innermost workings
  • of this poor man's mind. He once yearned so frightfully for that
  • occupation, and it was so welcome when it came; no doubt it relieved
  • his pain so much, by substituting the perplexity of the fingers for
  • the perplexity of the brain, and by substituting, as he became more
  • practised, the ingenuity of the hands, for the ingenuity of the mental
  • torture; that he has never been able to bear the thought of putting it
  • quite out of his reach. Even now, when I believe he is more hopeful of
  • himself than he has ever been, and even speaks of himself with a kind
  • of confidence, the idea that he might need that old employment, and not
  • find it, gives him a sudden sense of terror, like that which one may
  • fancy strikes to the heart of a lost child.”
  • He looked like his illustration, as he raised his eyes to Mr. Lorry's
  • face.
  • “But may not--mind! I ask for information, as a plodding man of business
  • who only deals with such material objects as guineas, shillings, and
  • bank-notes--may not the retention of the thing involve the retention of
  • the idea? If the thing were gone, my dear Manette, might not the fear go
  • with it? In short, is it not a concession to the misgiving, to keep the
  • forge?”
  • There was another silence.
  • “You see, too,” said the Doctor, tremulously, “it is such an old
  • companion.”
  • “I would not keep it,” said Mr. Lorry, shaking his head; for he gained
  • in firmness as he saw the Doctor disquieted. “I would recommend him to
  • sacrifice it. I only want your authority. I am sure it does no good.
  • Come! Give me your authority, like a dear good man. For his daughter's
  • sake, my dear Manette!”
  • Very strange to see what a struggle there was within him!
  • “In her name, then, let it be done; I sanction it. But, I would not take
  • it away while he was present. Let it be removed when he is not there;
  • let him miss his old companion after an absence.”
  • Mr. Lorry readily engaged for that, and the conference was ended. They
  • passed the day in the country, and the Doctor was quite restored. On the
  • three following days he remained perfectly well, and on the fourteenth
  • day he went away to join Lucie and her husband. The precaution that
  • had been taken to account for his silence, Mr. Lorry had previously
  • explained to him, and he had written to Lucie in accordance with it, and
  • she had no suspicions.
  • On the night of the day on which he left the house, Mr. Lorry went into
  • his room with a chopper, saw, chisel, and hammer, attended by Miss Pross
  • carrying a light. There, with closed doors, and in a mysterious and
  • guilty manner, Mr. Lorry hacked the shoemaker's bench to pieces, while
  • Miss Pross held the candle as if she were assisting at a murder--for
  • which, indeed, in her grimness, she was no unsuitable figure. The
  • burning of the body (previously reduced to pieces convenient for the
  • purpose) was commenced without delay in the kitchen fire; and the tools,
  • shoes, and leather, were buried in the garden. So wicked do destruction
  • and secrecy appear to honest minds, that Mr. Lorry and Miss Pross,
  • while engaged in the commission of their deed and in the removal of its
  • traces, almost felt, and almost looked, like accomplices in a horrible
  • crime.
  • XX. A Plea
  • When the newly-married pair came home, the first person who appeared, to
  • offer his congratulations, was Sydney Carton. They had not been at home
  • many hours, when he presented himself. He was not improved in habits, or
  • in looks, or in manner; but there was a certain rugged air of fidelity
  • about him, which was new to the observation of Charles Darnay.
  • He watched his opportunity of taking Darnay aside into a window, and of
  • speaking to him when no one overheard.
  • “Mr. Darnay,” said Carton, “I wish we might be friends.”
  • “We are already friends, I hope.”
  • “You are good enough to say so, as a fashion of speech; but, I don't
  • mean any fashion of speech. Indeed, when I say I wish we might be
  • friends, I scarcely mean quite that, either.”
  • Charles Darnay--as was natural--asked him, in all good-humour and
  • good-fellowship, what he did mean?
  • “Upon my life,” said Carton, smiling, “I find that easier to comprehend
  • in my own mind, than to convey to yours. However, let me try. You
  • remember a certain famous occasion when I was more drunk than--than
  • usual?”
  • “I remember a certain famous occasion when you forced me to confess that
  • you had been drinking.”
  • “I remember it too. The curse of those occasions is heavy upon me, for I
  • always remember them. I hope it may be taken into account one day,
  • when all days are at an end for me! Don't be alarmed; I am not going to
  • preach.”
  • “I am not at all alarmed. Earnestness in you, is anything but alarming
  • to me.”
  • “Ah!” said Carton, with a careless wave of his hand, as if he waved that
  • away. “On the drunken occasion in question (one of a large number, as
  • you know), I was insufferable about liking you, and not liking you. I
  • wish you would forget it.”
  • “I forgot it long ago.”
  • “Fashion of speech again! But, Mr. Darnay, oblivion is not so easy to
  • me, as you represent it to be to you. I have by no means forgotten it,
  • and a light answer does not help me to forget it.”
  • “If it was a light answer,” returned Darnay, “I beg your forgiveness
  • for it. I had no other object than to turn a slight thing, which, to my
  • surprise, seems to trouble you too much, aside. I declare to you, on the
  • faith of a gentleman, that I have long dismissed it from my mind. Good
  • Heaven, what was there to dismiss! Have I had nothing more important to
  • remember, in the great service you rendered me that day?”
  • “As to the great service,” said Carton, “I am bound to avow to you, when
  • you speak of it in that way, that it was mere professional claptrap, I
  • don't know that I cared what became of you, when I rendered it.--Mind! I
  • say when I rendered it; I am speaking of the past.”
  • “You make light of the obligation,” returned Darnay, “but I will not
  • quarrel with _your_ light answer.”
  • “Genuine truth, Mr. Darnay, trust me! I have gone aside from my purpose;
  • I was speaking about our being friends. Now, you know me; you know I am
  • incapable of all the higher and better flights of men. If you doubt it,
  • ask Stryver, and he'll tell you so.”
  • “I prefer to form my own opinion, without the aid of his.”
  • “Well! At any rate you know me as a dissolute dog, who has never done
  • any good, and never will.”
  • “I don't know that you 'never will.'”
  • “But I do, and you must take my word for it. Well! If you could endure
  • to have such a worthless fellow, and a fellow of such indifferent
  • reputation, coming and going at odd times, I should ask that I might be
  • permitted to come and go as a privileged person here; that I might
  • be regarded as an useless (and I would add, if it were not for the
  • resemblance I detected between you and me, an unornamental) piece of
  • furniture, tolerated for its old service, and taken no notice of. I
  • doubt if I should abuse the permission. It is a hundred to one if I
  • should avail myself of it four times in a year. It would satisfy me, I
  • dare say, to know that I had it.”
  • “Will you try?”
  • “That is another way of saying that I am placed on the footing I have
  • indicated. I thank you, Darnay. I may use that freedom with your name?”
  • “I think so, Carton, by this time.”
  • They shook hands upon it, and Sydney turned away. Within a minute
  • afterwards, he was, to all outward appearance, as unsubstantial as ever.
  • When he was gone, and in the course of an evening passed with Miss
  • Pross, the Doctor, and Mr. Lorry, Charles Darnay made some mention of
  • this conversation in general terms, and spoke of Sydney Carton as a
  • problem of carelessness and recklessness. He spoke of him, in short, not
  • bitterly or meaning to bear hard upon him, but as anybody might who saw
  • him as he showed himself.
  • He had no idea that this could dwell in the thoughts of his fair young
  • wife; but, when he afterwards joined her in their own rooms, he found
  • her waiting for him with the old pretty lifting of the forehead strongly
  • marked.
  • “We are thoughtful to-night!” said Darnay, drawing his arm about her.
  • “Yes, dearest Charles,” with her hands on his breast, and the inquiring
  • and attentive expression fixed upon him; “we are rather thoughtful
  • to-night, for we have something on our mind to-night.”
  • “What is it, my Lucie?”
  • “Will you promise not to press one question on me, if I beg you not to
  • ask it?”
  • “Will I promise? What will I not promise to my Love?”
  • What, indeed, with his hand putting aside the golden hair from the
  • cheek, and his other hand against the heart that beat for him!
  • “I think, Charles, poor Mr. Carton deserves more consideration and
  • respect than you expressed for him to-night.”
  • “Indeed, my own? Why so?”
  • “That is what you are not to ask me. But I think--I know--he does.”
  • “If you know it, it is enough. What would you have me do, my Life?”
  • “I would ask you, dearest, to be very generous with him always, and very
  • lenient on his faults when he is not by. I would ask you to believe that
  • he has a heart he very, very seldom reveals, and that there are deep
  • wounds in it. My dear, I have seen it bleeding.”
  • “It is a painful reflection to me,” said Charles Darnay, quite
  • astounded, “that I should have done him any wrong. I never thought this
  • of him.”
  • “My husband, it is so. I fear he is not to be reclaimed; there is
  • scarcely a hope that anything in his character or fortunes is reparable
  • now. But, I am sure that he is capable of good things, gentle things,
  • even magnanimous things.”
  • She looked so beautiful in the purity of her faith in this lost man,
  • that her husband could have looked at her as she was for hours.
  • “And, O my dearest Love!” she urged, clinging nearer to him, laying her
  • head upon his breast, and raising her eyes to his, “remember how strong
  • we are in our happiness, and how weak he is in his misery!”
  • The supplication touched him home. “I will always remember it, dear
  • Heart! I will remember it as long as I live.”
  • He bent over the golden head, and put the rosy lips to his, and folded
  • her in his arms. If one forlorn wanderer then pacing the dark streets,
  • could have heard her innocent disclosure, and could have seen the drops
  • of pity kissed away by her husband from the soft blue eyes so loving of
  • that husband, he might have cried to the night--and the words would not
  • have parted from his lips for the first time--
  • “God bless her for her sweet compassion!”
  • XXI. Echoing Footsteps
  • A wonderful corner for echoes, it has been remarked, that corner where
  • the Doctor lived. Ever busily winding the golden thread which bound
  • her husband, and her father, and herself, and her old directress and
  • companion, in a life of quiet bliss, Lucie sat in the still house in
  • the tranquilly resounding corner, listening to the echoing footsteps of
  • years.
  • At first, there were times, though she was a perfectly happy young wife,
  • when her work would slowly fall from her hands, and her eyes would be
  • dimmed. For, there was something coming in the echoes, something light,
  • afar off, and scarcely audible yet, that stirred her heart too much.
  • Fluttering hopes and doubts--hopes, of a love as yet unknown to her:
  • doubts, of her remaining upon earth, to enjoy that new delight--divided
  • her breast. Among the echoes then, there would arise the sound of
  • footsteps at her own early grave; and thoughts of the husband who would
  • be left so desolate, and who would mourn for her so much, swelled to her
  • eyes, and broke like waves.
  • That time passed, and her little Lucie lay on her bosom. Then, among the
  • advancing echoes, there was the tread of her tiny feet and the sound of
  • her prattling words. Let greater echoes resound as they would, the young
  • mother at the cradle side could always hear those coming. They came, and
  • the shady house was sunny with a child's laugh, and the Divine friend of
  • children, to whom in her trouble she had confided hers, seemed to take
  • her child in his arms, as He took the child of old, and made it a sacred
  • joy to her.
  • Ever busily winding the golden thread that bound them all together,
  • weaving the service of her happy influence through the tissue of all
  • their lives, and making it predominate nowhere, Lucie heard in the
  • echoes of years none but friendly and soothing sounds. Her husband's
  • step was strong and prosperous among them; her father's firm and equal.
  • Lo, Miss Pross, in harness of string, awakening the echoes, as an
  • unruly charger, whip-corrected, snorting and pawing the earth under the
  • plane-tree in the garden!
  • Even when there were sounds of sorrow among the rest, they were not
  • harsh nor cruel. Even when golden hair, like her own, lay in a halo on a
  • pillow round the worn face of a little boy, and he said, with a radiant
  • smile, “Dear papa and mamma, I am very sorry to leave you both, and to
  • leave my pretty sister; but I am called, and I must go!” those were not
  • tears all of agony that wetted his young mother's cheek, as the spirit
  • departed from her embrace that had been entrusted to it. Suffer them and
  • forbid them not. They see my Father's face. O Father, blessed words!
  • Thus, the rustling of an Angel's wings got blended with the other
  • echoes, and they were not wholly of earth, but had in them that breath
  • of Heaven. Sighs of the winds that blew over a little garden-tomb were
  • mingled with them also, and both were audible to Lucie, in a hushed
  • murmur--like the breathing of a summer sea asleep upon a sandy shore--as
  • the little Lucie, comically studious at the task of the morning, or
  • dressing a doll at her mother's footstool, chattered in the tongues of
  • the Two Cities that were blended in her life.
  • The Echoes rarely answered to the actual tread of Sydney Carton. Some
  • half-dozen times a year, at most, he claimed his privilege of coming in
  • uninvited, and would sit among them through the evening, as he had once
  • done often. He never came there heated with wine. And one other thing
  • regarding him was whispered in the echoes, which has been whispered by
  • all true echoes for ages and ages.
  • No man ever really loved a woman, lost her, and knew her with a
  • blameless though an unchanged mind, when she was a wife and a mother,
  • but her children had a strange sympathy with him--an instinctive
  • delicacy of pity for him. What fine hidden sensibilities are touched in
  • such a case, no echoes tell; but it is so, and it was so here. Carton
  • was the first stranger to whom little Lucie held out her chubby arms,
  • and he kept his place with her as she grew. The little boy had spoken of
  • him, almost at the last. “Poor Carton! Kiss him for me!”
  • Mr. Stryver shouldered his way through the law, like some great engine
  • forcing itself through turbid water, and dragged his useful friend in
  • his wake, like a boat towed astern. As the boat so favoured is usually
  • in a rough plight, and mostly under water, so, Sydney had a swamped
  • life of it. But, easy and strong custom, unhappily so much easier and
  • stronger in him than any stimulating sense of desert or disgrace, made
  • it the life he was to lead; and he no more thought of emerging from his
  • state of lion's jackal, than any real jackal may be supposed to think of
  • rising to be a lion. Stryver was rich; had married a florid widow with
  • property and three boys, who had nothing particularly shining about them
  • but the straight hair of their dumpling heads.
  • These three young gentlemen, Mr. Stryver, exuding patronage of the most
  • offensive quality from every pore, had walked before him like three
  • sheep to the quiet corner in Soho, and had offered as pupils to
  • Lucie's husband: delicately saying “Halloa! here are three lumps of
  • bread-and-cheese towards your matrimonial picnic, Darnay!” The polite
  • rejection of the three lumps of bread-and-cheese had quite bloated Mr.
  • Stryver with indignation, which he afterwards turned to account in the
  • training of the young gentlemen, by directing them to beware of the
  • pride of Beggars, like that tutor-fellow. He was also in the habit of
  • declaiming to Mrs. Stryver, over his full-bodied wine, on the arts
  • Mrs. Darnay had once put in practice to “catch” him, and on the
  • diamond-cut-diamond arts in himself, madam, which had rendered him “not
  • to be caught.” Some of his King's Bench familiars, who were occasionally
  • parties to the full-bodied wine and the lie, excused him for the
  • latter by saying that he had told it so often, that he believed
  • it himself--which is surely such an incorrigible aggravation of an
  • originally bad offence, as to justify any such offender's being carried
  • off to some suitably retired spot, and there hanged out of the way.
  • These were among the echoes to which Lucie, sometimes pensive, sometimes
  • amused and laughing, listened in the echoing corner, until her little
  • daughter was six years old. How near to her heart the echoes of her
  • child's tread came, and those of her own dear father's, always active
  • and self-possessed, and those of her dear husband's, need not be told.
  • Nor, how the lightest echo of their united home, directed by herself
  • with such a wise and elegant thrift that it was more abundant than any
  • waste, was music to her. Nor, how there were echoes all about her, sweet
  • in her ears, of the many times her father had told her that he found her
  • more devoted to him married (if that could be) than single, and of the
  • many times her husband had said to her that no cares and duties seemed
  • to divide her love for him or her help to him, and asked her “What is
  • the magic secret, my darling, of your being everything to all of us,
  • as if there were only one of us, yet never seeming to be hurried, or to
  • have too much to do?”
  • But, there were other echoes, from a distance, that rumbled menacingly
  • in the corner all through this space of time. And it was now, about
  • little Lucie's sixth birthday, that they began to have an awful sound,
  • as of a great storm in France with a dreadful sea rising.
  • On a night in mid-July, one thousand seven hundred and eighty-nine, Mr.
  • Lorry came in late, from Tellson's, and sat himself down by Lucie and
  • her husband in the dark window. It was a hot, wild night, and they were
  • all three reminded of the old Sunday night when they had looked at the
  • lightning from the same place.
  • “I began to think,” said Mr. Lorry, pushing his brown wig back, “that
  • I should have to pass the night at Tellson's. We have been so full of
  • business all day, that we have not known what to do first, or which way
  • to turn. There is such an uneasiness in Paris, that we have actually a
  • run of confidence upon us! Our customers over there, seem not to be able
  • to confide their property to us fast enough. There is positively a mania
  • among some of them for sending it to England.”
  • “That has a bad look,” said Darnay--
  • “A bad look, you say, my dear Darnay? Yes, but we don't know what reason
  • there is in it. People are so unreasonable! Some of us at Tellson's are
  • getting old, and we really can't be troubled out of the ordinary course
  • without due occasion.”
  • “Still,” said Darnay, “you know how gloomy and threatening the sky is.”
  • “I know that, to be sure,” assented Mr. Lorry, trying to persuade
  • himself that his sweet temper was soured, and that he grumbled, “but I
  • am determined to be peevish after my long day's botheration. Where is
  • Manette?”
  • “Here he is,” said the Doctor, entering the dark room at the moment.
  • “I am quite glad you are at home; for these hurries and forebodings by
  • which I have been surrounded all day long, have made me nervous without
  • reason. You are not going out, I hope?”
  • “No; I am going to play backgammon with you, if you like,” said the
  • Doctor.
  • “I don't think I do like, if I may speak my mind. I am not fit to be
  • pitted against you to-night. Is the teaboard still there, Lucie? I can't
  • see.”
  • “Of course, it has been kept for you.”
  • “Thank ye, my dear. The precious child is safe in bed?”
  • “And sleeping soundly.”
  • “That's right; all safe and well! I don't know why anything should be
  • otherwise than safe and well here, thank God; but I have been so put out
  • all day, and I am not as young as I was! My tea, my dear! Thank ye. Now,
  • come and take your place in the circle, and let us sit quiet, and hear
  • the echoes about which you have your theory.”
  • “Not a theory; it was a fancy.”
  • “A fancy, then, my wise pet,” said Mr. Lorry, patting her hand. “They
  • are very numerous and very loud, though, are they not? Only hear them!”
  • Headlong, mad, and dangerous footsteps to force their way into anybody's
  • life, footsteps not easily made clean again if once stained red, the
  • footsteps raging in Saint Antoine afar off, as the little circle sat in
  • the dark London window.
  • Saint Antoine had been, that morning, a vast dusky mass of scarecrows
  • heaving to and fro, with frequent gleams of light above the billowy
  • heads, where steel blades and bayonets shone in the sun. A tremendous
  • roar arose from the throat of Saint Antoine, and a forest of naked arms
  • struggled in the air like shrivelled branches of trees in a winter wind:
  • all the fingers convulsively clutching at every weapon or semblance of a
  • weapon that was thrown up from the depths below, no matter how far off.
  • Who gave them out, whence they last came, where they began, through what
  • agency they crookedly quivered and jerked, scores at a time, over the
  • heads of the crowd, like a kind of lightning, no eye in the throng could
  • have told; but, muskets were being distributed--so were cartridges,
  • powder, and ball, bars of iron and wood, knives, axes, pikes, every
  • weapon that distracted ingenuity could discover or devise. People who
  • could lay hold of nothing else, set themselves with bleeding hands to
  • force stones and bricks out of their places in walls. Every pulse and
  • heart in Saint Antoine was on high-fever strain and at high-fever heat.
  • Every living creature there held life as of no account, and was demented
  • with a passionate readiness to sacrifice it.
  • As a whirlpool of boiling waters has a centre point, so, all this raging
  • circled round Defarge's wine-shop, and every human drop in the caldron
  • had a tendency to be sucked towards the vortex where Defarge himself,
  • already begrimed with gunpowder and sweat, issued orders, issued arms,
  • thrust this man back, dragged this man forward, disarmed one to arm
  • another, laboured and strove in the thickest of the uproar.
  • “Keep near to me, Jacques Three,” cried Defarge; “and do you, Jacques
  • One and Two, separate and put yourselves at the head of as many of these
  • patriots as you can. Where is my wife?”
  • “Eh, well! Here you see me!” said madame, composed as ever, but not
  • knitting to-day. Madame's resolute right hand was occupied with an axe,
  • in place of the usual softer implements, and in her girdle were a pistol
  • and a cruel knife.
  • “Where do you go, my wife?”
  • “I go,” said madame, “with you at present. You shall see me at the head
  • of women, by-and-bye.”
  • “Come, then!” cried Defarge, in a resounding voice. “Patriots and
  • friends, we are ready! The Bastille!”
  • With a roar that sounded as if all the breath in France had been shaped
  • into the detested word, the living sea rose, wave on wave, depth on
  • depth, and overflowed the city to that point. Alarm-bells ringing, drums
  • beating, the sea raging and thundering on its new beach, the attack
  • began.
  • Deep ditches, double drawbridge, massive stone walls, eight great
  • towers, cannon, muskets, fire and smoke. Through the fire and through
  • the smoke--in the fire and in the smoke, for the sea cast him up against
  • a cannon, and on the instant he became a cannonier--Defarge of the
  • wine-shop worked like a manful soldier, Two fierce hours.
  • Deep ditch, single drawbridge, massive stone walls, eight great towers,
  • cannon, muskets, fire and smoke. One drawbridge down! “Work, comrades
  • all, work! Work, Jacques One, Jacques Two, Jacques One Thousand, Jacques
  • Two Thousand, Jacques Five-and-Twenty Thousand; in the name of all
  • the Angels or the Devils--which you prefer--work!” Thus Defarge of the
  • wine-shop, still at his gun, which had long grown hot.
  • “To me, women!” cried madame his wife. “What! We can kill as well as
  • the men when the place is taken!” And to her, with a shrill thirsty
  • cry, trooping women variously armed, but all armed alike in hunger and
  • revenge.
  • Cannon, muskets, fire and smoke; but, still the deep ditch, the single
  • drawbridge, the massive stone walls, and the eight great towers. Slight
  • displacements of the raging sea, made by the falling wounded. Flashing
  • weapons, blazing torches, smoking waggonloads of wet straw, hard work
  • at neighbouring barricades in all directions, shrieks, volleys,
  • execrations, bravery without stint, boom smash and rattle, and the
  • furious sounding of the living sea; but, still the deep ditch, and the
  • single drawbridge, and the massive stone walls, and the eight great
  • towers, and still Defarge of the wine-shop at his gun, grown doubly hot
  • by the service of Four fierce hours.
  • A white flag from within the fortress, and a parley--this dimly
  • perceptible through the raging storm, nothing audible in it--suddenly
  • the sea rose immeasurably wider and higher, and swept Defarge of the
  • wine-shop over the lowered drawbridge, past the massive stone outer
  • walls, in among the eight great towers surrendered!
  • So resistless was the force of the ocean bearing him on, that even to
  • draw his breath or turn his head was as impracticable as if he had been
  • struggling in the surf at the South Sea, until he was landed in the
  • outer courtyard of the Bastille. There, against an angle of a wall, he
  • made a struggle to look about him. Jacques Three was nearly at his side;
  • Madame Defarge, still heading some of her women, was visible in the
  • inner distance, and her knife was in her hand. Everywhere was tumult,
  • exultation, deafening and maniacal bewilderment, astounding noise, yet
  • furious dumb-show.
  • “The Prisoners!”
  • “The Records!”
  • “The secret cells!”
  • “The instruments of torture!”
  • “The Prisoners!”
  • Of all these cries, and ten thousand incoherences, “The Prisoners!” was
  • the cry most taken up by the sea that rushed in, as if there were an
  • eternity of people, as well as of time and space. When the foremost
  • billows rolled past, bearing the prison officers with them, and
  • threatening them all with instant death if any secret nook remained
  • undisclosed, Defarge laid his strong hand on the breast of one of
  • these men--a man with a grey head, who had a lighted torch in his
  • hand--separated him from the rest, and got him between himself and the
  • wall.
  • “Show me the North Tower!” said Defarge. “Quick!”
  • “I will faithfully,” replied the man, “if you will come with me. But
  • there is no one there.”
  • “What is the meaning of One Hundred and Five, North Tower?” asked
  • Defarge. “Quick!”
  • “The meaning, monsieur?”
  • “Does it mean a captive, or a place of captivity? Or do you mean that I
  • shall strike you dead?”
  • “Kill him!” croaked Jacques Three, who had come close up.
  • “Monsieur, it is a cell.”
  • “Show it me!”
  • “Pass this way, then.”
  • Jacques Three, with his usual craving on him, and evidently disappointed
  • by the dialogue taking a turn that did not seem to promise bloodshed,
  • held by Defarge's arm as he held by the turnkey's. Their three heads had
  • been close together during this brief discourse, and it had been as much
  • as they could do to hear one another, even then: so tremendous was the
  • noise of the living ocean, in its irruption into the Fortress, and
  • its inundation of the courts and passages and staircases. All around
  • outside, too, it beat the walls with a deep, hoarse roar, from which,
  • occasionally, some partial shouts of tumult broke and leaped into the
  • air like spray.
  • Through gloomy vaults where the light of day had never shone, past
  • hideous doors of dark dens and cages, down cavernous flights of steps,
  • and again up steep rugged ascents of stone and brick, more like dry
  • waterfalls than staircases, Defarge, the turnkey, and Jacques Three,
  • linked hand and arm, went with all the speed they could make. Here and
  • there, especially at first, the inundation started on them and swept by;
  • but when they had done descending, and were winding and climbing up a
  • tower, they were alone. Hemmed in here by the massive thickness of walls
  • and arches, the storm within the fortress and without was only audible
  • to them in a dull, subdued way, as if the noise out of which they had
  • come had almost destroyed their sense of hearing.
  • The turnkey stopped at a low door, put a key in a clashing lock, swung
  • the door slowly open, and said, as they all bent their heads and passed
  • in:
  • “One hundred and five, North Tower!”
  • There was a small, heavily-grated, unglazed window high in the wall,
  • with a stone screen before it, so that the sky could be only seen by
  • stooping low and looking up. There was a small chimney, heavily barred
  • across, a few feet within. There was a heap of old feathery wood-ashes
  • on the hearth. There was a stool, and table, and a straw bed. There were
  • the four blackened walls, and a rusted iron ring in one of them.
  • “Pass that torch slowly along these walls, that I may see them,” said
  • Defarge to the turnkey.
  • The man obeyed, and Defarge followed the light closely with his eyes.
  • “Stop!--Look here, Jacques!”
  • “A. M.!” croaked Jacques Three, as he read greedily.
  • “Alexandre Manette,” said Defarge in his ear, following the letters
  • with his swart forefinger, deeply engrained with gunpowder. “And here he
  • wrote 'a poor physician.' And it was he, without doubt, who scratched
  • a calendar on this stone. What is that in your hand? A crowbar? Give it
  • me!”
  • He had still the linstock of his gun in his own hand. He made a sudden
  • exchange of the two instruments, and turning on the worm-eaten stool and
  • table, beat them to pieces in a few blows.
  • “Hold the light higher!” he said, wrathfully, to the turnkey. “Look
  • among those fragments with care, Jacques. And see! Here is my knife,”
  • throwing it to him; “rip open that bed, and search the straw. Hold the
  • light higher, you!”
  • With a menacing look at the turnkey he crawled upon the hearth, and,
  • peering up the chimney, struck and prised at its sides with the crowbar,
  • and worked at the iron grating across it. In a few minutes, some mortar
  • and dust came dropping down, which he averted his face to avoid; and
  • in it, and in the old wood-ashes, and in a crevice in the chimney
  • into which his weapon had slipped or wrought itself, he groped with a
  • cautious touch.
  • “Nothing in the wood, and nothing in the straw, Jacques?”
  • “Nothing.”
  • “Let us collect them together, in the middle of the cell. So! Light
  • them, you!”
  • The turnkey fired the little pile, which blazed high and hot. Stooping
  • again to come out at the low-arched door, they left it burning, and
  • retraced their way to the courtyard; seeming to recover their sense
  • of hearing as they came down, until they were in the raging flood once
  • more.
  • They found it surging and tossing, in quest of Defarge himself. Saint
  • Antoine was clamorous to have its wine-shop keeper foremost in the guard
  • upon the governor who had defended the Bastille and shot the people.
  • Otherwise, the governor would not be marched to the Hotel de Ville for
  • judgment. Otherwise, the governor would escape, and the people's
  • blood (suddenly of some value, after many years of worthlessness) be
  • unavenged.
  • In the howling universe of passion and contention that seemed to
  • encompass this grim old officer conspicuous in his grey coat and red
  • decoration, there was but one quite steady figure, and that was a
  • woman's. “See, there is my husband!” she cried, pointing him out.
  • “See Defarge!” She stood immovable close to the grim old officer, and
  • remained immovable close to him; remained immovable close to him through
  • the streets, as Defarge and the rest bore him along; remained immovable
  • close to him when he was got near his destination, and began to
  • be struck at from behind; remained immovable close to him when the
  • long-gathering rain of stabs and blows fell heavy; was so close to him
  • when he dropped dead under it, that, suddenly animated, she put her foot
  • upon his neck, and with her cruel knife--long ready--hewed off his head.
  • The hour was come, when Saint Antoine was to execute his horrible idea
  • of hoisting up men for lamps to show what he could be and do. Saint
  • Antoine's blood was up, and the blood of tyranny and domination by the
  • iron hand was down--down on the steps of the Hotel de Ville where the
  • governor's body lay--down on the sole of the shoe of Madame Defarge
  • where she had trodden on the body to steady it for mutilation. “Lower
  • the lamp yonder!” cried Saint Antoine, after glaring round for a new
  • means of death; “here is one of his soldiers to be left on guard!” The
  • swinging sentinel was posted, and the sea rushed on.
  • The sea of black and threatening waters, and of destructive upheaving
  • of wave against wave, whose depths were yet unfathomed and whose forces
  • were yet unknown. The remorseless sea of turbulently swaying shapes,
  • voices of vengeance, and faces hardened in the furnaces of suffering
  • until the touch of pity could make no mark on them.
  • But, in the ocean of faces where every fierce and furious expression was
  • in vivid life, there were two groups of faces--each seven in number--so
  • fixedly contrasting with the rest, that never did sea roll which bore
  • more memorable wrecks with it. Seven faces of prisoners, suddenly
  • released by the storm that had burst their tomb, were carried high
  • overhead: all scared, all lost, all wondering and amazed, as if the Last
  • Day were come, and those who rejoiced around them were lost spirits.
  • Other seven faces there were, carried higher, seven dead faces, whose
  • drooping eyelids and half-seen eyes awaited the Last Day. Impassive
  • faces, yet with a suspended--not an abolished--expression on them;
  • faces, rather, in a fearful pause, as having yet to raise the dropped
  • lids of the eyes, and bear witness with the bloodless lips, “THOU DIDST
  • IT!”
  • Seven prisoners released, seven gory heads on pikes, the keys of the
  • accursed fortress of the eight strong towers, some discovered letters
  • and other memorials of prisoners of old time, long dead of broken
  • hearts,--such, and such--like, the loudly echoing footsteps of Saint
  • Antoine escort through the Paris streets in mid-July, one thousand seven
  • hundred and eighty-nine. Now, Heaven defeat the fancy of Lucie Darnay,
  • and keep these feet far out of her life! For, they are headlong, mad,
  • and dangerous; and in the years so long after the breaking of the cask
  • at Defarge's wine-shop door, they are not easily purified when once
  • stained red.
  • XXII. The Sea Still Rises
  • Haggard Saint Antoine had had only one exultant week, in which to soften
  • his modicum of hard and bitter bread to such extent as he could, with
  • the relish of fraternal embraces and congratulations, when Madame
  • Defarge sat at her counter, as usual, presiding over the customers.
  • Madame Defarge wore no rose in her head, for the great brotherhood of
  • Spies had become, even in one short week, extremely chary of trusting
  • themselves to the saint's mercies. The lamps across his streets had a
  • portentously elastic swing with them.
  • Madame Defarge, with her arms folded, sat in the morning light and heat,
  • contemplating the wine-shop and the street. In both, there were several
  • knots of loungers, squalid and miserable, but now with a manifest sense
  • of power enthroned on their distress. The raggedest nightcap, awry on
  • the wretchedest head, had this crooked significance in it: “I know how
  • hard it has grown for me, the wearer of this, to support life in myself;
  • but do you know how easy it has grown for me, the wearer of this, to
  • destroy life in you?” Every lean bare arm, that had been without work
  • before, had this work always ready for it now, that it could strike.
  • The fingers of the knitting women were vicious, with the experience that
  • they could tear. There was a change in the appearance of Saint Antoine;
  • the image had been hammering into this for hundreds of years, and the
  • last finishing blows had told mightily on the expression.
  • Madame Defarge sat observing it, with such suppressed approval as was
  • to be desired in the leader of the Saint Antoine women. One of her
  • sisterhood knitted beside her. The short, rather plump wife of a starved
  • grocer, and the mother of two children withal, this lieutenant had
  • already earned the complimentary name of The Vengeance.
  • “Hark!” said The Vengeance. “Listen, then! Who comes?”
  • As if a train of powder laid from the outermost bound of Saint Antoine
  • Quarter to the wine-shop door, had been suddenly fired, a fast-spreading
  • murmur came rushing along.
  • “It is Defarge,” said madame. “Silence, patriots!”
  • Defarge came in breathless, pulled off a red cap he wore, and looked
  • around him! “Listen, everywhere!” said madame again. “Listen to him!”
  • Defarge stood, panting, against a background of eager eyes and open
  • mouths, formed outside the door; all those within the wine-shop had
  • sprung to their feet.
  • “Say then, my husband. What is it?”
  • “News from the other world!”
  • “How, then?” cried madame, contemptuously. “The other world?”
  • “Does everybody here recall old Foulon, who told the famished people
  • that they might eat grass, and who died, and went to Hell?”
  • “Everybody!” from all throats.
  • “The news is of him. He is among us!”
  • “Among us!” from the universal throat again. “And dead?”
  • “Not dead! He feared us so much--and with reason--that he caused himself
  • to be represented as dead, and had a grand mock-funeral. But they have
  • found him alive, hiding in the country, and have brought him in. I have
  • seen him but now, on his way to the Hotel de Ville, a prisoner. I have
  • said that he had reason to fear us. Say all! _Had_ he reason?”
  • Wretched old sinner of more than threescore years and ten, if he had
  • never known it yet, he would have known it in his heart of hearts if he
  • could have heard the answering cry.
  • A moment of profound silence followed. Defarge and his wife looked
  • steadfastly at one another. The Vengeance stooped, and the jar of a drum
  • was heard as she moved it at her feet behind the counter.
  • “Patriots!” said Defarge, in a determined voice, “are we ready?”
  • Instantly Madame Defarge's knife was in her girdle; the drum was beating
  • in the streets, as if it and a drummer had flown together by magic; and
  • The Vengeance, uttering terrific shrieks, and flinging her arms about
  • her head like all the forty Furies at once, was tearing from house to
  • house, rousing the women.
  • The men were terrible, in the bloody-minded anger with which they looked
  • from windows, caught up what arms they had, and came pouring down into
  • the streets; but, the women were a sight to chill the boldest. From
  • such household occupations as their bare poverty yielded, from their
  • children, from their aged and their sick crouching on the bare ground
  • famished and naked, they ran out with streaming hair, urging one
  • another, and themselves, to madness with the wildest cries and actions.
  • Villain Foulon taken, my sister! Old Foulon taken, my mother! Miscreant
  • Foulon taken, my daughter! Then, a score of others ran into the midst of
  • these, beating their breasts, tearing their hair, and screaming, Foulon
  • alive! Foulon who told the starving people they might eat grass! Foulon
  • who told my old father that he might eat grass, when I had no bread
  • to give him! Foulon who told my baby it might suck grass, when these
  • breasts were dry with want! O mother of God, this Foulon! O Heaven our
  • suffering! Hear me, my dead baby and my withered father: I swear on my
  • knees, on these stones, to avenge you on Foulon! Husbands, and brothers,
  • and young men, Give us the blood of Foulon, Give us the head of Foulon,
  • Give us the heart of Foulon, Give us the body and soul of Foulon, Rend
  • Foulon to pieces, and dig him into the ground, that grass may grow from
  • him! With these cries, numbers of the women, lashed into blind frenzy,
  • whirled about, striking and tearing at their own friends until they
  • dropped into a passionate swoon, and were only saved by the men
  • belonging to them from being trampled under foot.
  • Nevertheless, not a moment was lost; not a moment! This Foulon was at
  • the Hotel de Ville, and might be loosed. Never, if Saint Antoine knew
  • his own sufferings, insults, and wrongs! Armed men and women flocked out
  • of the Quarter so fast, and drew even these last dregs after them with
  • such a force of suction, that within a quarter of an hour there was not
  • a human creature in Saint Antoine's bosom but a few old crones and the
  • wailing children.
  • No. They were all by that time choking the Hall of Examination where
  • this old man, ugly and wicked, was, and overflowing into the adjacent
  • open space and streets. The Defarges, husband and wife, The Vengeance,
  • and Jacques Three, were in the first press, and at no great distance
  • from him in the Hall.
  • “See!” cried madame, pointing with her knife. “See the old villain bound
  • with ropes. That was well done to tie a bunch of grass upon his back.
  • Ha, ha! That was well done. Let him eat it now!” Madame put her knife
  • under her arm, and clapped her hands as at a play.
  • The people immediately behind Madame Defarge, explaining the cause of
  • her satisfaction to those behind them, and those again explaining to
  • others, and those to others, the neighbouring streets resounded with the
  • clapping of hands. Similarly, during two or three hours of drawl,
  • and the winnowing of many bushels of words, Madame Defarge's frequent
  • expressions of impatience were taken up, with marvellous quickness, at
  • a distance: the more readily, because certain men who had by some
  • wonderful exercise of agility climbed up the external architecture
  • to look in from the windows, knew Madame Defarge well, and acted as a
  • telegraph between her and the crowd outside the building.
  • At length the sun rose so high that it struck a kindly ray as of hope or
  • protection, directly down upon the old prisoner's head. The favour was
  • too much to bear; in an instant the barrier of dust and chaff that had
  • stood surprisingly long, went to the winds, and Saint Antoine had got
  • him!
  • It was known directly, to the furthest confines of the crowd. Defarge
  • had but sprung over a railing and a table, and folded the miserable
  • wretch in a deadly embrace--Madame Defarge had but followed and turned
  • her hand in one of the ropes with which he was tied--The Vengeance and
  • Jacques Three were not yet up with them, and the men at the windows
  • had not yet swooped into the Hall, like birds of prey from their high
  • perches--when the cry seemed to go up, all over the city, “Bring him
  • out! Bring him to the lamp!”
  • Down, and up, and head foremost on the steps of the building; now, on
  • his knees; now, on his feet; now, on his back; dragged, and struck at,
  • and stifled by the bunches of grass and straw that were thrust into his
  • face by hundreds of hands; torn, bruised, panting, bleeding, yet always
  • entreating and beseeching for mercy; now full of vehement agony of
  • action, with a small clear space about him as the people drew one
  • another back that they might see; now, a log of dead wood drawn through
  • a forest of legs; he was hauled to the nearest street corner where one
  • of the fatal lamps swung, and there Madame Defarge let him go--as a cat
  • might have done to a mouse--and silently and composedly looked at him
  • while they made ready, and while he besought her: the women passionately
  • screeching at him all the time, and the men sternly calling out to have
  • him killed with grass in his mouth. Once, he went aloft, and the rope
  • broke, and they caught him shrieking; twice, he went aloft, and the rope
  • broke, and they caught him shrieking; then, the rope was merciful, and
  • held him, and his head was soon upon a pike, with grass enough in the
  • mouth for all Saint Antoine to dance at the sight of.
  • Nor was this the end of the day's bad work, for Saint Antoine so shouted
  • and danced his angry blood up, that it boiled again, on hearing when
  • the day closed in that the son-in-law of the despatched, another of the
  • people's enemies and insulters, was coming into Paris under a guard
  • five hundred strong, in cavalry alone. Saint Antoine wrote his crimes
  • on flaring sheets of paper, seized him--would have torn him out of the
  • breast of an army to bear Foulon company--set his head and heart on
  • pikes, and carried the three spoils of the day, in Wolf-procession
  • through the streets.
  • Not before dark night did the men and women come back to the children,
  • wailing and breadless. Then, the miserable bakers' shops were beset by
  • long files of them, patiently waiting to buy bad bread; and while
  • they waited with stomachs faint and empty, they beguiled the time by
  • embracing one another on the triumphs of the day, and achieving them
  • again in gossip. Gradually, these strings of ragged people shortened and
  • frayed away; and then poor lights began to shine in high windows, and
  • slender fires were made in the streets, at which neighbours cooked in
  • common, afterwards supping at their doors.
  • Scanty and insufficient suppers those, and innocent of meat, as of
  • most other sauce to wretched bread. Yet, human fellowship infused
  • some nourishment into the flinty viands, and struck some sparks of
  • cheerfulness out of them. Fathers and mothers who had had their full
  • share in the worst of the day, played gently with their meagre children;
  • and lovers, with such a world around them and before them, loved and
  • hoped.
  • It was almost morning, when Defarge's wine-shop parted with its last
  • knot of customers, and Monsieur Defarge said to madame his wife, in
  • husky tones, while fastening the door:
  • “At last it is come, my dear!”
  • “Eh well!” returned madame. “Almost.”
  • Saint Antoine slept, the Defarges slept: even The Vengeance slept with
  • her starved grocer, and the drum was at rest. The drum's was the
  • only voice in Saint Antoine that blood and hurry had not changed. The
  • Vengeance, as custodian of the drum, could have wakened him up and had
  • the same speech out of him as before the Bastille fell, or old Foulon
  • was seized; not so with the hoarse tones of the men and women in Saint
  • Antoine's bosom.
  • XXIII. Fire Rises
  • There was a change on the village where the fountain fell, and where
  • the mender of roads went forth daily to hammer out of the stones on the
  • highway such morsels of bread as might serve for patches to hold his
  • poor ignorant soul and his poor reduced body together. The prison on the
  • crag was not so dominant as of yore; there were soldiers to guard it,
  • but not many; there were officers to guard the soldiers, but not one of
  • them knew what his men would do--beyond this: that it would probably not
  • be what he was ordered.
  • Far and wide lay a ruined country, yielding nothing but desolation.
  • Every green leaf, every blade of grass and blade of grain, was as
  • shrivelled and poor as the miserable people. Everything was bowed down,
  • dejected, oppressed, and broken. Habitations, fences, domesticated
  • animals, men, women, children, and the soil that bore them--all worn
  • out.
  • Monseigneur (often a most worthy individual gentleman) was a national
  • blessing, gave a chivalrous tone to things, was a polite example of
  • luxurious and shining life, and a great deal more to equal purpose;
  • nevertheless, Monseigneur as a class had, somehow or other, brought
  • things to this. Strange that Creation, designed expressly for
  • Monseigneur, should be so soon wrung dry and squeezed out! There must
  • be something short-sighted in the eternal arrangements, surely! Thus it
  • was, however; and the last drop of blood having been extracted from the
  • flints, and the last screw of the rack having been turned so often that
  • its purchase crumbled, and it now turned and turned with nothing
  • to bite, Monseigneur began to run away from a phenomenon so low and
  • unaccountable.
  • But, this was not the change on the village, and on many a village like
  • it. For scores of years gone by, Monseigneur had squeezed it and wrung
  • it, and had seldom graced it with his presence except for the pleasures
  • of the chase--now, found in hunting the people; now, found in hunting
  • the beasts, for whose preservation Monseigneur made edifying spaces
  • of barbarous and barren wilderness. No. The change consisted in
  • the appearance of strange faces of low caste, rather than in the
  • disappearance of the high caste, chiselled, and otherwise beautified and
  • beautifying features of Monseigneur.
  • For, in these times, as the mender of roads worked, solitary, in the
  • dust, not often troubling himself to reflect that dust he was and
  • to dust he must return, being for the most part too much occupied in
  • thinking how little he had for supper and how much more he would eat if
  • he had it--in these times, as he raised his eyes from his lonely labour,
  • and viewed the prospect, he would see some rough figure approaching on
  • foot, the like of which was once a rarity in those parts, but was now
  • a frequent presence. As it advanced, the mender of roads would discern
  • without surprise, that it was a shaggy-haired man, of almost barbarian
  • aspect, tall, in wooden shoes that were clumsy even to the eyes of a
  • mender of roads, grim, rough, swart, steeped in the mud and dust of many
  • highways, dank with the marshy moisture of many low grounds, sprinkled
  • with the thorns and leaves and moss of many byways through woods.
  • Such a man came upon him, like a ghost, at noon in the July weather,
  • as he sat on his heap of stones under a bank, taking such shelter as he
  • could get from a shower of hail.
  • The man looked at him, looked at the village in the hollow, at the mill,
  • and at the prison on the crag. When he had identified these objects
  • in what benighted mind he had, he said, in a dialect that was just
  • intelligible:
  • “How goes it, Jacques?”
  • “All well, Jacques.”
  • “Touch then!”
  • They joined hands, and the man sat down on the heap of stones.
  • “No dinner?”
  • “Nothing but supper now,” said the mender of roads, with a hungry face.
  • “It is the fashion,” growled the man. “I meet no dinner anywhere.”
  • He took out a blackened pipe, filled it, lighted it with flint and
  • steel, pulled at it until it was in a bright glow: then, suddenly held
  • it from him and dropped something into it from between his finger and
  • thumb, that blazed and went out in a puff of smoke.
  • “Touch then.” It was the turn of the mender of roads to say it this
  • time, after observing these operations. They again joined hands.
  • “To-night?” said the mender of roads.
  • “To-night,” said the man, putting the pipe in his mouth.
  • “Where?”
  • “Here.”
  • He and the mender of roads sat on the heap of stones looking silently at
  • one another, with the hail driving in between them like a pigmy charge
  • of bayonets, until the sky began to clear over the village.
  • “Show me!” said the traveller then, moving to the brow of the hill.
  • “See!” returned the mender of roads, with extended finger. “You go down
  • here, and straight through the street, and past the fountain--”
  • “To the Devil with all that!” interrupted the other, rolling his eye
  • over the landscape. “_I_ go through no streets and past no fountains.
  • Well?”
  • “Well! About two leagues beyond the summit of that hill above the
  • village.”
  • “Good. When do you cease to work?”
  • “At sunset.”
  • “Will you wake me, before departing? I have walked two nights without
  • resting. Let me finish my pipe, and I shall sleep like a child. Will you
  • wake me?”
  • “Surely.”
  • The wayfarer smoked his pipe out, put it in his breast, slipped off his
  • great wooden shoes, and lay down on his back on the heap of stones. He
  • was fast asleep directly.
  • As the road-mender plied his dusty labour, and the hail-clouds, rolling
  • away, revealed bright bars and streaks of sky which were responded to
  • by silver gleams upon the landscape, the little man (who wore a red cap
  • now, in place of his blue one) seemed fascinated by the figure on the
  • heap of stones. His eyes were so often turned towards it, that he used
  • his tools mechanically, and, one would have said, to very poor account.
  • The bronze face, the shaggy black hair and beard, the coarse woollen
  • red cap, the rough medley dress of home-spun stuff and hairy skins of
  • beasts, the powerful frame attenuated by spare living, and the sullen
  • and desperate compression of the lips in sleep, inspired the mender
  • of roads with awe. The traveller had travelled far, and his feet were
  • footsore, and his ankles chafed and bleeding; his great shoes, stuffed
  • with leaves and grass, had been heavy to drag over the many long
  • leagues, and his clothes were chafed into holes, as he himself was into
  • sores. Stooping down beside him, the road-mender tried to get a peep at
  • secret weapons in his breast or where not; but, in vain, for he slept
  • with his arms crossed upon him, and set as resolutely as his lips.
  • Fortified towns with their stockades, guard-houses, gates, trenches, and
  • drawbridges, seemed to the mender of roads, to be so much air as against
  • this figure. And when he lifted his eyes from it to the horizon and
  • looked around, he saw in his small fancy similar figures, stopped by no
  • obstacle, tending to centres all over France.
  • The man slept on, indifferent to showers of hail and intervals of
  • brightness, to sunshine on his face and shadow, to the paltering lumps
  • of dull ice on his body and the diamonds into which the sun changed
  • them, until the sun was low in the west, and the sky was glowing. Then,
  • the mender of roads having got his tools together and all things ready
  • to go down into the village, roused him.
  • “Good!” said the sleeper, rising on his elbow. “Two leagues beyond the
  • summit of the hill?”
  • “About.”
  • “About. Good!”
  • The mender of roads went home, with the dust going on before him
  • according to the set of the wind, and was soon at the fountain,
  • squeezing himself in among the lean kine brought there to drink, and
  • appearing even to whisper to them in his whispering to all the village.
  • When the village had taken its poor supper, it did not creep to bed,
  • as it usually did, but came out of doors again, and remained there. A
  • curious contagion of whispering was upon it, and also, when it gathered
  • together at the fountain in the dark, another curious contagion of
  • looking expectantly at the sky in one direction only. Monsieur Gabelle,
  • chief functionary of the place, became uneasy; went out on his house-top
  • alone, and looked in that direction too; glanced down from behind his
  • chimneys at the darkening faces by the fountain below, and sent word to
  • the sacristan who kept the keys of the church, that there might be need
  • to ring the tocsin by-and-bye.
  • The night deepened. The trees environing the old chateau, keeping its
  • solitary state apart, moved in a rising wind, as though they threatened
  • the pile of building massive and dark in the gloom. Up the two terrace
  • flights of steps the rain ran wildly, and beat at the great door, like a
  • swift messenger rousing those within; uneasy rushes of wind went through
  • the hall, among the old spears and knives, and passed lamenting up the
  • stairs, and shook the curtains of the bed where the last Marquis
  • had slept. East, West, North, and South, through the woods, four
  • heavy-treading, unkempt figures crushed the high grass and cracked the
  • branches, striding on cautiously to come together in the courtyard. Four
  • lights broke out there, and moved away in different directions, and all
  • was black again.
  • But, not for long. Presently, the chateau began to make itself strangely
  • visible by some light of its own, as though it were growing luminous.
  • Then, a flickering streak played behind the architecture of the front,
  • picking out transparent places, and showing where balustrades, arches,
  • and windows were. Then it soared higher, and grew broader and brighter.
  • Soon, from a score of the great windows, flames burst forth, and the
  • stone faces awakened, stared out of fire.
  • A faint murmur arose about the house from the few people who were left
  • there, and there was a saddling of a horse and riding away. There was
  • spurring and splashing through the darkness, and bridle was drawn in the
  • space by the village fountain, and the horse in a foam stood at Monsieur
  • Gabelle's door. “Help, Gabelle! Help, every one!” The tocsin rang
  • impatiently, but other help (if that were any) there was none. The
  • mender of roads, and two hundred and fifty particular friends, stood
  • with folded arms at the fountain, looking at the pillar of fire in the
  • sky. “It must be forty feet high,” said they, grimly; and never moved.
  • The rider from the chateau, and the horse in a foam, clattered away
  • through the village, and galloped up the stony steep, to the prison on
  • the crag. At the gate, a group of officers were looking at the fire;
  • removed from them, a group of soldiers. “Help, gentlemen--officers! The
  • chateau is on fire; valuable objects may be saved from the flames by
  • timely aid! Help, help!” The officers looked towards the soldiers who
  • looked at the fire; gave no orders; and answered, with shrugs and biting
  • of lips, “It must burn.”
  • As the rider rattled down the hill again and through the street, the
  • village was illuminating. The mender of roads, and the two hundred and
  • fifty particular friends, inspired as one man and woman by the idea of
  • lighting up, had darted into their houses, and were putting candles in
  • every dull little pane of glass. The general scarcity of everything,
  • occasioned candles to be borrowed in a rather peremptory manner of
  • Monsieur Gabelle; and in a moment of reluctance and hesitation on
  • that functionary's part, the mender of roads, once so submissive to
  • authority, had remarked that carriages were good to make bonfires with,
  • and that post-horses would roast.
  • The chateau was left to itself to flame and burn. In the roaring and
  • raging of the conflagration, a red-hot wind, driving straight from the
  • infernal regions, seemed to be blowing the edifice away. With the rising
  • and falling of the blaze, the stone faces showed as if they were in
  • torment. When great masses of stone and timber fell, the face with the
  • two dints in the nose became obscured: anon struggled out of the smoke
  • again, as if it were the face of the cruel Marquis, burning at the stake
  • and contending with the fire.
  • The chateau burned; the nearest trees, laid hold of by the fire,
  • scorched and shrivelled; trees at a distance, fired by the four fierce
  • figures, begirt the blazing edifice with a new forest of smoke. Molten
  • lead and iron boiled in the marble basin of the fountain; the water ran
  • dry; the extinguisher tops of the towers vanished like ice before the
  • heat, and trickled down into four rugged wells of flame. Great rents and
  • splits branched out in the solid walls, like crystallisation; stupefied
  • birds wheeled about and dropped into the furnace; four fierce figures
  • trudged away, East, West, North, and South, along the night-enshrouded
  • roads, guided by the beacon they had lighted, towards their next
  • destination. The illuminated village had seized hold of the tocsin, and,
  • abolishing the lawful ringer, rang for joy.
  • Not only that; but the village, light-headed with famine, fire, and
  • bell-ringing, and bethinking itself that Monsieur Gabelle had to do with
  • the collection of rent and taxes--though it was but a small instalment
  • of taxes, and no rent at all, that Gabelle had got in those latter
  • days--became impatient for an interview with him, and, surrounding his
  • house, summoned him to come forth for personal conference. Whereupon,
  • Monsieur Gabelle did heavily bar his door, and retire to hold counsel
  • with himself. The result of that conference was, that Gabelle again
  • withdrew himself to his housetop behind his stack of chimneys; this time
  • resolved, if his door were broken in (he was a small Southern man
  • of retaliative temperament), to pitch himself head foremost over the
  • parapet, and crush a man or two below.
  • Probably, Monsieur Gabelle passed a long night up there, with the
  • distant chateau for fire and candle, and the beating at his door,
  • combined with the joy-ringing, for music; not to mention his having an
  • ill-omened lamp slung across the road before his posting-house gate,
  • which the village showed a lively inclination to displace in his favour.
  • A trying suspense, to be passing a whole summer night on the brink of
  • the black ocean, ready to take that plunge into it upon which Monsieur
  • Gabelle had resolved! But, the friendly dawn appearing at last, and the
  • rush-candles of the village guttering out, the people happily dispersed,
  • and Monsieur Gabelle came down bringing his life with him for that
  • while.
  • Within a hundred miles, and in the light of other fires, there were
  • other functionaries less fortunate, that night and other nights, whom
  • the rising sun found hanging across once-peaceful streets, where they
  • had been born and bred; also, there were other villagers and townspeople
  • less fortunate than the mender of roads and his fellows, upon whom the
  • functionaries and soldiery turned with success, and whom they strung up
  • in their turn. But, the fierce figures were steadily wending East, West,
  • North, and South, be that as it would; and whosoever hung, fire burned.
  • The altitude of the gallows that would turn to water and quench it,
  • no functionary, by any stretch of mathematics, was able to calculate
  • successfully.
  • XXIV. Drawn to the Loadstone Rock
  • In such risings of fire and risings of sea--the firm earth shaken by
  • the rushes of an angry ocean which had now no ebb, but was always on the
  • flow, higher and higher, to the terror and wonder of the beholders on
  • the shore--three years of tempest were consumed. Three more birthdays
  • of little Lucie had been woven by the golden thread into the peaceful
  • tissue of the life of her home.
  • Many a night and many a day had its inmates listened to the echoes in
  • the corner, with hearts that failed them when they heard the thronging
  • feet. For, the footsteps had become to their minds as the footsteps of
  • a people, tumultuous under a red flag and with their country declared in
  • danger, changed into wild beasts, by terrible enchantment long persisted
  • in.
  • Monseigneur, as a class, had dissociated himself from the phenomenon of
  • his not being appreciated: of his being so little wanted in France, as
  • to incur considerable danger of receiving his dismissal from it, and
  • this life together. Like the fabled rustic who raised the Devil with
  • infinite pains, and was so terrified at the sight of him that he could
  • ask the Enemy no question, but immediately fled; so, Monseigneur, after
  • boldly reading the Lord's Prayer backwards for a great number of years,
  • and performing many other potent spells for compelling the Evil One, no
  • sooner beheld him in his terrors than he took to his noble heels.
  • The shining Bull's Eye of the Court was gone, or it would have been the
  • mark for a hurricane of national bullets. It had never been a good
  • eye to see with--had long had the mote in it of Lucifer's pride,
  • Sardanapalus's luxury, and a mole's blindness--but it had dropped
  • out and was gone. The Court, from that exclusive inner circle to its
  • outermost rotten ring of intrigue, corruption, and dissimulation, was
  • all gone together. Royalty was gone; had been besieged in its Palace and
  • “suspended,” when the last tidings came over.
  • The August of the year one thousand seven hundred and ninety-two was
  • come, and Monseigneur was by this time scattered far and wide.
  • As was natural, the head-quarters and great gathering-place of
  • Monseigneur, in London, was Tellson's Bank. Spirits are supposed to
  • haunt the places where their bodies most resorted, and Monseigneur
  • without a guinea haunted the spot where his guineas used to be.
  • Moreover, it was the spot to which such French intelligence as was most
  • to be relied upon, came quickest. Again: Tellson's was a munificent
  • house, and extended great liberality to old customers who had fallen
  • from their high estate. Again: those nobles who had seen the coming
  • storm in time, and anticipating plunder or confiscation, had made
  • provident remittances to Tellson's, were always to be heard of there
  • by their needy brethren. To which it must be added that every new-comer
  • from France reported himself and his tidings at Tellson's, almost as
  • a matter of course. For such variety of reasons, Tellson's was at that
  • time, as to French intelligence, a kind of High Exchange; and this
  • was so well known to the public, and the inquiries made there were in
  • consequence so numerous, that Tellson's sometimes wrote the latest news
  • out in a line or so and posted it in the Bank windows, for all who ran
  • through Temple Bar to read.
  • On a steaming, misty afternoon, Mr. Lorry sat at his desk, and Charles
  • Darnay stood leaning on it, talking with him in a low voice. The
  • penitential den once set apart for interviews with the House, was now
  • the news-Exchange, and was filled to overflowing. It was within half an
  • hour or so of the time of closing.
  • “But, although you are the youngest man that ever lived,” said Charles
  • Darnay, rather hesitating, “I must still suggest to you--”
  • “I understand. That I am too old?” said Mr. Lorry.
  • “Unsettled weather, a long journey, uncertain means of travelling, a
  • disorganised country, a city that may not be even safe for you.”
  • “My dear Charles,” said Mr. Lorry, with cheerful confidence, “you touch
  • some of the reasons for my going: not for my staying away. It is safe
  • enough for me; nobody will care to interfere with an old fellow of hard
  • upon fourscore when there are so many people there much better worth
  • interfering with. As to its being a disorganised city, if it were not a
  • disorganised city there would be no occasion to send somebody from our
  • House here to our House there, who knows the city and the business, of
  • old, and is in Tellson's confidence. As to the uncertain travelling, the
  • long journey, and the winter weather, if I were not prepared to submit
  • myself to a few inconveniences for the sake of Tellson's, after all
  • these years, who ought to be?”
  • “I wish I were going myself,” said Charles Darnay, somewhat restlessly,
  • and like one thinking aloud.
  • “Indeed! You are a pretty fellow to object and advise!” exclaimed Mr.
  • Lorry. “You wish you were going yourself? And you a Frenchman born? You
  • are a wise counsellor.”
  • “My dear Mr. Lorry, it is because I am a Frenchman born, that the
  • thought (which I did not mean to utter here, however) has passed through
  • my mind often. One cannot help thinking, having had some sympathy for
  • the miserable people, and having abandoned something to them,” he spoke
  • here in his former thoughtful manner, “that one might be listened to,
  • and might have the power to persuade to some restraint. Only last night,
  • after you had left us, when I was talking to Lucie--”
  • “When you were talking to Lucie,” Mr. Lorry repeated. “Yes. I wonder you
  • are not ashamed to mention the name of Lucie! Wishing you were going to
  • France at this time of day!”
  • “However, I am not going,” said Charles Darnay, with a smile. “It is
  • more to the purpose that you say you are.”
  • “And I am, in plain reality. The truth is, my dear Charles,” Mr. Lorry
  • glanced at the distant House, and lowered his voice, “you can have no
  • conception of the difficulty with which our business is transacted, and
  • of the peril in which our books and papers over yonder are involved. The
  • Lord above knows what the compromising consequences would be to numbers
  • of people, if some of our documents were seized or destroyed; and they
  • might be, at any time, you know, for who can say that Paris is not set
  • afire to-day, or sacked to-morrow! Now, a judicious selection from these
  • with the least possible delay, and the burying of them, or otherwise
  • getting of them out of harm's way, is within the power (without loss of
  • precious time) of scarcely any one but myself, if any one. And shall
  • I hang back, when Tellson's knows this and says this--Tellson's, whose
  • bread I have eaten these sixty years--because I am a little stiff about
  • the joints? Why, I am a boy, sir, to half a dozen old codgers here!”
  • “How I admire the gallantry of your youthful spirit, Mr. Lorry.”
  • “Tut! Nonsense, sir!--And, my dear Charles,” said Mr. Lorry, glancing at
  • the House again, “you are to remember, that getting things out of
  • Paris at this present time, no matter what things, is next to an
  • impossibility. Papers and precious matters were this very day brought
  • to us here (I speak in strict confidence; it is not business-like to
  • whisper it, even to you), by the strangest bearers you can imagine,
  • every one of whom had his head hanging on by a single hair as he passed
  • the Barriers. At another time, our parcels would come and go, as easily
  • as in business-like Old England; but now, everything is stopped.”
  • “And do you really go to-night?”
  • “I really go to-night, for the case has become too pressing to admit of
  • delay.”
  • “And do you take no one with you?”
  • “All sorts of people have been proposed to me, but I will have nothing
  • to say to any of them. I intend to take Jerry. Jerry has been my
  • bodyguard on Sunday nights for a long time past and I am used to him.
  • Nobody will suspect Jerry of being anything but an English bull-dog, or
  • of having any design in his head but to fly at anybody who touches his
  • master.”
  • “I must say again that I heartily admire your gallantry and
  • youthfulness.”
  • “I must say again, nonsense, nonsense! When I have executed this little
  • commission, I shall, perhaps, accept Tellson's proposal to retire and
  • live at my ease. Time enough, then, to think about growing old.”
  • This dialogue had taken place at Mr. Lorry's usual desk, with
  • Monseigneur swarming within a yard or two of it, boastful of what he
  • would do to avenge himself on the rascal-people before long. It was too
  • much the way of Monseigneur under his reverses as a refugee, and it
  • was much too much the way of native British orthodoxy, to talk of this
  • terrible Revolution as if it were the only harvest ever known under
  • the skies that had not been sown--as if nothing had ever been done, or
  • omitted to be done, that had led to it--as if observers of the wretched
  • millions in France, and of the misused and perverted resources that
  • should have made them prosperous, had not seen it inevitably coming,
  • years before, and had not in plain words recorded what they saw. Such
  • vapouring, combined with the extravagant plots of Monseigneur for the
  • restoration of a state of things that had utterly exhausted itself,
  • and worn out Heaven and earth as well as itself, was hard to be endured
  • without some remonstrance by any sane man who knew the truth. And it was
  • such vapouring all about his ears, like a troublesome confusion of blood
  • in his own head, added to a latent uneasiness in his mind, which had
  • already made Charles Darnay restless, and which still kept him so.
  • Among the talkers, was Stryver, of the King's Bench Bar, far on his
  • way to state promotion, and, therefore, loud on the theme: broaching
  • to Monseigneur, his devices for blowing the people up and exterminating
  • them from the face of the earth, and doing without them: and for
  • accomplishing many similar objects akin in their nature to the abolition
  • of eagles by sprinkling salt on the tails of the race. Him, Darnay heard
  • with a particular feeling of objection; and Darnay stood divided between
  • going away that he might hear no more, and remaining to interpose his
  • word, when the thing that was to be, went on to shape itself out.
  • The House approached Mr. Lorry, and laying a soiled and unopened letter
  • before him, asked if he had yet discovered any traces of the person to
  • whom it was addressed? The House laid the letter down so close to Darnay
  • that he saw the direction--the more quickly because it was his own right
  • name. The address, turned into English, ran:
  • “Very pressing. To Monsieur heretofore the Marquis St. Evremonde, of
  • France. Confided to the cares of Messrs. Tellson and Co., Bankers,
  • London, England.”
  • On the marriage morning, Doctor Manette had made it his one urgent and
  • express request to Charles Darnay, that the secret of this name should
  • be--unless he, the Doctor, dissolved the obligation--kept inviolate
  • between them. Nobody else knew it to be his name; his own wife had no
  • suspicion of the fact; Mr. Lorry could have none.
  • “No,” said Mr. Lorry, in reply to the House; “I have referred it,
  • I think, to everybody now here, and no one can tell me where this
  • gentleman is to be found.”
  • The hands of the clock verging upon the hour of closing the Bank, there
  • was a general set of the current of talkers past Mr. Lorry's desk. He
  • held the letter out inquiringly; and Monseigneur looked at it, in the
  • person of this plotting and indignant refugee; and Monseigneur looked at
  • it in the person of that plotting and indignant refugee; and This, That,
  • and The Other, all had something disparaging to say, in French or in
  • English, concerning the Marquis who was not to be found.
  • “Nephew, I believe--but in any case degenerate successor--of the
  • polished Marquis who was murdered,” said one. “Happy to say, I never
  • knew him.”
  • “A craven who abandoned his post,” said another--this Monseigneur had
  • been got out of Paris, legs uppermost and half suffocated, in a load of
  • hay--“some years ago.”
  • “Infected with the new doctrines,” said a third, eyeing the direction
  • through his glass in passing; “set himself in opposition to the last
  • Marquis, abandoned the estates when he inherited them, and left them to
  • the ruffian herd. They will recompense him now, I hope, as he deserves.”
  • “Hey?” cried the blatant Stryver. “Did he though? Is that the sort of
  • fellow? Let us look at his infamous name. D--n the fellow!”
  • Darnay, unable to restrain himself any longer, touched Mr. Stryver on
  • the shoulder, and said:
  • “I know the fellow.”
  • “Do you, by Jupiter?” said Stryver. “I am sorry for it.”
  • “Why?”
  • “Why, Mr. Darnay? D'ye hear what he did? Don't ask, why, in these
  • times.”
  • “But I do ask why?”
  • “Then I tell you again, Mr. Darnay, I am sorry for it. I am sorry to
  • hear you putting any such extraordinary questions. Here is a fellow,
  • who, infected by the most pestilent and blasphemous code of devilry that
  • ever was known, abandoned his property to the vilest scum of the earth
  • that ever did murder by wholesale, and you ask me why I am sorry that a
  • man who instructs youth knows him? Well, but I'll answer you. I am sorry
  • because I believe there is contamination in such a scoundrel. That's
  • why.”
  • Mindful of the secret, Darnay with great difficulty checked himself, and
  • said: “You may not understand the gentleman.”
  • “I understand how to put _you_ in a corner, Mr. Darnay,” said Bully
  • Stryver, “and I'll do it. If this fellow is a gentleman, I _don't_
  • understand him. You may tell him so, with my compliments. You may also
  • tell him, from me, that after abandoning his worldly goods and position
  • to this butcherly mob, I wonder he is not at the head of them. But, no,
  • gentlemen,” said Stryver, looking all round, and snapping his fingers,
  • “I know something of human nature, and I tell you that you'll never
  • find a fellow like this fellow, trusting himself to the mercies of such
  • precious _protégés_. No, gentlemen; he'll always show 'em a clean pair
  • of heels very early in the scuffle, and sneak away.”
  • With those words, and a final snap of his fingers, Mr. Stryver
  • shouldered himself into Fleet-street, amidst the general approbation of
  • his hearers. Mr. Lorry and Charles Darnay were left alone at the desk,
  • in the general departure from the Bank.
  • “Will you take charge of the letter?” said Mr. Lorry. “You know where to
  • deliver it?”
  • “I do.”
  • “Will you undertake to explain, that we suppose it to have been
  • addressed here, on the chance of our knowing where to forward it, and
  • that it has been here some time?”
  • “I will do so. Do you start for Paris from here?”
  • “From here, at eight.”
  • “I will come back, to see you off.”
  • Very ill at ease with himself, and with Stryver and most other men,
  • Darnay made the best of his way into the quiet of the Temple, opened the
  • letter, and read it. These were its contents:
  • “Prison of the Abbaye, Paris.
  • “June 21, 1792. “MONSIEUR HERETOFORE THE MARQUIS.
  • “After having long been in danger of my life at the hands of the
  • village, I have been seized, with great violence and indignity, and
  • brought a long journey on foot to Paris. On the road I have suffered a
  • great deal. Nor is that all; my house has been destroyed--razed to the
  • ground.
  • “The crime for which I am imprisoned, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis,
  • and for which I shall be summoned before the tribunal, and shall lose my
  • life (without your so generous help), is, they tell me, treason against
  • the majesty of the people, in that I have acted against them for an
  • emigrant. It is in vain I represent that I have acted for them, and not
  • against, according to your commands. It is in vain I represent that,
  • before the sequestration of emigrant property, I had remitted the
  • imposts they had ceased to pay; that I had collected no rent; that I had
  • had recourse to no process. The only response is, that I have acted for
  • an emigrant, and where is that emigrant?
  • “Ah! most gracious Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, where is that
  • emigrant? I cry in my sleep where is he? I demand of Heaven, will he
  • not come to deliver me? No answer. Ah Monsieur heretofore the Marquis,
  • I send my desolate cry across the sea, hoping it may perhaps reach your
  • ears through the great bank of Tilson known at Paris!
  • “For the love of Heaven, of justice, of generosity, of the honour of
  • your noble name, I supplicate you, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, to
  • succour and release me. My fault is, that I have been true to you. Oh
  • Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I pray you be you true to me!
  • “From this prison here of horror, whence I every hour tend nearer and
  • nearer to destruction, I send you, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, the
  • assurance of my dolorous and unhappy service.
  • “Your afflicted,
  • “Gabelle.”
  • The latent uneasiness in Darnay's mind was roused to vigourous life
  • by this letter. The peril of an old servant and a good one, whose
  • only crime was fidelity to himself and his family, stared him so
  • reproachfully in the face, that, as he walked to and fro in the Temple
  • considering what to do, he almost hid his face from the passersby.
  • He knew very well, that in his horror of the deed which had culminated
  • the bad deeds and bad reputation of the old family house, in his
  • resentful suspicions of his uncle, and in the aversion with which his
  • conscience regarded the crumbling fabric that he was supposed to uphold,
  • he had acted imperfectly. He knew very well, that in his love for Lucie,
  • his renunciation of his social place, though by no means new to his own
  • mind, had been hurried and incomplete. He knew that he ought to have
  • systematically worked it out and supervised it, and that he had meant to
  • do it, and that it had never been done.
  • The happiness of his own chosen English home, the necessity of being
  • always actively employed, the swift changes and troubles of the time
  • which had followed on one another so fast, that the events of this week
  • annihilated the immature plans of last week, and the events of the week
  • following made all new again; he knew very well, that to the force of
  • these circumstances he had yielded:--not without disquiet, but still
  • without continuous and accumulating resistance. That he had watched
  • the times for a time of action, and that they had shifted and struggled
  • until the time had gone by, and the nobility were trooping from
  • France by every highway and byway, and their property was in course of
  • confiscation and destruction, and their very names were blotting out,
  • was as well known to himself as it could be to any new authority in
  • France that might impeach him for it.
  • But, he had oppressed no man, he had imprisoned no man; he was so
  • far from having harshly exacted payment of his dues, that he had
  • relinquished them of his own will, thrown himself on a world with no
  • favour in it, won his own private place there, and earned his own
  • bread. Monsieur Gabelle had held the impoverished and involved estate
  • on written instructions, to spare the people, to give them what little
  • there was to give--such fuel as the heavy creditors would let them have
  • in the winter, and such produce as could be saved from the same grip in
  • the summer--and no doubt he had put the fact in plea and proof, for his
  • own safety, so that it could not but appear now.
  • This favoured the desperate resolution Charles Darnay had begun to make,
  • that he would go to Paris.
  • Yes. Like the mariner in the old story, the winds and streams had driven
  • him within the influence of the Loadstone Rock, and it was drawing him
  • to itself, and he must go. Everything that arose before his mind drifted
  • him on, faster and faster, more and more steadily, to the terrible
  • attraction. His latent uneasiness had been, that bad aims were being
  • worked out in his own unhappy land by bad instruments, and that he who
  • could not fail to know that he was better than they, was not there,
  • trying to do something to stay bloodshed, and assert the claims of mercy
  • and humanity. With this uneasiness half stifled, and half reproaching
  • him, he had been brought to the pointed comparison of himself with the
  • brave old gentleman in whom duty was so strong; upon that comparison
  • (injurious to himself) had instantly followed the sneers of Monseigneur,
  • which had stung him bitterly, and those of Stryver, which above all were
  • coarse and galling, for old reasons. Upon those, had followed Gabelle's
  • letter: the appeal of an innocent prisoner, in danger of death, to his
  • justice, honour, and good name.
  • His resolution was made. He must go to Paris.
  • Yes. The Loadstone Rock was drawing him, and he must sail on, until he
  • struck. He knew of no rock; he saw hardly any danger. The intention
  • with which he had done what he had done, even although he had left
  • it incomplete, presented it before him in an aspect that would be
  • gratefully acknowledged in France on his presenting himself to assert
  • it. Then, that glorious vision of doing good, which is so often the
  • sanguine mirage of so many good minds, arose before him, and he even
  • saw himself in the illusion with some influence to guide this raging
  • Revolution that was running so fearfully wild.
  • As he walked to and fro with his resolution made, he considered that
  • neither Lucie nor her father must know of it until he was gone.
  • Lucie should be spared the pain of separation; and her father, always
  • reluctant to turn his thoughts towards the dangerous ground of old,
  • should come to the knowledge of the step, as a step taken, and not in
  • the balance of suspense and doubt. How much of the incompleteness of his
  • situation was referable to her father, through the painful anxiety
  • to avoid reviving old associations of France in his mind, he did not
  • discuss with himself. But, that circumstance too, had had its influence
  • in his course.
  • He walked to and fro, with thoughts very busy, until it was time to
  • return to Tellson's and take leave of Mr. Lorry. As soon as he arrived
  • in Paris he would present himself to this old friend, but he must say
  • nothing of his intention now.
  • A carriage with post-horses was ready at the Bank door, and Jerry was
  • booted and equipped.
  • “I have delivered that letter,” said Charles Darnay to Mr. Lorry. “I
  • would not consent to your being charged with any written answer, but
  • perhaps you will take a verbal one?”
  • “That I will, and readily,” said Mr. Lorry, “if it is not dangerous.”
  • “Not at all. Though it is to a prisoner in the Abbaye.”
  • “What is his name?” said Mr. Lorry, with his open pocket-book in his
  • hand.
  • “Gabelle.”
  • “Gabelle. And what is the message to the unfortunate Gabelle in prison?”
  • “Simply, 'that he has received the letter, and will come.'”
  • “Any time mentioned?”
  • “He will start upon his journey to-morrow night.”
  • “Any person mentioned?”
  • “No.”
  • He helped Mr. Lorry to wrap himself in a number of coats and cloaks,
  • and went out with him from the warm atmosphere of the old Bank, into the
  • misty air of Fleet-street. “My love to Lucie, and to little Lucie,” said
  • Mr. Lorry at parting, “and take precious care of them till I come back.”
  • Charles Darnay shook his head and doubtfully smiled, as the carriage
  • rolled away.
  • That night--it was the fourteenth of August--he sat up late, and wrote
  • two fervent letters; one was to Lucie, explaining the strong obligation
  • he was under to go to Paris, and showing her, at length, the reasons
  • that he had, for feeling confident that he could become involved in no
  • personal danger there; the other was to the Doctor, confiding Lucie and
  • their dear child to his care, and dwelling on the same topics with the
  • strongest assurances. To both, he wrote that he would despatch letters
  • in proof of his safety, immediately after his arrival.
  • It was a hard day, that day of being among them, with the first
  • reservation of their joint lives on his mind. It was a hard matter to
  • preserve the innocent deceit of which they were profoundly unsuspicious.
  • But, an affectionate glance at his wife, so happy and busy, made him
  • resolute not to tell her what impended (he had been half moved to do it,
  • so strange it was to him to act in anything without her quiet aid), and
  • the day passed quickly. Early in the evening he embraced her, and her
  • scarcely less dear namesake, pretending that he would return by-and-bye
  • (an imaginary engagement took him out, and he had secreted a valise
  • of clothes ready), and so he emerged into the heavy mist of the heavy
  • streets, with a heavier heart.
  • The unseen force was drawing him fast to itself, now, and all the tides
  • and winds were setting straight and strong towards it. He left his
  • two letters with a trusty porter, to be delivered half an hour before
  • midnight, and no sooner; took horse for Dover; and began his journey.
  • “For the love of Heaven, of justice, of generosity, of the honour of
  • your noble name!” was the poor prisoner's cry with which he strengthened
  • his sinking heart, as he left all that was dear on earth behind him, and
  • floated away for the Loadstone Rock.
  • The end of the second book.
  • Book the Third--the Track of a Storm
  • I. In Secret
  • The traveller fared slowly on his way, who fared towards Paris from
  • England in the autumn of the year one thousand seven hundred and
  • ninety-two. More than enough of bad roads, bad equipages, and bad
  • horses, he would have encountered to delay him, though the fallen and
  • unfortunate King of France had been upon his throne in all his glory;
  • but, the changed times were fraught with other obstacles than
  • these. Every town-gate and village taxing-house had its band of
  • citizen-patriots, with their national muskets in a most explosive state
  • of readiness, who stopped all comers and goers, cross-questioned them,
  • inspected their papers, looked for their names in lists of their own,
  • turned them back, or sent them on, or stopped them and laid them in
  • hold, as their capricious judgment or fancy deemed best for the dawning
  • Republic One and Indivisible, of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or
  • Death.
  • A very few French leagues of his journey were accomplished, when Charles
  • Darnay began to perceive that for him along these country roads there
  • was no hope of return until he should have been declared a good citizen
  • at Paris. Whatever might befall now, he must on to his journey's end.
  • Not a mean village closed upon him, not a common barrier dropped across
  • the road behind him, but he knew it to be another iron door in
  • the series that was barred between him and England. The universal
  • watchfulness so encompassed him, that if he had been taken in a net,
  • or were being forwarded to his destination in a cage, he could not have
  • felt his freedom more completely gone.
  • This universal watchfulness not only stopped him on the highway twenty
  • times in a stage, but retarded his progress twenty times in a day, by
  • riding after him and taking him back, riding before him and stopping him
  • by anticipation, riding with him and keeping him in charge. He had been
  • days upon his journey in France alone, when he went to bed tired out, in
  • a little town on the high road, still a long way from Paris.
  • Nothing but the production of the afflicted Gabelle's letter from his
  • prison of the Abbaye would have got him on so far. His difficulty at the
  • guard-house in this small place had been such, that he felt his journey
  • to have come to a crisis. And he was, therefore, as little surprised as
  • a man could be, to find himself awakened at the small inn to which he
  • had been remitted until morning, in the middle of the night.
  • Awakened by a timid local functionary and three armed patriots in rough
  • red caps and with pipes in their mouths, who sat down on the bed.
  • “Emigrant,” said the functionary, “I am going to send you on to Paris,
  • under an escort.”
  • “Citizen, I desire nothing more than to get to Paris, though I could
  • dispense with the escort.”
  • “Silence!” growled a red-cap, striking at the coverlet with the butt-end
  • of his musket. “Peace, aristocrat!”
  • “It is as the good patriot says,” observed the timid functionary. “You
  • are an aristocrat, and must have an escort--and must pay for it.”
  • “I have no choice,” said Charles Darnay.
  • “Choice! Listen to him!” cried the same scowling red-cap. “As if it was
  • not a favour to be protected from the lamp-iron!”
  • “It is always as the good patriot says,” observed the functionary. “Rise
  • and dress yourself, emigrant.”
  • Darnay complied, and was taken back to the guard-house, where other
  • patriots in rough red caps were smoking, drinking, and sleeping, by
  • a watch-fire. Here he paid a heavy price for his escort, and hence he
  • started with it on the wet, wet roads at three o'clock in the morning.
  • The escort were two mounted patriots in red caps and tri-coloured
  • cockades, armed with national muskets and sabres, who rode one on either
  • side of him.
  • The escorted governed his own horse, but a loose line was attached to
  • his bridle, the end of which one of the patriots kept girded round his
  • wrist. In this state they set forth with the sharp rain driving in their
  • faces: clattering at a heavy dragoon trot over the uneven town pavement,
  • and out upon the mire-deep roads. In this state they traversed without
  • change, except of horses and pace, all the mire-deep leagues that lay
  • between them and the capital.
  • They travelled in the night, halting an hour or two after daybreak, and
  • lying by until the twilight fell. The escort were so wretchedly clothed,
  • that they twisted straw round their bare legs, and thatched their ragged
  • shoulders to keep the wet off. Apart from the personal discomfort of
  • being so attended, and apart from such considerations of present danger
  • as arose from one of the patriots being chronically drunk, and carrying
  • his musket very recklessly, Charles Darnay did not allow the restraint
  • that was laid upon him to awaken any serious fears in his breast; for,
  • he reasoned with himself that it could have no reference to the merits
  • of an individual case that was not yet stated, and of representations,
  • confirmable by the prisoner in the Abbaye, that were not yet made.
  • But when they came to the town of Beauvais--which they did at eventide,
  • when the streets were filled with people--he could not conceal from
  • himself that the aspect of affairs was very alarming. An ominous crowd
  • gathered to see him dismount of the posting-yard, and many voices called
  • out loudly, “Down with the emigrant!”
  • He stopped in the act of swinging himself out of his saddle, and,
  • resuming it as his safest place, said:
  • “Emigrant, my friends! Do you not see me here, in France, of my own
  • will?”
  • “You are a cursed emigrant,” cried a farrier, making at him in a
  • furious manner through the press, hammer in hand; “and you are a cursed
  • aristocrat!”
  • The postmaster interposed himself between this man and the rider's
  • bridle (at which he was evidently making), and soothingly said, “Let him
  • be; let him be! He will be judged at Paris.”
  • “Judged!” repeated the farrier, swinging his hammer. “Ay! and condemned
  • as a traitor.” At this the crowd roared approval.
  • Checking the postmaster, who was for turning his horse's head to the
  • yard (the drunken patriot sat composedly in his saddle looking on, with
  • the line round his wrist), Darnay said, as soon as he could make his
  • voice heard:
  • “Friends, you deceive yourselves, or you are deceived. I am not a
  • traitor.”
  • “He lies!” cried the smith. “He is a traitor since the decree. His life
  • is forfeit to the people. His cursed life is not his own!”
  • At the instant when Darnay saw a rush in the eyes of the crowd, which
  • another instant would have brought upon him, the postmaster turned his
  • horse into the yard, the escort rode in close upon his horse's flanks,
  • and the postmaster shut and barred the crazy double gates. The farrier
  • struck a blow upon them with his hammer, and the crowd groaned; but, no
  • more was done.
  • “What is this decree that the smith spoke of?” Darnay asked the
  • postmaster, when he had thanked him, and stood beside him in the yard.
  • “Truly, a decree for selling the property of emigrants.”
  • “When passed?”
  • “On the fourteenth.”
  • “The day I left England!”
  • “Everybody says it is but one of several, and that there will be
  • others--if there are not already--banishing all emigrants, and
  • condemning all to death who return. That is what he meant when he said
  • your life was not your own.”
  • “But there are no such decrees yet?”
  • “What do I know!” said the postmaster, shrugging his shoulders; “there
  • may be, or there will be. It is all the same. What would you have?”
  • They rested on some straw in a loft until the middle of the night, and
  • then rode forward again when all the town was asleep. Among the many
  • wild changes observable on familiar things which made this wild ride
  • unreal, not the least was the seeming rarity of sleep. After long and
  • lonely spurring over dreary roads, they would come to a cluster of poor
  • cottages, not steeped in darkness, but all glittering with lights, and
  • would find the people, in a ghostly manner in the dead of the night,
  • circling hand in hand round a shrivelled tree of Liberty, or all drawn
  • up together singing a Liberty song. Happily, however, there was sleep in
  • Beauvais that night to help them out of it and they passed on once more
  • into solitude and loneliness: jingling through the untimely cold and
  • wet, among impoverished fields that had yielded no fruits of the earth
  • that year, diversified by the blackened remains of burnt houses, and by
  • the sudden emergence from ambuscade, and sharp reining up across their
  • way, of patriot patrols on the watch on all the roads.
  • Daylight at last found them before the wall of Paris. The barrier was
  • closed and strongly guarded when they rode up to it.
  • “Where are the papers of this prisoner?” demanded a resolute-looking man
  • in authority, who was summoned out by the guard.
  • Naturally struck by the disagreeable word, Charles Darnay requested the
  • speaker to take notice that he was a free traveller and French citizen,
  • in charge of an escort which the disturbed state of the country had
  • imposed upon him, and which he had paid for.
  • “Where,” repeated the same personage, without taking any heed of him
  • whatever, “are the papers of this prisoner?”
  • The drunken patriot had them in his cap, and produced them. Casting his
  • eyes over Gabelle's letter, the same personage in authority showed some
  • disorder and surprise, and looked at Darnay with a close attention.
  • He left escort and escorted without saying a word, however, and went
  • into the guard-room; meanwhile, they sat upon their horses outside the
  • gate. Looking about him while in this state of suspense, Charles
  • Darnay observed that the gate was held by a mixed guard of soldiers and
  • patriots, the latter far outnumbering the former; and that while ingress
  • into the city for peasants' carts bringing in supplies, and for similar
  • traffic and traffickers, was easy enough, egress, even for the homeliest
  • people, was very difficult. A numerous medley of men and women, not
  • to mention beasts and vehicles of various sorts, was waiting to issue
  • forth; but, the previous identification was so strict, that they
  • filtered through the barrier very slowly. Some of these people knew
  • their turn for examination to be so far off, that they lay down on the
  • ground to sleep or smoke, while others talked together, or loitered
  • about. The red cap and tri-colour cockade were universal, both among men
  • and women.
  • When he had sat in his saddle some half-hour, taking note of these
  • things, Darnay found himself confronted by the same man in authority,
  • who directed the guard to open the barrier. Then he delivered to the
  • escort, drunk and sober, a receipt for the escorted, and requested him
  • to dismount. He did so, and the two patriots, leading his tired horse,
  • turned and rode away without entering the city.
  • He accompanied his conductor into a guard-room, smelling of common wine
  • and tobacco, where certain soldiers and patriots, asleep and awake,
  • drunk and sober, and in various neutral states between sleeping and
  • waking, drunkenness and sobriety, were standing and lying about. The
  • light in the guard-house, half derived from the waning oil-lamps of
  • the night, and half from the overcast day, was in a correspondingly
  • uncertain condition. Some registers were lying open on a desk, and an
  • officer of a coarse, dark aspect, presided over these.
  • “Citizen Defarge,” said he to Darnay's conductor, as he took a slip of
  • paper to write on. “Is this the emigrant Evremonde?”
  • “This is the man.”
  • “Your age, Evremonde?”
  • “Thirty-seven.”
  • “Married, Evremonde?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Where married?”
  • “In England.”
  • “Without doubt. Where is your wife, Evremonde?”
  • “In England.”
  • “Without doubt. You are consigned, Evremonde, to the prison of La
  • Force.”
  • “Just Heaven!” exclaimed Darnay. “Under what law, and for what offence?”
  • The officer looked up from his slip of paper for a moment.
  • “We have new laws, Evremonde, and new offences, since you were here.” He
  • said it with a hard smile, and went on writing.
  • “I entreat you to observe that I have come here voluntarily, in response
  • to that written appeal of a fellow-countryman which lies before you. I
  • demand no more than the opportunity to do so without delay. Is not that
  • my right?”
  • “Emigrants have no rights, Evremonde,” was the stolid reply. The officer
  • wrote until he had finished, read over to himself what he had written,
  • sanded it, and handed it to Defarge, with the words “In secret.”
  • Defarge motioned with the paper to the prisoner that he must accompany
  • him. The prisoner obeyed, and a guard of two armed patriots attended
  • them.
  • “Is it you,” said Defarge, in a low voice, as they went down the
  • guardhouse steps and turned into Paris, “who married the daughter of
  • Doctor Manette, once a prisoner in the Bastille that is no more?”
  • “Yes,” replied Darnay, looking at him with surprise.
  • “My name is Defarge, and I keep a wine-shop in the Quarter Saint
  • Antoine. Possibly you have heard of me.”
  • “My wife came to your house to reclaim her father? Yes!”
  • The word “wife” seemed to serve as a gloomy reminder to Defarge, to say
  • with sudden impatience, “In the name of that sharp female newly-born,
  • and called La Guillotine, why did you come to France?”
  • “You heard me say why, a minute ago. Do you not believe it is the
  • truth?”
  • “A bad truth for you,” said Defarge, speaking with knitted brows, and
  • looking straight before him.
  • “Indeed I am lost here. All here is so unprecedented, so changed, so
  • sudden and unfair, that I am absolutely lost. Will you render me a
  • little help?”
  • “None.” Defarge spoke, always looking straight before him.
  • “Will you answer me a single question?”
  • “Perhaps. According to its nature. You can say what it is.”
  • “In this prison that I am going to so unjustly, shall I have some free
  • communication with the world outside?”
  • “You will see.”
  • “I am not to be buried there, prejudged, and without any means of
  • presenting my case?”
  • “You will see. But, what then? Other people have been similarly buried
  • in worse prisons, before now.”
  • “But never by me, Citizen Defarge.”
  • Defarge glanced darkly at him for answer, and walked on in a steady
  • and set silence. The deeper he sank into this silence, the fainter hope
  • there was--or so Darnay thought--of his softening in any slight degree.
  • He, therefore, made haste to say:
  • “It is of the utmost importance to me (you know, Citizen, even better
  • than I, of how much importance), that I should be able to communicate to
  • Mr. Lorry of Tellson's Bank, an English gentleman who is now in Paris,
  • the simple fact, without comment, that I have been thrown into the
  • prison of La Force. Will you cause that to be done for me?”
  • “I will do,” Defarge doggedly rejoined, “nothing for you. My duty is to
  • my country and the People. I am the sworn servant of both, against you.
  • I will do nothing for you.”
  • Charles Darnay felt it hopeless to entreat him further, and his pride
  • was touched besides. As they walked on in silence, he could not but see
  • how used the people were to the spectacle of prisoners passing along the
  • streets. The very children scarcely noticed him. A few passers turned
  • their heads, and a few shook their fingers at him as an aristocrat;
  • otherwise, that a man in good clothes should be going to prison, was no
  • more remarkable than that a labourer in working clothes should be
  • going to work. In one narrow, dark, and dirty street through which they
  • passed, an excited orator, mounted on a stool, was addressing an excited
  • audience on the crimes against the people, of the king and the royal
  • family. The few words that he caught from this man's lips, first made
  • it known to Charles Darnay that the king was in prison, and that the
  • foreign ambassadors had one and all left Paris. On the road (except at
  • Beauvais) he had heard absolutely nothing. The escort and the universal
  • watchfulness had completely isolated him.
  • That he had fallen among far greater dangers than those which had
  • developed themselves when he left England, he of course knew now. That
  • perils had thickened about him fast, and might thicken faster and faster
  • yet, he of course knew now. He could not but admit to himself that he
  • might not have made this journey, if he could have foreseen the events
  • of a few days. And yet his misgivings were not so dark as, imagined by
  • the light of this later time, they would appear. Troubled as the future
  • was, it was the unknown future, and in its obscurity there was ignorant
  • hope. The horrible massacre, days and nights long, which, within a few
  • rounds of the clock, was to set a great mark of blood upon the blessed
  • garnering time of harvest, was as far out of his knowledge as if it had
  • been a hundred thousand years away. The “sharp female newly-born, and
  • called La Guillotine,” was hardly known to him, or to the generality
  • of people, by name. The frightful deeds that were to be soon done, were
  • probably unimagined at that time in the brains of the doers. How could
  • they have a place in the shadowy conceptions of a gentle mind?
  • Of unjust treatment in detention and hardship, and in cruel separation
  • from his wife and child, he foreshadowed the likelihood, or the
  • certainty; but, beyond this, he dreaded nothing distinctly. With this on
  • his mind, which was enough to carry into a dreary prison courtyard, he
  • arrived at the prison of La Force.
  • A man with a bloated face opened the strong wicket, to whom Defarge
  • presented “The Emigrant Evremonde.”
  • “What the Devil! How many more of them!” exclaimed the man with the
  • bloated face.
  • Defarge took his receipt without noticing the exclamation, and withdrew,
  • with his two fellow-patriots.
  • “What the Devil, I say again!” exclaimed the gaoler, left with his wife.
  • “How many more!”
  • The gaoler's wife, being provided with no answer to the question, merely
  • replied, “One must have patience, my dear!” Three turnkeys who entered
  • responsive to a bell she rang, echoed the sentiment, and one added, “For
  • the love of Liberty;” which sounded in that place like an inappropriate
  • conclusion.
  • The prison of La Force was a gloomy prison, dark and filthy, and with a
  • horrible smell of foul sleep in it. Extraordinary how soon the noisome
  • flavour of imprisoned sleep, becomes manifest in all such places that
  • are ill cared for!
  • “In secret, too,” grumbled the gaoler, looking at the written paper. “As
  • if I was not already full to bursting!”
  • He stuck the paper on a file, in an ill-humour, and Charles Darnay
  • awaited his further pleasure for half an hour: sometimes, pacing to and
  • fro in the strong arched room: sometimes, resting on a stone seat: in
  • either case detained to be imprinted on the memory of the chief and his
  • subordinates.
  • “Come!” said the chief, at length taking up his keys, “come with me,
  • emigrant.”
  • Through the dismal prison twilight, his new charge accompanied him by
  • corridor and staircase, many doors clanging and locking behind them,
  • until they came into a large, low, vaulted chamber, crowded with
  • prisoners of both sexes. The women were seated at a long table, reading
  • and writing, knitting, sewing, and embroidering; the men were for the
  • most part standing behind their chairs, or lingering up and down the
  • room.
  • In the instinctive association of prisoners with shameful crime and
  • disgrace, the new-comer recoiled from this company. But the crowning
  • unreality of his long unreal ride, was, their all at once rising to
  • receive him, with every refinement of manner known to the time, and with
  • all the engaging graces and courtesies of life.
  • So strangely clouded were these refinements by the prison manners and
  • gloom, so spectral did they become in the inappropriate squalor and
  • misery through which they were seen, that Charles Darnay seemed to stand
  • in a company of the dead. Ghosts all! The ghost of beauty, the ghost
  • of stateliness, the ghost of elegance, the ghost of pride, the ghost of
  • frivolity, the ghost of wit, the ghost of youth, the ghost of age, all
  • waiting their dismissal from the desolate shore, all turning on him eyes
  • that were changed by the death they had died in coming there.
  • It struck him motionless. The gaoler standing at his side, and the other
  • gaolers moving about, who would have been well enough as to appearance
  • in the ordinary exercise of their functions, looked so extravagantly
  • coarse contrasted with sorrowing mothers and blooming daughters who were
  • there--with the apparitions of the coquette, the young beauty, and the
  • mature woman delicately bred--that the inversion of all experience and
  • likelihood which the scene of shadows presented, was heightened to its
  • utmost. Surely, ghosts all. Surely, the long unreal ride some progress
  • of disease that had brought him to these gloomy shades!
  • “In the name of the assembled companions in misfortune,” said a
  • gentleman of courtly appearance and address, coming forward, “I have the
  • honour of giving you welcome to La Force, and of condoling with you
  • on the calamity that has brought you among us. May it soon terminate
  • happily! It would be an impertinence elsewhere, but it is not so here,
  • to ask your name and condition?”
  • Charles Darnay roused himself, and gave the required information, in
  • words as suitable as he could find.
  • “But I hope,” said the gentleman, following the chief gaoler with his
  • eyes, who moved across the room, “that you are not in secret?”
  • “I do not understand the meaning of the term, but I have heard them say
  • so.”
  • “Ah, what a pity! We so much regret it! But take courage; several
  • members of our society have been in secret, at first, and it has lasted
  • but a short time.” Then he added, raising his voice, “I grieve to inform
  • the society--in secret.”
  • There was a murmur of commiseration as Charles Darnay crossed the room
  • to a grated door where the gaoler awaited him, and many voices--among
  • which, the soft and compassionate voices of women were conspicuous--gave
  • him good wishes and encouragement. He turned at the grated door, to
  • render the thanks of his heart; it closed under the gaoler's hand; and
  • the apparitions vanished from his sight forever.
  • The wicket opened on a stone staircase, leading upward. When they had
  • ascended forty steps (the prisoner of half an hour already counted
  • them), the gaoler opened a low black door, and they passed into a
  • solitary cell. It struck cold and damp, but was not dark.
  • “Yours,” said the gaoler.
  • “Why am I confined alone?”
  • “How do I know!”
  • “I can buy pen, ink, and paper?”
  • “Such are not my orders. You will be visited, and can ask then. At
  • present, you may buy your food, and nothing more.”
  • There were in the cell, a chair, a table, and a straw mattress. As
  • the gaoler made a general inspection of these objects, and of the four
  • walls, before going out, a wandering fancy wandered through the mind of
  • the prisoner leaning against the wall opposite to him, that this gaoler
  • was so unwholesomely bloated, both in face and person, as to look like
  • a man who had been drowned and filled with water. When the gaoler was
  • gone, he thought in the same wandering way, “Now am I left, as if I were
  • dead.” Stopping then, to look down at the mattress, he turned from it
  • with a sick feeling, and thought, “And here in these crawling creatures
  • is the first condition of the body after death.”
  • “Five paces by four and a half, five paces by four and a half, five
  • paces by four and a half.” The prisoner walked to and fro in his cell,
  • counting its measurement, and the roar of the city arose like muffled
  • drums with a wild swell of voices added to them. “He made shoes, he made
  • shoes, he made shoes.” The prisoner counted the measurement again, and
  • paced faster, to draw his mind with him from that latter repetition.
  • “The ghosts that vanished when the wicket closed. There was one among
  • them, the appearance of a lady dressed in black, who was leaning in the
  • embrasure of a window, and she had a light shining upon her golden
  • hair, and she looked like * * * * Let us ride on again, for God's sake,
  • through the illuminated villages with the people all awake! * * * * He
  • made shoes, he made shoes, he made shoes. * * * * Five paces by four and
  • a half.” With such scraps tossing and rolling upward from the depths of
  • his mind, the prisoner walked faster and faster, obstinately counting
  • and counting; and the roar of the city changed to this extent--that it
  • still rolled in like muffled drums, but with the wail of voices that he
  • knew, in the swell that rose above them.
  • II. The Grindstone
  • Tellson's Bank, established in the Saint Germain Quarter of Paris, was
  • in a wing of a large house, approached by a courtyard and shut off from
  • the street by a high wall and a strong gate. The house belonged to
  • a great nobleman who had lived in it until he made a flight from the
  • troubles, in his own cook's dress, and got across the borders. A
  • mere beast of the chase flying from hunters, he was still in his
  • metempsychosis no other than the same Monseigneur, the preparation
  • of whose chocolate for whose lips had once occupied three strong men
  • besides the cook in question.
  • Monseigneur gone, and the three strong men absolving themselves from the
  • sin of having drawn his high wages, by being more than ready and
  • willing to cut his throat on the altar of the dawning Republic one and
  • indivisible of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death, Monseigneur's
  • house had been first sequestrated, and then confiscated. For, all
  • things moved so fast, and decree followed decree with that fierce
  • precipitation, that now upon the third night of the autumn month
  • of September, patriot emissaries of the law were in possession of
  • Monseigneur's house, and had marked it with the tri-colour, and were
  • drinking brandy in its state apartments.
  • A place of business in London like Tellson's place of business in Paris,
  • would soon have driven the House out of its mind and into the Gazette.
  • For, what would staid British responsibility and respectability have
  • said to orange-trees in boxes in a Bank courtyard, and even to a Cupid
  • over the counter? Yet such things were. Tellson's had whitewashed the
  • Cupid, but he was still to be seen on the ceiling, in the coolest
  • linen, aiming (as he very often does) at money from morning to
  • night. Bankruptcy must inevitably have come of this young Pagan, in
  • Lombard-street, London, and also of a curtained alcove in the rear of
  • the immortal boy, and also of a looking-glass let into the wall, and
  • also of clerks not at all old, who danced in public on the slightest
  • provocation. Yet, a French Tellson's could get on with these things
  • exceedingly well, and, as long as the times held together, no man had
  • taken fright at them, and drawn out his money.
  • What money would be drawn out of Tellson's henceforth, and what would
  • lie there, lost and forgotten; what plate and jewels would tarnish in
  • Tellson's hiding-places, while the depositors rusted in prisons,
  • and when they should have violently perished; how many accounts with
  • Tellson's never to be balanced in this world, must be carried over into
  • the next; no man could have said, that night, any more than Mr. Jarvis
  • Lorry could, though he thought heavily of these questions. He sat by
  • a newly-lighted wood fire (the blighted and unfruitful year was
  • prematurely cold), and on his honest and courageous face there was a
  • deeper shade than the pendent lamp could throw, or any object in the
  • room distortedly reflect--a shade of horror.
  • He occupied rooms in the Bank, in his fidelity to the House of which
  • he had grown to be a part, like strong root-ivy. It chanced that they
  • derived a kind of security from the patriotic occupation of the main
  • building, but the true-hearted old gentleman never calculated about
  • that. All such circumstances were indifferent to him, so that he did
  • his duty. On the opposite side of the courtyard, under a colonnade,
  • was extensive standing--for carriages--where, indeed, some carriages
  • of Monseigneur yet stood. Against two of the pillars were fastened two
  • great flaring flambeaux, and in the light of these, standing out in the
  • open air, was a large grindstone: a roughly mounted thing which appeared
  • to have hurriedly been brought there from some neighbouring smithy,
  • or other workshop. Rising and looking out of window at these harmless
  • objects, Mr. Lorry shivered, and retired to his seat by the fire. He had
  • opened, not only the glass window, but the lattice blind outside it, and
  • he had closed both again, and he shivered through his frame.
  • From the streets beyond the high wall and the strong gate, there came
  • the usual night hum of the city, with now and then an indescribable ring
  • in it, weird and unearthly, as if some unwonted sounds of a terrible
  • nature were going up to Heaven.
  • “Thank God,” said Mr. Lorry, clasping his hands, “that no one near and
  • dear to me is in this dreadful town to-night. May He have mercy on all
  • who are in danger!”
  • Soon afterwards, the bell at the great gate sounded, and he thought,
  • “They have come back!” and sat listening. But, there was no loud
  • irruption into the courtyard, as he had expected, and he heard the gate
  • clash again, and all was quiet.
  • The nervousness and dread that were upon him inspired that vague
  • uneasiness respecting the Bank, which a great change would naturally
  • awaken, with such feelings roused. It was well guarded, and he got up to
  • go among the trusty people who were watching it, when his door suddenly
  • opened, and two figures rushed in, at sight of which he fell back in
  • amazement.
  • Lucie and her father! Lucie with her arms stretched out to him, and with
  • that old look of earnestness so concentrated and intensified, that it
  • seemed as though it had been stamped upon her face expressly to give
  • force and power to it in this one passage of her life.
  • “What is this?” cried Mr. Lorry, breathless and confused. “What is the
  • matter? Lucie! Manette! What has happened? What has brought you here?
  • What is it?”
  • With the look fixed upon him, in her paleness and wildness, she panted
  • out in his arms, imploringly, “O my dear friend! My husband!”
  • “Your husband, Lucie?”
  • “Charles.”
  • “What of Charles?”
  • “Here.
  • “Here, in Paris?”
  • “Has been here some days--three or four--I don't know how many--I can't
  • collect my thoughts. An errand of generosity brought him here unknown to
  • us; he was stopped at the barrier, and sent to prison.”
  • The old man uttered an irrepressible cry. Almost at the same moment, the
  • bell of the great gate rang again, and a loud noise of feet and voices
  • came pouring into the courtyard.
  • “What is that noise?” said the Doctor, turning towards the window.
  • “Don't look!” cried Mr. Lorry. “Don't look out! Manette, for your life,
  • don't touch the blind!”
  • The Doctor turned, with his hand upon the fastening of the window, and
  • said, with a cool, bold smile:
  • “My dear friend, I have a charmed life in this city. I have been
  • a Bastille prisoner. There is no patriot in Paris--in Paris? In
  • France--who, knowing me to have been a prisoner in the Bastille, would
  • touch me, except to overwhelm me with embraces, or carry me in triumph.
  • My old pain has given me a power that has brought us through the
  • barrier, and gained us news of Charles there, and brought us here. I
  • knew it would be so; I knew I could help Charles out of all danger; I
  • told Lucie so.--What is that noise?” His hand was again upon the window.
  • “Don't look!” cried Mr. Lorry, absolutely desperate. “No, Lucie, my
  • dear, nor you!” He got his arm round her, and held her. “Don't be so
  • terrified, my love. I solemnly swear to you that I know of no harm
  • having happened to Charles; that I had no suspicion even of his being in
  • this fatal place. What prison is he in?”
  • “La Force!”
  • “La Force! Lucie, my child, if ever you were brave and serviceable in
  • your life--and you were always both--you will compose yourself now, to
  • do exactly as I bid you; for more depends upon it than you can think, or
  • I can say. There is no help for you in any action on your part to-night;
  • you cannot possibly stir out. I say this, because what I must bid you
  • to do for Charles's sake, is the hardest thing to do of all. You must
  • instantly be obedient, still, and quiet. You must let me put you in a
  • room at the back here. You must leave your father and me alone for
  • two minutes, and as there are Life and Death in the world you must not
  • delay.”
  • “I will be submissive to you. I see in your face that you know I can do
  • nothing else than this. I know you are true.”
  • The old man kissed her, and hurried her into his room, and turned the
  • key; then, came hurrying back to the Doctor, and opened the window and
  • partly opened the blind, and put his hand upon the Doctor's arm, and
  • looked out with him into the courtyard.
  • Looked out upon a throng of men and women: not enough in number, or near
  • enough, to fill the courtyard: not more than forty or fifty in all. The
  • people in possession of the house had let them in at the gate, and they
  • had rushed in to work at the grindstone; it had evidently been set up
  • there for their purpose, as in a convenient and retired spot.
  • But, such awful workers, and such awful work!
  • The grindstone had a double handle, and, turning at it madly were two
  • men, whose faces, as their long hair flapped back when the whirlings of
  • the grindstone brought their faces up, were more horrible and cruel than
  • the visages of the wildest savages in their most barbarous disguise.
  • False eyebrows and false moustaches were stuck upon them, and their
  • hideous countenances were all bloody and sweaty, and all awry with
  • howling, and all staring and glaring with beastly excitement and want of
  • sleep. As these ruffians turned and turned, their matted locks now flung
  • forward over their eyes, now flung backward over their necks, some women
  • held wine to their mouths that they might drink; and what with dropping
  • blood, and what with dropping wine, and what with the stream of sparks
  • struck out of the stone, all their wicked atmosphere seemed gore and
  • fire. The eye could not detect one creature in the group free from
  • the smear of blood. Shouldering one another to get next at the
  • sharpening-stone, were men stripped to the waist, with the stain all
  • over their limbs and bodies; men in all sorts of rags, with the stain
  • upon those rags; men devilishly set off with spoils of women's lace
  • and silk and ribbon, with the stain dyeing those trifles through
  • and through. Hatchets, knives, bayonets, swords, all brought to be
  • sharpened, were all red with it. Some of the hacked swords were tied to
  • the wrists of those who carried them, with strips of linen and fragments
  • of dress: ligatures various in kind, but all deep of the one colour. And
  • as the frantic wielders of these weapons snatched them from the stream
  • of sparks and tore away into the streets, the same red hue was red in
  • their frenzied eyes;--eyes which any unbrutalised beholder would have
  • given twenty years of life, to petrify with a well-directed gun.
  • All this was seen in a moment, as the vision of a drowning man, or of
  • any human creature at any very great pass, could see a world if it
  • were there. They drew back from the window, and the Doctor looked for
  • explanation in his friend's ashy face.
  • “They are,” Mr. Lorry whispered the words, glancing fearfully round at
  • the locked room, “murdering the prisoners. If you are sure of what you
  • say; if you really have the power you think you have--as I believe you
  • have--make yourself known to these devils, and get taken to La Force. It
  • may be too late, I don't know, but let it not be a minute later!”
  • Doctor Manette pressed his hand, hastened bareheaded out of the room,
  • and was in the courtyard when Mr. Lorry regained the blind.
  • His streaming white hair, his remarkable face, and the impetuous
  • confidence of his manner, as he put the weapons aside like water,
  • carried him in an instant to the heart of the concourse at the stone.
  • For a few moments there was a pause, and a hurry, and a murmur, and
  • the unintelligible sound of his voice; and then Mr. Lorry saw him,
  • surrounded by all, and in the midst of a line of twenty men long, all
  • linked shoulder to shoulder, and hand to shoulder, hurried out with
  • cries of--“Live the Bastille prisoner! Help for the Bastille prisoner's
  • kindred in La Force! Room for the Bastille prisoner in front there! Save
  • the prisoner Evremonde at La Force!” and a thousand answering shouts.
  • He closed the lattice again with a fluttering heart, closed the window
  • and the curtain, hastened to Lucie, and told her that her father was
  • assisted by the people, and gone in search of her husband. He found
  • her child and Miss Pross with her; but, it never occurred to him to be
  • surprised by their appearance until a long time afterwards, when he sat
  • watching them in such quiet as the night knew.
  • Lucie had, by that time, fallen into a stupor on the floor at his feet,
  • clinging to his hand. Miss Pross had laid the child down on his own
  • bed, and her head had gradually fallen on the pillow beside her pretty
  • charge. O the long, long night, with the moans of the poor wife! And O
  • the long, long night, with no return of her father and no tidings!
  • Twice more in the darkness the bell at the great gate sounded, and the
  • irruption was repeated, and the grindstone whirled and spluttered.
  • “What is it?” cried Lucie, affrighted. “Hush! The soldiers' swords are
  • sharpened there,” said Mr. Lorry. “The place is national property now,
  • and used as a kind of armoury, my love.”
  • Twice more in all; but, the last spell of work was feeble and fitful.
  • Soon afterwards the day began to dawn, and he softly detached himself
  • from the clasping hand, and cautiously looked out again. A man, so
  • besmeared that he might have been a sorely wounded soldier creeping back
  • to consciousness on a field of slain, was rising from the pavement by
  • the side of the grindstone, and looking about him with a vacant air.
  • Shortly, this worn-out murderer descried in the imperfect light one of
  • the carriages of Monseigneur, and, staggering to that gorgeous vehicle,
  • climbed in at the door, and shut himself up to take his rest on its
  • dainty cushions.
  • The great grindstone, Earth, had turned when Mr. Lorry looked out again,
  • and the sun was red on the courtyard. But, the lesser grindstone stood
  • alone there in the calm morning air, with a red upon it that the sun had
  • never given, and would never take away.
  • III. The Shadow
  • One of the first considerations which arose in the business mind of Mr.
  • Lorry when business hours came round, was this:--that he had no right to
  • imperil Tellson's by sheltering the wife of an emigrant prisoner under
  • the Bank roof. His own possessions, safety, life, he would have hazarded
  • for Lucie and her child, without a moment's demur; but the great trust
  • he held was not his own, and as to that business charge he was a strict
  • man of business.
  • At first, his mind reverted to Defarge, and he thought of finding out
  • the wine-shop again and taking counsel with its master in reference to
  • the safest dwelling-place in the distracted state of the city. But, the
  • same consideration that suggested him, repudiated him; he lived in the
  • most violent Quarter, and doubtless was influential there, and deep in
  • its dangerous workings.
  • Noon coming, and the Doctor not returning, and every minute's delay
  • tending to compromise Tellson's, Mr. Lorry advised with Lucie. She said
  • that her father had spoken of hiring a lodging for a short term, in that
  • Quarter, near the Banking-house. As there was no business objection to
  • this, and as he foresaw that even if it were all well with Charles, and
  • he were to be released, he could not hope to leave the city, Mr. Lorry
  • went out in quest of such a lodging, and found a suitable one, high up
  • in a removed by-street where the closed blinds in all the other windows
  • of a high melancholy square of buildings marked deserted homes.
  • To this lodging he at once removed Lucie and her child, and Miss Pross:
  • giving them what comfort he could, and much more than he had himself.
  • He left Jerry with them, as a figure to fill a doorway that would bear
  • considerable knocking on the head, and returned to his own occupations.
  • A disturbed and doleful mind he brought to bear upon them, and slowly
  • and heavily the day lagged on with him.
  • It wore itself out, and wore him out with it, until the Bank closed. He
  • was again alone in his room of the previous night, considering what to
  • do next, when he heard a foot upon the stair. In a few moments, a
  • man stood in his presence, who, with a keenly observant look at him,
  • addressed him by his name.
  • “Your servant,” said Mr. Lorry. “Do you know me?”
  • He was a strongly made man with dark curling hair, from forty-five
  • to fifty years of age. For answer he repeated, without any change of
  • emphasis, the words:
  • “Do you know me?”
  • “I have seen you somewhere.”
  • “Perhaps at my wine-shop?”
  • Much interested and agitated, Mr. Lorry said: “You come from Doctor
  • Manette?”
  • “Yes. I come from Doctor Manette.”
  • “And what says he? What does he send me?”
  • Defarge gave into his anxious hand, an open scrap of paper. It bore the
  • words in the Doctor's writing:
  • “Charles is safe, but I cannot safely leave this place yet.
  • I have obtained the favour that the bearer has a short note
  • from Charles to his wife. Let the bearer see his wife.”
  • It was dated from La Force, within an hour.
  • “Will you accompany me,” said Mr. Lorry, joyfully relieved after reading
  • this note aloud, “to where his wife resides?”
  • “Yes,” returned Defarge.
  • Scarcely noticing as yet, in what a curiously reserved and mechanical
  • way Defarge spoke, Mr. Lorry put on his hat and they went down into the
  • courtyard. There, they found two women; one, knitting.
  • “Madame Defarge, surely!” said Mr. Lorry, who had left her in exactly
  • the same attitude some seventeen years ago.
  • “It is she,” observed her husband.
  • “Does Madame go with us?” inquired Mr. Lorry, seeing that she moved as
  • they moved.
  • “Yes. That she may be able to recognise the faces and know the persons.
  • It is for their safety.”
  • Beginning to be struck by Defarge's manner, Mr. Lorry looked dubiously
  • at him, and led the way. Both the women followed; the second woman being
  • The Vengeance.
  • They passed through the intervening streets as quickly as they might,
  • ascended the staircase of the new domicile, were admitted by Jerry,
  • and found Lucie weeping, alone. She was thrown into a transport by the
  • tidings Mr. Lorry gave her of her husband, and clasped the hand that
  • delivered his note--little thinking what it had been doing near him in
  • the night, and might, but for a chance, have done to him.
  • “DEAREST,--Take courage. I am well, and your father has
  • influence around me. You cannot answer this.
  • Kiss our child for me.”
  • That was all the writing. It was so much, however, to her who received
  • it, that she turned from Defarge to his wife, and kissed one of the
  • hands that knitted. It was a passionate, loving, thankful, womanly
  • action, but the hand made no response--dropped cold and heavy, and took
  • to its knitting again.
  • There was something in its touch that gave Lucie a check. She stopped in
  • the act of putting the note in her bosom, and, with her hands yet at her
  • neck, looked terrified at Madame Defarge. Madame Defarge met the lifted
  • eyebrows and forehead with a cold, impassive stare.
  • “My dear,” said Mr. Lorry, striking in to explain; “there are frequent
  • risings in the streets; and, although it is not likely they will ever
  • trouble you, Madame Defarge wishes to see those whom she has the power
  • to protect at such times, to the end that she may know them--that she
  • may identify them. I believe,” said Mr. Lorry, rather halting in his
  • reassuring words, as the stony manner of all the three impressed itself
  • upon him more and more, “I state the case, Citizen Defarge?”
  • Defarge looked gloomily at his wife, and gave no other answer than a
  • gruff sound of acquiescence.
  • “You had better, Lucie,” said Mr. Lorry, doing all he could to
  • propitiate, by tone and manner, “have the dear child here, and our
  • good Pross. Our good Pross, Defarge, is an English lady, and knows no
  • French.”
  • The lady in question, whose rooted conviction that she was more than a
  • match for any foreigner, was not to be shaken by distress and, danger,
  • appeared with folded arms, and observed in English to The Vengeance,
  • whom her eyes first encountered, “Well, I am sure, Boldface! I hope
  • _you_ are pretty well!” She also bestowed a British cough on Madame
  • Defarge; but, neither of the two took much heed of her.
  • “Is that his child?” said Madame Defarge, stopping in her work for the
  • first time, and pointing her knitting-needle at little Lucie as if it
  • were the finger of Fate.
  • “Yes, madame,” answered Mr. Lorry; “this is our poor prisoner's darling
  • daughter, and only child.”
  • The shadow attendant on Madame Defarge and her party seemed to fall so
  • threatening and dark on the child, that her mother instinctively
  • kneeled on the ground beside her, and held her to her breast. The
  • shadow attendant on Madame Defarge and her party seemed then to fall,
  • threatening and dark, on both the mother and the child.
  • “It is enough, my husband,” said Madame Defarge. “I have seen them. We
  • may go.”
  • But, the suppressed manner had enough of menace in it--not visible and
  • presented, but indistinct and withheld--to alarm Lucie into saying, as
  • she laid her appealing hand on Madame Defarge's dress:
  • “You will be good to my poor husband. You will do him no harm. You will
  • help me to see him if you can?”
  • “Your husband is not my business here,” returned Madame Defarge, looking
  • down at her with perfect composure. “It is the daughter of your father
  • who is my business here.”
  • “For my sake, then, be merciful to my husband. For my child's sake! She
  • will put her hands together and pray you to be merciful. We are more
  • afraid of you than of these others.”
  • Madame Defarge received it as a compliment, and looked at her husband.
  • Defarge, who had been uneasily biting his thumb-nail and looking at her,
  • collected his face into a sterner expression.
  • “What is it that your husband says in that little letter?” asked Madame
  • Defarge, with a lowering smile. “Influence; he says something touching
  • influence?”
  • “That my father,” said Lucie, hurriedly taking the paper from her
  • breast, but with her alarmed eyes on her questioner and not on it, “has
  • much influence around him.”
  • “Surely it will release him!” said Madame Defarge. “Let it do so.”
  • “As a wife and mother,” cried Lucie, most earnestly, “I implore you to
  • have pity on me and not to exercise any power that you possess, against
  • my innocent husband, but to use it in his behalf. O sister-woman, think
  • of me. As a wife and mother!”
  • Madame Defarge looked, coldly as ever, at the suppliant, and said,
  • turning to her friend The Vengeance:
  • “The wives and mothers we have been used to see, since we were as little
  • as this child, and much less, have not been greatly considered? We have
  • known _their_ husbands and fathers laid in prison and kept from them,
  • often enough? All our lives, we have seen our sister-women suffer, in
  • themselves and in their children, poverty, nakedness, hunger, thirst,
  • sickness, misery, oppression and neglect of all kinds?”
  • “We have seen nothing else,” returned The Vengeance.
  • “We have borne this a long time,” said Madame Defarge, turning her eyes
  • again upon Lucie. “Judge you! Is it likely that the trouble of one wife
  • and mother would be much to us now?”
  • She resumed her knitting and went out. The Vengeance followed. Defarge
  • went last, and closed the door.
  • “Courage, my dear Lucie,” said Mr. Lorry, as he raised her. “Courage,
  • courage! So far all goes well with us--much, much better than it has of
  • late gone with many poor souls. Cheer up, and have a thankful heart.”
  • “I am not thankless, I hope, but that dreadful woman seems to throw a
  • shadow on me and on all my hopes.”
  • “Tut, tut!” said Mr. Lorry; “what is this despondency in the brave
  • little breast? A shadow indeed! No substance in it, Lucie.”
  • But the shadow of the manner of these Defarges was dark upon himself,
  • for all that, and in his secret mind it troubled him greatly.
  • IV. Calm in Storm
  • Doctor Manette did not return until the morning of the fourth day of his
  • absence. So much of what had happened in that dreadful time as could be
  • kept from the knowledge of Lucie was so well concealed from her, that
  • not until long afterwards, when France and she were far apart, did she
  • know that eleven hundred defenceless prisoners of both sexes and all
  • ages had been killed by the populace; that four days and nights had been
  • darkened by this deed of horror; and that the air around her had been
  • tainted by the slain. She only knew that there had been an attack upon
  • the prisons, that all political prisoners had been in danger, and that
  • some had been dragged out by the crowd and murdered.
  • To Mr. Lorry, the Doctor communicated under an injunction of secrecy on
  • which he had no need to dwell, that the crowd had taken him through a
  • scene of carnage to the prison of La Force. That, in the prison he had
  • found a self-appointed Tribunal sitting, before which the prisoners were
  • brought singly, and by which they were rapidly ordered to be put forth
  • to be massacred, or to be released, or (in a few cases) to be sent back
  • to their cells. That, presented by his conductors to this Tribunal, he
  • had announced himself by name and profession as having been for eighteen
  • years a secret and unaccused prisoner in the Bastille; that, one of the
  • body so sitting in judgment had risen and identified him, and that this
  • man was Defarge.
  • That, hereupon he had ascertained, through the registers on the table,
  • that his son-in-law was among the living prisoners, and had pleaded hard
  • to the Tribunal--of whom some members were asleep and some awake, some
  • dirty with murder and some clean, some sober and some not--for his life
  • and liberty. That, in the first frantic greetings lavished on himself as
  • a notable sufferer under the overthrown system, it had been accorded
  • to him to have Charles Darnay brought before the lawless Court, and
  • examined. That, he seemed on the point of being at once released, when
  • the tide in his favour met with some unexplained check (not intelligible
  • to the Doctor), which led to a few words of secret conference. That,
  • the man sitting as President had then informed Doctor Manette that
  • the prisoner must remain in custody, but should, for his sake, be held
  • inviolate in safe custody. That, immediately, on a signal, the prisoner
  • was removed to the interior of the prison again; but, that he, the
  • Doctor, had then so strongly pleaded for permission to remain and
  • assure himself that his son-in-law was, through no malice or mischance,
  • delivered to the concourse whose murderous yells outside the gate had
  • often drowned the proceedings, that he had obtained the permission, and
  • had remained in that Hall of Blood until the danger was over.
  • The sights he had seen there, with brief snatches of food and sleep by
  • intervals, shall remain untold. The mad joy over the prisoners who were
  • saved, had astounded him scarcely less than the mad ferocity against
  • those who were cut to pieces. One prisoner there was, he said, who had
  • been discharged into the street free, but at whom a mistaken savage had
  • thrust a pike as he passed out. Being besought to go to him and dress
  • the wound, the Doctor had passed out at the same gate, and had found him
  • in the arms of a company of Samaritans, who were seated on the bodies
  • of their victims. With an inconsistency as monstrous as anything in this
  • awful nightmare, they had helped the healer, and tended the wounded man
  • with the gentlest solicitude--had made a litter for him and escorted him
  • carefully from the spot--had then caught up their weapons and plunged
  • anew into a butchery so dreadful, that the Doctor had covered his eyes
  • with his hands, and swooned away in the midst of it.
  • As Mr. Lorry received these confidences, and as he watched the face of
  • his friend now sixty-two years of age, a misgiving arose within him that
  • such dread experiences would revive the old danger.
  • But, he had never seen his friend in his present aspect: he had never
  • at all known him in his present character. For the first time the Doctor
  • felt, now, that his suffering was strength and power. For the first time
  • he felt that in that sharp fire, he had slowly forged the iron which
  • could break the prison door of his daughter's husband, and deliver him.
  • “It all tended to a good end, my friend; it was not mere waste and ruin.
  • As my beloved child was helpful in restoring me to myself, I will be
  • helpful now in restoring the dearest part of herself to her; by the aid
  • of Heaven I will do it!” Thus, Doctor Manette. And when Jarvis Lorry saw
  • the kindled eyes, the resolute face, the calm strong look and bearing
  • of the man whose life always seemed to him to have been stopped, like a
  • clock, for so many years, and then set going again with an energy which
  • had lain dormant during the cessation of its usefulness, he believed.
  • Greater things than the Doctor had at that time to contend with, would
  • have yielded before his persevering purpose. While he kept himself
  • in his place, as a physician, whose business was with all degrees
  • of mankind, bond and free, rich and poor, bad and good, he used his
  • personal influence so wisely, that he was soon the inspecting physician
  • of three prisons, and among them of La Force. He could now assure Lucie
  • that her husband was no longer confined alone, but was mixed with the
  • general body of prisoners; he saw her husband weekly, and brought sweet
  • messages to her, straight from his lips; sometimes her husband himself
  • sent a letter to her (though never by the Doctor's hand), but she was
  • not permitted to write to him: for, among the many wild suspicions of
  • plots in the prisons, the wildest of all pointed at emigrants who were
  • known to have made friends or permanent connections abroad.
  • This new life of the Doctor's was an anxious life, no doubt; still, the
  • sagacious Mr. Lorry saw that there was a new sustaining pride in it.
  • Nothing unbecoming tinged the pride; it was a natural and worthy one;
  • but he observed it as a curiosity. The Doctor knew, that up to that
  • time, his imprisonment had been associated in the minds of his daughter
  • and his friend, with his personal affliction, deprivation, and weakness.
  • Now that this was changed, and he knew himself to be invested through
  • that old trial with forces to which they both looked for Charles's
  • ultimate safety and deliverance, he became so far exalted by the change,
  • that he took the lead and direction, and required them as the weak, to
  • trust to him as the strong. The preceding relative positions of himself
  • and Lucie were reversed, yet only as the liveliest gratitude and
  • affection could reverse them, for he could have had no pride but in
  • rendering some service to her who had rendered so much to him. “All
  • curious to see,” thought Mr. Lorry, in his amiably shrewd way, “but all
  • natural and right; so, take the lead, my dear friend, and keep it; it
  • couldn't be in better hands.”
  • But, though the Doctor tried hard, and never ceased trying, to get
  • Charles Darnay set at liberty, or at least to get him brought to trial,
  • the public current of the time set too strong and fast for him. The new
  • era began; the king was tried, doomed, and beheaded; the Republic of
  • Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death, declared for victory or death
  • against the world in arms; the black flag waved night and day from the
  • great towers of Notre Dame; three hundred thousand men, summoned to rise
  • against the tyrants of the earth, rose from all the varying soils
  • of France, as if the dragon's teeth had been sown broadcast, and
  • had yielded fruit equally on hill and plain, on rock, in gravel, and
  • alluvial mud, under the bright sky of the South and under the clouds of
  • the North, in fell and forest, in the vineyards and the olive-grounds
  • and among the cropped grass and the stubble of the corn, along the
  • fruitful banks of the broad rivers, and in the sand of the sea-shore.
  • What private solicitude could rear itself against the deluge of the Year
  • One of Liberty--the deluge rising from below, not falling from above,
  • and with the windows of Heaven shut, not opened!
  • There was no pause, no pity, no peace, no interval of relenting rest, no
  • measurement of time. Though days and nights circled as regularly as when
  • time was young, and the evening and morning were the first day, other
  • count of time there was none. Hold of it was lost in the raging fever
  • of a nation, as it is in the fever of one patient. Now, breaking the
  • unnatural silence of a whole city, the executioner showed the people the
  • head of the king--and now, it seemed almost in the same breath, the
  • head of his fair wife which had had eight weary months of imprisoned
  • widowhood and misery, to turn it grey.
  • And yet, observing the strange law of contradiction which obtains in
  • all such cases, the time was long, while it flamed by so fast. A
  • revolutionary tribunal in the capital, and forty or fifty thousand
  • revolutionary committees all over the land; a law of the Suspected,
  • which struck away all security for liberty or life, and delivered over
  • any good and innocent person to any bad and guilty one; prisons gorged
  • with people who had committed no offence, and could obtain no hearing;
  • these things became the established order and nature of appointed
  • things, and seemed to be ancient usage before they were many weeks old.
  • Above all, one hideous figure grew as familiar as if it had been before
  • the general gaze from the foundations of the world--the figure of the
  • sharp female called La Guillotine.
  • It was the popular theme for jests; it was the best cure for headache,
  • it infallibly prevented the hair from turning grey, it imparted a
  • peculiar delicacy to the complexion, it was the National Razor which
  • shaved close: who kissed La Guillotine, looked through the little window
  • and sneezed into the sack. It was the sign of the regeneration of the
  • human race. It superseded the Cross. Models of it were worn on breasts
  • from which the Cross was discarded, and it was bowed down to and
  • believed in where the Cross was denied.
  • It sheared off heads so many, that it, and the ground it most polluted,
  • were a rotten red. It was taken to pieces, like a toy-puzzle for a young
  • Devil, and was put together again when the occasion wanted it. It hushed
  • the eloquent, struck down the powerful, abolished the beautiful and
  • good. Twenty-two friends of high public mark, twenty-one living and one
  • dead, it had lopped the heads off, in one morning, in as many minutes.
  • The name of the strong man of Old Scripture had descended to the chief
  • functionary who worked it; but, so armed, he was stronger than his
  • namesake, and blinder, and tore away the gates of God's own Temple every
  • day.
  • Among these terrors, and the brood belonging to them, the Doctor walked
  • with a steady head: confident in his power, cautiously persistent in his
  • end, never doubting that he would save Lucie's husband at last. Yet the
  • current of the time swept by, so strong and deep, and carried the time
  • away so fiercely, that Charles had lain in prison one year and three
  • months when the Doctor was thus steady and confident. So much more
  • wicked and distracted had the Revolution grown in that December month,
  • that the rivers of the South were encumbered with the bodies of the
  • violently drowned by night, and prisoners were shot in lines and squares
  • under the southern wintry sun. Still, the Doctor walked among the
  • terrors with a steady head. No man better known than he, in Paris at
  • that day; no man in a stranger situation. Silent, humane, indispensable
  • in hospital and prison, using his art equally among assassins and
  • victims, he was a man apart. In the exercise of his skill, the
  • appearance and the story of the Bastille Captive removed him from all
  • other men. He was not suspected or brought in question, any more than if
  • he had indeed been recalled to life some eighteen years before, or were
  • a Spirit moving among mortals.
  • V. The Wood-Sawyer
  • One year and three months. During all that time Lucie was never
  • sure, from hour to hour, but that the Guillotine would strike off her
  • husband's head next day. Every day, through the stony streets, the
  • tumbrils now jolted heavily, filled with Condemned. Lovely girls; bright
  • women, brown-haired, black-haired, and grey; youths; stalwart men and
  • old; gentle born and peasant born; all red wine for La Guillotine, all
  • daily brought into light from the dark cellars of the loathsome prisons,
  • and carried to her through the streets to slake her devouring thirst.
  • Liberty, equality, fraternity, or death;--the last, much the easiest to
  • bestow, O Guillotine!
  • If the suddenness of her calamity, and the whirling wheels of the time,
  • had stunned the Doctor's daughter into awaiting the result in idle
  • despair, it would but have been with her as it was with many. But, from
  • the hour when she had taken the white head to her fresh young bosom in
  • the garret of Saint Antoine, she had been true to her duties. She was
  • truest to them in the season of trial, as all the quietly loyal and good
  • will always be.
  • As soon as they were established in their new residence, and her father
  • had entered on the routine of his avocations, she arranged the little
  • household as exactly as if her husband had been there. Everything had
  • its appointed place and its appointed time. Little Lucie she taught,
  • as regularly, as if they had all been united in their English home. The
  • slight devices with which she cheated herself into the show of a belief
  • that they would soon be reunited--the little preparations for his speedy
  • return, the setting aside of his chair and his books--these, and the
  • solemn prayer at night for one dear prisoner especially, among the many
  • unhappy souls in prison and the shadow of death--were almost the only
  • outspoken reliefs of her heavy mind.
  • She did not greatly alter in appearance. The plain dark dresses, akin to
  • mourning dresses, which she and her child wore, were as neat and as well
  • attended to as the brighter clothes of happy days. She lost her colour,
  • and the old and intent expression was a constant, not an occasional,
  • thing; otherwise, she remained very pretty and comely. Sometimes, at
  • night on kissing her father, she would burst into the grief she had
  • repressed all day, and would say that her sole reliance, under Heaven,
  • was on him. He always resolutely answered: “Nothing can happen to him
  • without my knowledge, and I know that I can save him, Lucie.”
  • They had not made the round of their changed life many weeks, when her
  • father said to her, on coming home one evening:
  • “My dear, there is an upper window in the prison, to which Charles can
  • sometimes gain access at three in the afternoon. When he can get to
  • it--which depends on many uncertainties and incidents--he might see you
  • in the street, he thinks, if you stood in a certain place that I can
  • show you. But you will not be able to see him, my poor child, and even
  • if you could, it would be unsafe for you to make a sign of recognition.”
  • “O show me the place, my father, and I will go there every day.”
  • From that time, in all weathers, she waited there two hours. As the
  • clock struck two, she was there, and at four she turned resignedly away.
  • When it was not too wet or inclement for her child to be with her, they
  • went together; at other times she was alone; but, she never missed a
  • single day.
  • It was the dark and dirty corner of a small winding street. The hovel
  • of a cutter of wood into lengths for burning, was the only house at that
  • end; all else was wall. On the third day of her being there, he noticed
  • her.
  • “Good day, citizeness.”
  • “Good day, citizen.”
  • This mode of address was now prescribed by decree. It had been
  • established voluntarily some time ago, among the more thorough patriots;
  • but, was now law for everybody.
  • “Walking here again, citizeness?”
  • “You see me, citizen!”
  • The wood-sawyer, who was a little man with a redundancy of gesture (he
  • had once been a mender of roads), cast a glance at the prison, pointed
  • at the prison, and putting his ten fingers before his face to represent
  • bars, peeped through them jocosely.
  • “But it's not my business,” said he. And went on sawing his wood.
  • Next day he was looking out for her, and accosted her the moment she
  • appeared.
  • “What? Walking here again, citizeness?”
  • “Yes, citizen.”
  • “Ah! A child too! Your mother, is it not, my little citizeness?”
  • “Do I say yes, mamma?” whispered little Lucie, drawing close to her.
  • “Yes, dearest.”
  • “Yes, citizen.”
  • “Ah! But it's not my business. My work is my business. See my saw! I
  • call it my Little Guillotine. La, la, la; La, la, la! And off his head
  • comes!”
  • The billet fell as he spoke, and he threw it into a basket.
  • “I call myself the Samson of the firewood guillotine. See here again!
  • Loo, loo, loo; Loo, loo, loo! And off _her_ head comes! Now, a child.
  • Tickle, tickle; Pickle, pickle! And off _its_ head comes. All the
  • family!”
  • Lucie shuddered as he threw two more billets into his basket, but it was
  • impossible to be there while the wood-sawyer was at work, and not be in
  • his sight. Thenceforth, to secure his good will, she always spoke to him
  • first, and often gave him drink-money, which he readily received.
  • He was an inquisitive fellow, and sometimes when she had quite forgotten
  • him in gazing at the prison roof and grates, and in lifting her heart
  • up to her husband, she would come to herself to find him looking at her,
  • with his knee on his bench and his saw stopped in its work. “But it's
  • not my business!” he would generally say at those times, and would
  • briskly fall to his sawing again.
  • In all weathers, in the snow and frost of winter, in the bitter winds of
  • spring, in the hot sunshine of summer, in the rains of autumn, and again
  • in the snow and frost of winter, Lucie passed two hours of every day at
  • this place; and every day on leaving it, she kissed the prison wall.
  • Her husband saw her (so she learned from her father) it might be once in
  • five or six times: it might be twice or thrice running: it might be, not
  • for a week or a fortnight together. It was enough that he could and did
  • see her when the chances served, and on that possibility she would have
  • waited out the day, seven days a week.
  • These occupations brought her round to the December month, wherein her
  • father walked among the terrors with a steady head. On a lightly-snowing
  • afternoon she arrived at the usual corner. It was a day of some wild
  • rejoicing, and a festival. She had seen the houses, as she came along,
  • decorated with little pikes, and with little red caps stuck upon them;
  • also, with tricoloured ribbons; also, with the standard inscription
  • (tricoloured letters were the favourite), Republic One and Indivisible.
  • Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death!
  • The miserable shop of the wood-sawyer was so small, that its whole
  • surface furnished very indifferent space for this legend. He had got
  • somebody to scrawl it up for him, however, who had squeezed Death in
  • with most inappropriate difficulty. On his house-top, he displayed pike
  • and cap, as a good citizen must, and in a window he had stationed his
  • saw inscribed as his “Little Sainte Guillotine”--for the great sharp
  • female was by that time popularly canonised. His shop was shut and he
  • was not there, which was a relief to Lucie, and left her quite alone.
  • But, he was not far off, for presently she heard a troubled movement
  • and a shouting coming along, which filled her with fear. A moment
  • afterwards, and a throng of people came pouring round the corner by the
  • prison wall, in the midst of whom was the wood-sawyer hand in hand with
  • The Vengeance. There could not be fewer than five hundred people, and
  • they were dancing like five thousand demons. There was no other music
  • than their own singing. They danced to the popular Revolution song,
  • keeping a ferocious time that was like a gnashing of teeth in unison.
  • Men and women danced together, women danced together, men danced
  • together, as hazard had brought them together. At first, they were a
  • mere storm of coarse red caps and coarse woollen rags; but, as they
  • filled the place, and stopped to dance about Lucie, some ghastly
  • apparition of a dance-figure gone raving mad arose among them. They
  • advanced, retreated, struck at one another's hands, clutched at one
  • another's heads, spun round alone, caught one another and spun round
  • in pairs, until many of them dropped. While those were down, the rest
  • linked hand in hand, and all spun round together: then the ring broke,
  • and in separate rings of two and four they turned and turned until they
  • all stopped at once, began again, struck, clutched, and tore, and then
  • reversed the spin, and all spun round another way. Suddenly they stopped
  • again, paused, struck out the time afresh, formed into lines the width
  • of the public way, and, with their heads low down and their hands high
  • up, swooped screaming off. No fight could have been half so terrible
  • as this dance. It was so emphatically a fallen sport--a something, once
  • innocent, delivered over to all devilry--a healthy pastime changed into
  • a means of angering the blood, bewildering the senses, and steeling the
  • heart. Such grace as was visible in it, made it the uglier, showing how
  • warped and perverted all things good by nature were become. The maidenly
  • bosom bared to this, the pretty almost-child's head thus distracted, the
  • delicate foot mincing in this slough of blood and dirt, were types of
  • the disjointed time.
  • This was the Carmagnole. As it passed, leaving Lucie frightened and
  • bewildered in the doorway of the wood-sawyer's house, the feathery snow
  • fell as quietly and lay as white and soft, as if it had never been.
  • “O my father!” for he stood before her when she lifted up the eyes she
  • had momentarily darkened with her hand; “such a cruel, bad sight.”
  • “I know, my dear, I know. I have seen it many times. Don't be
  • frightened! Not one of them would harm you.”
  • “I am not frightened for myself, my father. But when I think of my
  • husband, and the mercies of these people--”
  • “We will set him above their mercies very soon. I left him climbing to
  • the window, and I came to tell you. There is no one here to see. You may
  • kiss your hand towards that highest shelving roof.”
  • “I do so, father, and I send him my Soul with it!”
  • “You cannot see him, my poor dear?”
  • “No, father,” said Lucie, yearning and weeping as she kissed her hand,
  • “no.”
  • A footstep in the snow. Madame Defarge. “I salute you, citizeness,”
  • from the Doctor. “I salute you, citizen.” This in passing. Nothing more.
  • Madame Defarge gone, like a shadow over the white road.
  • “Give me your arm, my love. Pass from here with an air of cheerfulness
  • and courage, for his sake. That was well done;” they had left the spot;
  • “it shall not be in vain. Charles is summoned for to-morrow.”
  • “For to-morrow!”
  • “There is no time to lose. I am well prepared, but there are precautions
  • to be taken, that could not be taken until he was actually summoned
  • before the Tribunal. He has not received the notice yet, but I know
  • that he will presently be summoned for to-morrow, and removed to the
  • Conciergerie; I have timely information. You are not afraid?”
  • She could scarcely answer, “I trust in you.”
  • “Do so, implicitly. Your suspense is nearly ended, my darling; he shall
  • be restored to you within a few hours; I have encompassed him with every
  • protection. I must see Lorry.”
  • He stopped. There was a heavy lumbering of wheels within hearing. They
  • both knew too well what it meant. One. Two. Three. Three tumbrils faring
  • away with their dread loads over the hushing snow.
  • “I must see Lorry,” the Doctor repeated, turning her another way.
  • The staunch old gentleman was still in his trust; had never left it. He
  • and his books were in frequent requisition as to property confiscated
  • and made national. What he could save for the owners, he saved. No
  • better man living to hold fast by what Tellson's had in keeping, and to
  • hold his peace.
  • A murky red and yellow sky, and a rising mist from the Seine, denoted
  • the approach of darkness. It was almost dark when they arrived at the
  • Bank. The stately residence of Monseigneur was altogether blighted and
  • deserted. Above a heap of dust and ashes in the court, ran the letters:
  • National Property. Republic One and Indivisible. Liberty, Equality,
  • Fraternity, or Death!
  • Who could that be with Mr. Lorry--the owner of the riding-coat upon the
  • chair--who must not be seen? From whom newly arrived, did he come out,
  • agitated and surprised, to take his favourite in his arms? To whom did
  • he appear to repeat her faltering words, when, raising his voice and
  • turning his head towards the door of the room from which he had issued,
  • he said: “Removed to the Conciergerie, and summoned for to-morrow?”
  • VI. Triumph
  • The dread tribunal of five Judges, Public Prosecutor, and determined
  • Jury, sat every day. Their lists went forth every evening, and were
  • read out by the gaolers of the various prisons to their prisoners. The
  • standard gaoler-joke was, “Come out and listen to the Evening Paper, you
  • inside there!”
  • “Charles Evremonde, called Darnay!”
  • So at last began the Evening Paper at La Force.
  • When a name was called, its owner stepped apart into a spot reserved
  • for those who were announced as being thus fatally recorded. Charles
  • Evremonde, called Darnay, had reason to know the usage; he had seen
  • hundreds pass away so.
  • His bloated gaoler, who wore spectacles to read with, glanced over them
  • to assure himself that he had taken his place, and went through the
  • list, making a similar short pause at each name. There were twenty-three
  • names, but only twenty were responded to; for one of the prisoners so
  • summoned had died in gaol and been forgotten, and two had already been
  • guillotined and forgotten. The list was read, in the vaulted chamber
  • where Darnay had seen the associated prisoners on the night of his
  • arrival. Every one of those had perished in the massacre; every human
  • creature he had since cared for and parted with, had died on the
  • scaffold.
  • There were hurried words of farewell and kindness, but the parting was
  • soon over. It was the incident of every day, and the society of La Force
  • were engaged in the preparation of some games of forfeits and a little
  • concert, for that evening. They crowded to the grates and shed tears
  • there; but, twenty places in the projected entertainments had to be
  • refilled, and the time was, at best, short to the lock-up hour, when the
  • common rooms and corridors would be delivered over to the great dogs
  • who kept watch there through the night. The prisoners were far from
  • insensible or unfeeling; their ways arose out of the condition of the
  • time. Similarly, though with a subtle difference, a species of fervour
  • or intoxication, known, without doubt, to have led some persons to
  • brave the guillotine unnecessarily, and to die by it, was not mere
  • boastfulness, but a wild infection of the wildly shaken public mind. In
  • seasons of pestilence, some of us will have a secret attraction to the
  • disease--a terrible passing inclination to die of it. And all of us have
  • like wonders hidden in our breasts, only needing circumstances to evoke
  • them.
  • The passage to the Conciergerie was short and dark; the night in its
  • vermin-haunted cells was long and cold. Next day, fifteen prisoners were
  • put to the bar before Charles Darnay's name was called. All the fifteen
  • were condemned, and the trials of the whole occupied an hour and a half.
  • “Charles Evremonde, called Darnay,” was at length arraigned.
  • His judges sat upon the Bench in feathered hats; but the rough red cap
  • and tricoloured cockade was the head-dress otherwise prevailing. Looking
  • at the Jury and the turbulent audience, he might have thought that the
  • usual order of things was reversed, and that the felons were trying the
  • honest men. The lowest, cruelest, and worst populace of a city, never
  • without its quantity of low, cruel, and bad, were the directing
  • spirits of the scene: noisily commenting, applauding, disapproving,
  • anticipating, and precipitating the result, without a check. Of the men,
  • the greater part were armed in various ways; of the women, some wore
  • knives, some daggers, some ate and drank as they looked on, many
  • knitted. Among these last, was one, with a spare piece of knitting under
  • her arm as she worked. She was in a front row, by the side of a man whom
  • he had never seen since his arrival at the Barrier, but whom he directly
  • remembered as Defarge. He noticed that she once or twice whispered in
  • his ear, and that she seemed to be his wife; but, what he most noticed
  • in the two figures was, that although they were posted as close to
  • himself as they could be, they never looked towards him. They seemed to
  • be waiting for something with a dogged determination, and they looked at
  • the Jury, but at nothing else. Under the President sat Doctor Manette,
  • in his usual quiet dress. As well as the prisoner could see, he and Mr.
  • Lorry were the only men there, unconnected with the Tribunal, who
  • wore their usual clothes, and had not assumed the coarse garb of the
  • Carmagnole.
  • Charles Evremonde, called Darnay, was accused by the public prosecutor
  • as an emigrant, whose life was forfeit to the Republic, under the decree
  • which banished all emigrants on pain of Death. It was nothing that the
  • decree bore date since his return to France. There he was, and there was
  • the decree; he had been taken in France, and his head was demanded.
  • “Take off his head!” cried the audience. “An enemy to the Republic!”
  • The President rang his bell to silence those cries, and asked the
  • prisoner whether it was not true that he had lived many years in
  • England?
  • Undoubtedly it was.
  • Was he not an emigrant then? What did he call himself?
  • Not an emigrant, he hoped, within the sense and spirit of the law.
  • Why not? the President desired to know.
  • Because he had voluntarily relinquished a title that was distasteful
  • to him, and a station that was distasteful to him, and had left
  • his country--he submitted before the word emigrant in the present
  • acceptation by the Tribunal was in use--to live by his own industry in
  • England, rather than on the industry of the overladen people of France.
  • What proof had he of this?
  • He handed in the names of two witnesses; Theophile Gabelle, and
  • Alexandre Manette.
  • But he had married in England? the President reminded him.
  • True, but not an English woman.
  • A citizeness of France?
  • Yes. By birth.
  • Her name and family?
  • “Lucie Manette, only daughter of Doctor Manette, the good physician who
  • sits there.”
  • This answer had a happy effect upon the audience. Cries in exaltation
  • of the well-known good physician rent the hall. So capriciously were
  • the people moved, that tears immediately rolled down several ferocious
  • countenances which had been glaring at the prisoner a moment before, as
  • if with impatience to pluck him out into the streets and kill him.
  • On these few steps of his dangerous way, Charles Darnay had set his foot
  • according to Doctor Manette's reiterated instructions. The same cautious
  • counsel directed every step that lay before him, and had prepared every
  • inch of his road.
  • The President asked, why had he returned to France when he did, and not
  • sooner?
  • He had not returned sooner, he replied, simply because he had no means
  • of living in France, save those he had resigned; whereas, in England,
  • he lived by giving instruction in the French language and literature.
  • He had returned when he did, on the pressing and written entreaty of
  • a French citizen, who represented that his life was endangered by his
  • absence. He had come back, to save a citizen's life, and to bear his
  • testimony, at whatever personal hazard, to the truth. Was that criminal
  • in the eyes of the Republic?
  • The populace cried enthusiastically, “No!” and the President rang his
  • bell to quiet them. Which it did not, for they continued to cry “No!”
  • until they left off, of their own will.
  • The President required the name of that citizen. The accused explained
  • that the citizen was his first witness. He also referred with confidence
  • to the citizen's letter, which had been taken from him at the Barrier,
  • but which he did not doubt would be found among the papers then before
  • the President.
  • The Doctor had taken care that it should be there--had assured him that
  • it would be there--and at this stage of the proceedings it was produced
  • and read. Citizen Gabelle was called to confirm it, and did so. Citizen
  • Gabelle hinted, with infinite delicacy and politeness, that in the
  • pressure of business imposed on the Tribunal by the multitude of
  • enemies of the Republic with which it had to deal, he had been slightly
  • overlooked in his prison of the Abbaye--in fact, had rather passed out
  • of the Tribunal's patriotic remembrance--until three days ago; when he
  • had been summoned before it, and had been set at liberty on the Jury's
  • declaring themselves satisfied that the accusation against him was
  • answered, as to himself, by the surrender of the citizen Evremonde,
  • called Darnay.
  • Doctor Manette was next questioned. His high personal popularity,
  • and the clearness of his answers, made a great impression; but, as he
  • proceeded, as he showed that the Accused was his first friend on his
  • release from his long imprisonment; that, the accused had remained in
  • England, always faithful and devoted to his daughter and himself in
  • their exile; that, so far from being in favour with the Aristocrat
  • government there, he had actually been tried for his life by it, as
  • the foe of England and friend of the United States--as he brought these
  • circumstances into view, with the greatest discretion and with the
  • straightforward force of truth and earnestness, the Jury and the
  • populace became one. At last, when he appealed by name to Monsieur
  • Lorry, an English gentleman then and there present, who, like himself,
  • had been a witness on that English trial and could corroborate his
  • account of it, the Jury declared that they had heard enough, and that
  • they were ready with their votes if the President were content to
  • receive them.
  • At every vote (the Jurymen voted aloud and individually), the populace
  • set up a shout of applause. All the voices were in the prisoner's
  • favour, and the President declared him free.
  • Then, began one of those extraordinary scenes with which the populace
  • sometimes gratified their fickleness, or their better impulses towards
  • generosity and mercy, or which they regarded as some set-off against
  • their swollen account of cruel rage. No man can decide now to which of
  • these motives such extraordinary scenes were referable; it is probable,
  • to a blending of all the three, with the second predominating. No sooner
  • was the acquittal pronounced, than tears were shed as freely as blood
  • at another time, and such fraternal embraces were bestowed upon the
  • prisoner by as many of both sexes as could rush at him, that after
  • his long and unwholesome confinement he was in danger of fainting from
  • exhaustion; none the less because he knew very well, that the very same
  • people, carried by another current, would have rushed at him with
  • the very same intensity, to rend him to pieces and strew him over the
  • streets.
  • His removal, to make way for other accused persons who were to be tried,
  • rescued him from these caresses for the moment. Five were to be tried
  • together, next, as enemies of the Republic, forasmuch as they had not
  • assisted it by word or deed. So quick was the Tribunal to compensate
  • itself and the nation for a chance lost, that these five came down to
  • him before he left the place, condemned to die within twenty-four
  • hours. The first of them told him so, with the customary prison sign
  • of Death--a raised finger--and they all added in words, “Long live the
  • Republic!”
  • The five had had, it is true, no audience to lengthen their proceedings,
  • for when he and Doctor Manette emerged from the gate, there was a great
  • crowd about it, in which there seemed to be every face he had seen in
  • Court--except two, for which he looked in vain. On his coming out, the
  • concourse made at him anew, weeping, embracing, and shouting, all by
  • turns and all together, until the very tide of the river on the bank of
  • which the mad scene was acted, seemed to run mad, like the people on the
  • shore.
  • They put him into a great chair they had among them, and which they had
  • taken either out of the Court itself, or one of its rooms or passages.
  • Over the chair they had thrown a red flag, and to the back of it they
  • had bound a pike with a red cap on its top. In this car of triumph, not
  • even the Doctor's entreaties could prevent his being carried to his home
  • on men's shoulders, with a confused sea of red caps heaving about him,
  • and casting up to sight from the stormy deep such wrecks of faces, that
  • he more than once misdoubted his mind being in confusion, and that he
  • was in the tumbril on his way to the Guillotine.
  • In wild dreamlike procession, embracing whom they met and pointing
  • him out, they carried him on. Reddening the snowy streets with the
  • prevailing Republican colour, in winding and tramping through them, as
  • they had reddened them below the snow with a deeper dye, they carried
  • him thus into the courtyard of the building where he lived. Her father
  • had gone on before, to prepare her, and when her husband stood upon his
  • feet, she dropped insensible in his arms.
  • As he held her to his heart and turned her beautiful head between his
  • face and the brawling crowd, so that his tears and her lips might come
  • together unseen, a few of the people fell to dancing. Instantly, all the
  • rest fell to dancing, and the courtyard overflowed with the Carmagnole.
  • Then, they elevated into the vacant chair a young woman from the
  • crowd to be carried as the Goddess of Liberty, and then swelling and
  • overflowing out into the adjacent streets, and along the river's bank,
  • and over the bridge, the Carmagnole absorbed them every one and whirled
  • them away.
  • After grasping the Doctor's hand, as he stood victorious and proud
  • before him; after grasping the hand of Mr. Lorry, who came panting in
  • breathless from his struggle against the waterspout of the Carmagnole;
  • after kissing little Lucie, who was lifted up to clasp her arms round
  • his neck; and after embracing the ever zealous and faithful Pross who
  • lifted her; he took his wife in his arms, and carried her up to their
  • rooms.
  • “Lucie! My own! I am safe.”
  • “O dearest Charles, let me thank God for this on my knees as I have
  • prayed to Him.”
  • They all reverently bowed their heads and hearts. When she was again in
  • his arms, he said to her:
  • “And now speak to your father, dearest. No other man in all this France
  • could have done what he has done for me.”
  • She laid her head upon her father's breast, as she had laid his poor
  • head on her own breast, long, long ago. He was happy in the return he
  • had made her, he was recompensed for his suffering, he was proud of his
  • strength. “You must not be weak, my darling,” he remonstrated; “don't
  • tremble so. I have saved him.”
  • VII. A Knock at the Door
  • “I have saved him.” It was not another of the dreams in which he had
  • often come back; he was really here. And yet his wife trembled, and a
  • vague but heavy fear was upon her.
  • All the air round was so thick and dark, the people were so passionately
  • revengeful and fitful, the innocent were so constantly put to death on
  • vague suspicion and black malice, it was so impossible to forget that
  • many as blameless as her husband and as dear to others as he was to
  • her, every day shared the fate from which he had been clutched, that her
  • heart could not be as lightened of its load as she felt it ought to be.
  • The shadows of the wintry afternoon were beginning to fall, and even now
  • the dreadful carts were rolling through the streets. Her mind pursued
  • them, looking for him among the Condemned; and then she clung closer to
  • his real presence and trembled more.
  • Her father, cheering her, showed a compassionate superiority to this
  • woman's weakness, which was wonderful to see. No garret, no shoemaking,
  • no One Hundred and Five, North Tower, now! He had accomplished the task
  • he had set himself, his promise was redeemed, he had saved Charles. Let
  • them all lean upon him.
  • Their housekeeping was of a very frugal kind: not only because that was
  • the safest way of life, involving the least offence to the people, but
  • because they were not rich, and Charles, throughout his imprisonment,
  • had had to pay heavily for his bad food, and for his guard, and towards
  • the living of the poorer prisoners. Partly on this account, and
  • partly to avoid a domestic spy, they kept no servant; the citizen and
  • citizeness who acted as porters at the courtyard gate, rendered them
  • occasional service; and Jerry (almost wholly transferred to them by
  • Mr. Lorry) had become their daily retainer, and had his bed there every
  • night.
  • It was an ordinance of the Republic One and Indivisible of Liberty,
  • Equality, Fraternity, or Death, that on the door or doorpost of every
  • house, the name of every inmate must be legibly inscribed in letters
  • of a certain size, at a certain convenient height from the ground. Mr.
  • Jerry Cruncher's name, therefore, duly embellished the doorpost down
  • below; and, as the afternoon shadows deepened, the owner of that name
  • himself appeared, from overlooking a painter whom Doctor Manette had
  • employed to add to the list the name of Charles Evremonde, called
  • Darnay.
  • In the universal fear and distrust that darkened the time, all the usual
  • harmless ways of life were changed. In the Doctor's little household, as
  • in very many others, the articles of daily consumption that were wanted
  • were purchased every evening, in small quantities and at various small
  • shops. To avoid attracting notice, and to give as little occasion as
  • possible for talk and envy, was the general desire.
  • For some months past, Miss Pross and Mr. Cruncher had discharged the
  • office of purveyors; the former carrying the money; the latter, the
  • basket. Every afternoon at about the time when the public lamps were
  • lighted, they fared forth on this duty, and made and brought home
  • such purchases as were needful. Although Miss Pross, through her long
  • association with a French family, might have known as much of their
  • language as of her own, if she had had a mind, she had no mind in that
  • direction; consequently she knew no more of that “nonsense” (as she was
  • pleased to call it) than Mr. Cruncher did. So her manner of marketing
  • was to plump a noun-substantive at the head of a shopkeeper without any
  • introduction in the nature of an article, and, if it happened not to be
  • the name of the thing she wanted, to look round for that thing, lay hold
  • of it, and hold on by it until the bargain was concluded. She always
  • made a bargain for it, by holding up, as a statement of its just price,
  • one finger less than the merchant held up, whatever his number might be.
  • “Now, Mr. Cruncher,” said Miss Pross, whose eyes were red with felicity;
  • “if you are ready, I am.”
  • Jerry hoarsely professed himself at Miss Pross's service. He had worn
  • all his rust off long ago, but nothing would file his spiky head down.
  • “There's all manner of things wanted,” said Miss Pross, “and we shall
  • have a precious time of it. We want wine, among the rest. Nice toasts
  • these Redheads will be drinking, wherever we buy it.”
  • “It will be much the same to your knowledge, miss, I should think,”
  • retorted Jerry, “whether they drink your health or the Old Un's.”
  • “Who's he?” said Miss Pross.
  • Mr. Cruncher, with some diffidence, explained himself as meaning “Old
  • Nick's.”
  • “Ha!” said Miss Pross, “it doesn't need an interpreter to explain the
  • meaning of these creatures. They have but one, and it's Midnight Murder,
  • and Mischief.”
  • “Hush, dear! Pray, pray, be cautious!” cried Lucie.
  • “Yes, yes, yes, I'll be cautious,” said Miss Pross; “but I may say
  • among ourselves, that I do hope there will be no oniony and tobaccoey
  • smotherings in the form of embracings all round, going on in the
  • streets. Now, Ladybird, never you stir from that fire till I come back!
  • Take care of the dear husband you have recovered, and don't move your
  • pretty head from his shoulder as you have it now, till you see me again!
  • May I ask a question, Doctor Manette, before I go?”
  • “I think you may take that liberty,” the Doctor answered, smiling.
  • “For gracious sake, don't talk about Liberty; we have quite enough of
  • that,” said Miss Pross.
  • “Hush, dear! Again?” Lucie remonstrated.
  • “Well, my sweet,” said Miss Pross, nodding her head emphatically, “the
  • short and the long of it is, that I am a subject of His Most Gracious
  • Majesty King George the Third;” Miss Pross curtseyed at the name; “and
  • as such, my maxim is, Confound their politics, Frustrate their knavish
  • tricks, On him our hopes we fix, God save the King!”
  • Mr. Cruncher, in an access of loyalty, growlingly repeated the words
  • after Miss Pross, like somebody at church.
  • “I am glad you have so much of the Englishman in you, though I wish you
  • had never taken that cold in your voice,” said Miss Pross, approvingly.
  • “But the question, Doctor Manette. Is there”--it was the good creature's
  • way to affect to make light of anything that was a great anxiety
  • with them all, and to come at it in this chance manner--“is there any
  • prospect yet, of our getting out of this place?”
  • “I fear not yet. It would be dangerous for Charles yet.”
  • “Heigh-ho-hum!” said Miss Pross, cheerfully repressing a sigh as she
  • glanced at her darling's golden hair in the light of the fire, “then we
  • must have patience and wait: that's all. We must hold up our heads and
  • fight low, as my brother Solomon used to say. Now, Mr. Cruncher!--Don't
  • you move, Ladybird!”
  • They went out, leaving Lucie, and her husband, her father, and the
  • child, by a bright fire. Mr. Lorry was expected back presently from the
  • Banking House. Miss Pross had lighted the lamp, but had put it aside in
  • a corner, that they might enjoy the fire-light undisturbed. Little Lucie
  • sat by her grandfather with her hands clasped through his arm: and he,
  • in a tone not rising much above a whisper, began to tell her a story of
  • a great and powerful Fairy who had opened a prison-wall and let out
  • a captive who had once done the Fairy a service. All was subdued and
  • quiet, and Lucie was more at ease than she had been.
  • “What is that?” she cried, all at once.
  • “My dear!” said her father, stopping in his story, and laying his hand
  • on hers, “command yourself. What a disordered state you are in! The
  • least thing--nothing--startles you! _You_, your father's daughter!”
  • “I thought, my father,” said Lucie, excusing herself, with a pale face
  • and in a faltering voice, “that I heard strange feet upon the stairs.”
  • “My love, the staircase is as still as Death.”
  • As he said the word, a blow was struck upon the door.
  • “Oh father, father. What can this be! Hide Charles. Save him!”
  • “My child,” said the Doctor, rising, and laying his hand upon her
  • shoulder, “I _have_ saved him. What weakness is this, my dear! Let me go
  • to the door.”
  • He took the lamp in his hand, crossed the two intervening outer rooms,
  • and opened it. A rude clattering of feet over the floor, and four rough
  • men in red caps, armed with sabres and pistols, entered the room.
  • “The Citizen Evremonde, called Darnay,” said the first.
  • “Who seeks him?” answered Darnay.
  • “I seek him. We seek him. I know you, Evremonde; I saw you before the
  • Tribunal to-day. You are again the prisoner of the Republic.”
  • The four surrounded him, where he stood with his wife and child clinging
  • to him.
  • “Tell me how and why am I again a prisoner?”
  • “It is enough that you return straight to the Conciergerie, and will
  • know to-morrow. You are summoned for to-morrow.”
  • Doctor Manette, whom this visitation had so turned into stone, that he
  • stood with the lamp in his hand, as if he were a statue made to hold it,
  • moved after these words were spoken, put the lamp down, and confronting
  • the speaker, and taking him, not ungently, by the loose front of his red
  • woollen shirt, said:
  • “You know him, you have said. Do you know me?”
  • “Yes, I know you, Citizen Doctor.”
  • “We all know you, Citizen Doctor,” said the other three.
  • He looked abstractedly from one to another, and said, in a lower voice,
  • after a pause:
  • “Will you answer his question to me then? How does this happen?”
  • “Citizen Doctor,” said the first, reluctantly, “he has been denounced to
  • the Section of Saint Antoine. This citizen,” pointing out the second who
  • had entered, “is from Saint Antoine.”
  • The citizen here indicated nodded his head, and added:
  • “He is accused by Saint Antoine.”
  • “Of what?” asked the Doctor.
  • “Citizen Doctor,” said the first, with his former reluctance, “ask no
  • more. If the Republic demands sacrifices from you, without doubt you as
  • a good patriot will be happy to make them. The Republic goes before all.
  • The People is supreme. Evremonde, we are pressed.”
  • “One word,” the Doctor entreated. “Will you tell me who denounced him?”
  • “It is against rule,” answered the first; “but you can ask Him of Saint
  • Antoine here.”
  • The Doctor turned his eyes upon that man. Who moved uneasily on his
  • feet, rubbed his beard a little, and at length said:
  • “Well! Truly it is against rule. But he is denounced--and gravely--by
  • the Citizen and Citizeness Defarge. And by one other.”
  • “What other?”
  • “Do _you_ ask, Citizen Doctor?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Then,” said he of Saint Antoine, with a strange look, “you will be
  • answered to-morrow. Now, I am dumb!”
  • VIII. A Hand at Cards
  • Happily unconscious of the new calamity at home, Miss Pross threaded her
  • way along the narrow streets and crossed the river by the bridge of the
  • Pont-Neuf, reckoning in her mind the number of indispensable purchases
  • she had to make. Mr. Cruncher, with the basket, walked at her side. They
  • both looked to the right and to the left into most of the shops they
  • passed, had a wary eye for all gregarious assemblages of people, and
  • turned out of their road to avoid any very excited group of talkers. It
  • was a raw evening, and the misty river, blurred to the eye with blazing
  • lights and to the ear with harsh noises, showed where the barges were
  • stationed in which the smiths worked, making guns for the Army of the
  • Republic. Woe to the man who played tricks with _that_ Army, or got
  • undeserved promotion in it! Better for him that his beard had never
  • grown, for the National Razor shaved him close.
  • Having purchased a few small articles of grocery, and a measure of oil
  • for the lamp, Miss Pross bethought herself of the wine they wanted.
  • After peeping into several wine-shops, she stopped at the sign of the
  • Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, not far from the National Palace,
  • once (and twice) the Tuileries, where the aspect of things rather
  • took her fancy. It had a quieter look than any other place of the same
  • description they had passed, and, though red with patriotic caps, was
  • not so red as the rest. Sounding Mr. Cruncher, and finding him of her
  • opinion, Miss Pross resorted to the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity,
  • attended by her cavalier.
  • Slightly observant of the smoky lights; of the people, pipe in mouth,
  • playing with limp cards and yellow dominoes; of the one bare-breasted,
  • bare-armed, soot-begrimed workman reading a journal aloud, and of
  • the others listening to him; of the weapons worn, or laid aside to be
  • resumed; of the two or three customers fallen forward asleep, who in the
  • popular high-shouldered shaggy black spencer looked, in that attitude,
  • like slumbering bears or dogs; the two outlandish customers approached
  • the counter, and showed what they wanted.
  • As their wine was measuring out, a man parted from another man in a
  • corner, and rose to depart. In going, he had to face Miss Pross. No
  • sooner did he face her, than Miss Pross uttered a scream, and clapped
  • her hands.
  • In a moment, the whole company were on their feet. That somebody was
  • assassinated by somebody vindicating a difference of opinion was the
  • likeliest occurrence. Everybody looked to see somebody fall, but only
  • saw a man and a woman standing staring at each other; the man with all
  • the outward aspect of a Frenchman and a thorough Republican; the woman,
  • evidently English.
  • What was said in this disappointing anti-climax, by the disciples of the
  • Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, except that it was something very
  • voluble and loud, would have been as so much Hebrew or Chaldean to Miss
  • Pross and her protector, though they had been all ears. But, they had no
  • ears for anything in their surprise. For, it must be recorded, that
  • not only was Miss Pross lost in amazement and agitation, but,
  • Mr. Cruncher--though it seemed on his own separate and individual
  • account--was in a state of the greatest wonder.
  • “What is the matter?” said the man who had caused Miss Pross to scream;
  • speaking in a vexed, abrupt voice (though in a low tone), and in
  • English.
  • “Oh, Solomon, dear Solomon!” cried Miss Pross, clapping her hands again.
  • “After not setting eyes upon you or hearing of you for so long a time,
  • do I find you here!”
  • “Don't call me Solomon. Do you want to be the death of me?” asked the
  • man, in a furtive, frightened way.
  • “Brother, brother!” cried Miss Pross, bursting into tears. “Have I ever
  • been so hard with you that you ask me such a cruel question?”
  • “Then hold your meddlesome tongue,” said Solomon, “and come out, if you
  • want to speak to me. Pay for your wine, and come out. Who's this man?”
  • Miss Pross, shaking her loving and dejected head at her by no means
  • affectionate brother, said through her tears, “Mr. Cruncher.”
  • “Let him come out too,” said Solomon. “Does he think me a ghost?”
  • Apparently, Mr. Cruncher did, to judge from his looks. He said not a
  • word, however, and Miss Pross, exploring the depths of her reticule
  • through her tears with great difficulty paid for her wine. As she did
  • so, Solomon turned to the followers of the Good Republican Brutus
  • of Antiquity, and offered a few words of explanation in the French
  • language, which caused them all to relapse into their former places and
  • pursuits.
  • “Now,” said Solomon, stopping at the dark street corner, “what do you
  • want?”
  • “How dreadfully unkind in a brother nothing has ever turned my love away
  • from!” cried Miss Pross, “to give me such a greeting, and show me no
  • affection.”
  • “There. Confound it! There,” said Solomon, making a dab at Miss Pross's
  • lips with his own. “Now are you content?”
  • Miss Pross only shook her head and wept in silence.
  • “If you expect me to be surprised,” said her brother Solomon, “I am not
  • surprised; I knew you were here; I know of most people who are here. If
  • you really don't want to endanger my existence--which I half believe you
  • do--go your ways as soon as possible, and let me go mine. I am busy. I
  • am an official.”
  • “My English brother Solomon,” mourned Miss Pross, casting up her
  • tear-fraught eyes, “that had the makings in him of one of the best and
  • greatest of men in his native country, an official among foreigners, and
  • such foreigners! I would almost sooner have seen the dear boy lying in
  • his--”
  • “I said so!” cried her brother, interrupting. “I knew it. You want to be
  • the death of me. I shall be rendered Suspected, by my own sister. Just
  • as I am getting on!”
  • “The gracious and merciful Heavens forbid!” cried Miss Pross. “Far
  • rather would I never see you again, dear Solomon, though I have ever
  • loved you truly, and ever shall. Say but one affectionate word to me,
  • and tell me there is nothing angry or estranged between us, and I will
  • detain you no longer.”
  • Good Miss Pross! As if the estrangement between them had come of any
  • culpability of hers. As if Mr. Lorry had not known it for a fact, years
  • ago, in the quiet corner in Soho, that this precious brother had spent
  • her money and left her!
  • He was saying the affectionate word, however, with a far more grudging
  • condescension and patronage than he could have shown if their relative
  • merits and positions had been reversed (which is invariably the case,
  • all the world over), when Mr. Cruncher, touching him on the shoulder,
  • hoarsely and unexpectedly interposed with the following singular
  • question:
  • “I say! Might I ask the favour? As to whether your name is John Solomon,
  • or Solomon John?”
  • The official turned towards him with sudden distrust. He had not
  • previously uttered a word.
  • “Come!” said Mr. Cruncher. “Speak out, you know.” (Which, by the way,
  • was more than he could do himself.) “John Solomon, or Solomon John? She
  • calls you Solomon, and she must know, being your sister. And _I_ know
  • you're John, you know. Which of the two goes first? And regarding that
  • name of Pross, likewise. That warn't your name over the water.”
  • “What do you mean?”
  • “Well, I don't know all I mean, for I can't call to mind what your name
  • was, over the water.”
  • “No?”
  • “No. But I'll swear it was a name of two syllables.”
  • “Indeed?”
  • “Yes. T'other one's was one syllable. I know you. You was a spy--witness
  • at the Bailey. What, in the name of the Father of Lies, own father to
  • yourself, was you called at that time?”
  • “Barsad,” said another voice, striking in.
  • “That's the name for a thousand pound!” cried Jerry.
  • The speaker who struck in, was Sydney Carton. He had his hands behind
  • him under the skirts of his riding-coat, and he stood at Mr. Cruncher's
  • elbow as negligently as he might have stood at the Old Bailey itself.
  • “Don't be alarmed, my dear Miss Pross. I arrived at Mr. Lorry's, to his
  • surprise, yesterday evening; we agreed that I would not present myself
  • elsewhere until all was well, or unless I could be useful; I present
  • myself here, to beg a little talk with your brother. I wish you had a
  • better employed brother than Mr. Barsad. I wish for your sake Mr. Barsad
  • was not a Sheep of the Prisons.”
  • Sheep was a cant word of the time for a spy, under the gaolers. The spy,
  • who was pale, turned paler, and asked him how he dared--
  • “I'll tell you,” said Sydney. “I lighted on you, Mr. Barsad, coming out
  • of the prison of the Conciergerie while I was contemplating the walls,
  • an hour or more ago. You have a face to be remembered, and I remember
  • faces well. Made curious by seeing you in that connection, and having
  • a reason, to which you are no stranger, for associating you with
  • the misfortunes of a friend now very unfortunate, I walked in your
  • direction. I walked into the wine-shop here, close after you, and
  • sat near you. I had no difficulty in deducing from your unreserved
  • conversation, and the rumour openly going about among your admirers, the
  • nature of your calling. And gradually, what I had done at random, seemed
  • to shape itself into a purpose, Mr. Barsad.”
  • “What purpose?” the spy asked.
  • “It would be troublesome, and might be dangerous, to explain in the
  • street. Could you favour me, in confidence, with some minutes of your
  • company--at the office of Tellson's Bank, for instance?”
  • “Under a threat?”
  • “Oh! Did I say that?”
  • “Then, why should I go there?”
  • “Really, Mr. Barsad, I can't say, if you can't.”
  • “Do you mean that you won't say, sir?” the spy irresolutely asked.
  • “You apprehend me very clearly, Mr. Barsad. I won't.”
  • Carton's negligent recklessness of manner came powerfully in aid of his
  • quickness and skill, in such a business as he had in his secret mind,
  • and with such a man as he had to do with. His practised eye saw it, and
  • made the most of it.
  • “Now, I told you so,” said the spy, casting a reproachful look at his
  • sister; “if any trouble comes of this, it's your doing.”
  • “Come, come, Mr. Barsad!” exclaimed Sydney. “Don't be ungrateful.
  • But for my great respect for your sister, I might not have led up so
  • pleasantly to a little proposal that I wish to make for our mutual
  • satisfaction. Do you go with me to the Bank?”
  • “I'll hear what you have got to say. Yes, I'll go with you.”
  • “I propose that we first conduct your sister safely to the corner of her
  • own street. Let me take your arm, Miss Pross. This is not a good city,
  • at this time, for you to be out in, unprotected; and as your escort
  • knows Mr. Barsad, I will invite him to Mr. Lorry's with us. Are we
  • ready? Come then!”
  • Miss Pross recalled soon afterwards, and to the end of her life
  • remembered, that as she pressed her hands on Sydney's arm and looked up
  • in his face, imploring him to do no hurt to Solomon, there was a braced
  • purpose in the arm and a kind of inspiration in the eyes, which not only
  • contradicted his light manner, but changed and raised the man. She was
  • too much occupied then with fears for the brother who so little deserved
  • her affection, and with Sydney's friendly reassurances, adequately to
  • heed what she observed.
  • They left her at the corner of the street, and Carton led the way to Mr.
  • Lorry's, which was within a few minutes' walk. John Barsad, or Solomon
  • Pross, walked at his side.
  • Mr. Lorry had just finished his dinner, and was sitting before a cheery
  • little log or two of fire--perhaps looking into their blaze for the
  • picture of that younger elderly gentleman from Tellson's, who had looked
  • into the red coals at the Royal George at Dover, now a good many years
  • ago. He turned his head as they entered, and showed the surprise with
  • which he saw a stranger.
  • “Miss Pross's brother, sir,” said Sydney. “Mr. Barsad.”
  • “Barsad?” repeated the old gentleman, “Barsad? I have an association
  • with the name--and with the face.”
  • “I told you you had a remarkable face, Mr. Barsad,” observed Carton,
  • coolly. “Pray sit down.”
  • As he took a chair himself, he supplied the link that Mr. Lorry wanted,
  • by saying to him with a frown, “Witness at that trial.” Mr. Lorry
  • immediately remembered, and regarded his new visitor with an undisguised
  • look of abhorrence.
  • “Mr. Barsad has been recognised by Miss Pross as the affectionate
  • brother you have heard of,” said Sydney, “and has acknowledged the
  • relationship. I pass to worse news. Darnay has been arrested again.”
  • Struck with consternation, the old gentleman exclaimed, “What do you
  • tell me! I left him safe and free within these two hours, and am about
  • to return to him!”
  • “Arrested for all that. When was it done, Mr. Barsad?”
  • “Just now, if at all.”
  • “Mr. Barsad is the best authority possible, sir,” said Sydney, “and I
  • have it from Mr. Barsad's communication to a friend and brother Sheep
  • over a bottle of wine, that the arrest has taken place. He left the
  • messengers at the gate, and saw them admitted by the porter. There is no
  • earthly doubt that he is retaken.”
  • Mr. Lorry's business eye read in the speaker's face that it was loss
  • of time to dwell upon the point. Confused, but sensible that something
  • might depend on his presence of mind, he commanded himself, and was
  • silently attentive.
  • “Now, I trust,” said Sydney to him, “that the name and influence of
  • Doctor Manette may stand him in as good stead to-morrow--you said he
  • would be before the Tribunal again to-morrow, Mr. Barsad?--”
  • “Yes; I believe so.”
  • “--In as good stead to-morrow as to-day. But it may not be so. I own
  • to you, I am shaken, Mr. Lorry, by Doctor Manette's not having had the
  • power to prevent this arrest.”
  • “He may not have known of it beforehand,” said Mr. Lorry.
  • “But that very circumstance would be alarming, when we remember how
  • identified he is with his son-in-law.”
  • “That's true,” Mr. Lorry acknowledged, with his troubled hand at his
  • chin, and his troubled eyes on Carton.
  • “In short,” said Sydney, “this is a desperate time, when desperate games
  • are played for desperate stakes. Let the Doctor play the winning game; I
  • will play the losing one. No man's life here is worth purchase. Any one
  • carried home by the people to-day, may be condemned tomorrow. Now, the
  • stake I have resolved to play for, in case of the worst, is a friend
  • in the Conciergerie. And the friend I purpose to myself to win, is Mr.
  • Barsad.”
  • “You need have good cards, sir,” said the spy.
  • “I'll run them over. I'll see what I hold,--Mr. Lorry, you know what a
  • brute I am; I wish you'd give me a little brandy.”
  • It was put before him, and he drank off a glassful--drank off another
  • glassful--pushed the bottle thoughtfully away.
  • “Mr. Barsad,” he went on, in the tone of one who really was looking
  • over a hand at cards: “Sheep of the prisons, emissary of Republican
  • committees, now turnkey, now prisoner, always spy and secret informer,
  • so much the more valuable here for being English that an Englishman
  • is less open to suspicion of subornation in those characters than a
  • Frenchman, represents himself to his employers under a false name.
  • That's a very good card. Mr. Barsad, now in the employ of the republican
  • French government, was formerly in the employ of the aristocratic
  • English government, the enemy of France and freedom. That's an excellent
  • card. Inference clear as day in this region of suspicion, that Mr.
  • Barsad, still in the pay of the aristocratic English government, is the
  • spy of Pitt, the treacherous foe of the Republic crouching in its bosom,
  • the English traitor and agent of all mischief so much spoken of and so
  • difficult to find. That's a card not to be beaten. Have you followed my
  • hand, Mr. Barsad?”
  • “Not to understand your play,” returned the spy, somewhat uneasily.
  • “I play my Ace, Denunciation of Mr. Barsad to the nearest Section
  • Committee. Look over your hand, Mr. Barsad, and see what you have. Don't
  • hurry.”
  • He drew the bottle near, poured out another glassful of brandy, and
  • drank it off. He saw that the spy was fearful of his drinking himself
  • into a fit state for the immediate denunciation of him. Seeing it, he
  • poured out and drank another glassful.
  • “Look over your hand carefully, Mr. Barsad. Take time.”
  • It was a poorer hand than he suspected. Mr. Barsad saw losing cards
  • in it that Sydney Carton knew nothing of. Thrown out of his honourable
  • employment in England, through too much unsuccessful hard swearing
  • there--not because he was not wanted there; our English reasons for
  • vaunting our superiority to secrecy and spies are of very modern
  • date--he knew that he had crossed the Channel, and accepted service in
  • France: first, as a tempter and an eavesdropper among his own countrymen
  • there: gradually, as a tempter and an eavesdropper among the natives. He
  • knew that under the overthrown government he had been a spy upon Saint
  • Antoine and Defarge's wine-shop; had received from the watchful police
  • such heads of information concerning Doctor Manette's imprisonment,
  • release, and history, as should serve him for an introduction to
  • familiar conversation with the Defarges; and tried them on Madame
  • Defarge, and had broken down with them signally. He always remembered
  • with fear and trembling, that that terrible woman had knitted when he
  • talked with her, and had looked ominously at him as her fingers moved.
  • He had since seen her, in the Section of Saint Antoine, over and over
  • again produce her knitted registers, and denounce people whose lives the
  • guillotine then surely swallowed up. He knew, as every one employed as
  • he was did, that he was never safe; that flight was impossible; that
  • he was tied fast under the shadow of the axe; and that in spite of
  • his utmost tergiversation and treachery in furtherance of the reigning
  • terror, a word might bring it down upon him. Once denounced, and on such
  • grave grounds as had just now been suggested to his mind, he foresaw
  • that the dreadful woman of whose unrelenting character he had seen many
  • proofs, would produce against him that fatal register, and would quash
  • his last chance of life. Besides that all secret men are men soon
  • terrified, here were surely cards enough of one black suit, to justify
  • the holder in growing rather livid as he turned them over.
  • “You scarcely seem to like your hand,” said Sydney, with the greatest
  • composure. “Do you play?”
  • “I think, sir,” said the spy, in the meanest manner, as he turned to Mr.
  • Lorry, “I may appeal to a gentleman of your years and benevolence, to
  • put it to this other gentleman, so much your junior, whether he can
  • under any circumstances reconcile it to his station to play that Ace
  • of which he has spoken. I admit that _I_ am a spy, and that it is
  • considered a discreditable station--though it must be filled by
  • somebody; but this gentleman is no spy, and why should he so demean
  • himself as to make himself one?”
  • “I play my Ace, Mr. Barsad,” said Carton, taking the answer on himself,
  • and looking at his watch, “without any scruple, in a very few minutes.”
  • “I should have hoped, gentlemen both,” said the spy, always striving to
  • hook Mr. Lorry into the discussion, “that your respect for my sister--”
  • “I could not better testify my respect for your sister than by finally
  • relieving her of her brother,” said Sydney Carton.
  • “You think not, sir?”
  • “I have thoroughly made up my mind about it.”
  • The smooth manner of the spy, curiously in dissonance with his
  • ostentatiously rough dress, and probably with his usual demeanour,
  • received such a check from the inscrutability of Carton,--who was a
  • mystery to wiser and honester men than he,--that it faltered here and
  • failed him. While he was at a loss, Carton said, resuming his former air
  • of contemplating cards:
  • “And indeed, now I think again, I have a strong impression that I
  • have another good card here, not yet enumerated. That friend and
  • fellow-Sheep, who spoke of himself as pasturing in the country prisons;
  • who was he?”
  • “French. You don't know him,” said the spy, quickly.
  • “French, eh?” repeated Carton, musing, and not appearing to notice him
  • at all, though he echoed his word. “Well; he may be.”
  • “Is, I assure you,” said the spy; “though it's not important.”
  • “Though it's not important,” repeated Carton, in the same mechanical
  • way--“though it's not important--No, it's not important. No. Yet I know
  • the face.”
  • “I think not. I am sure not. It can't be,” said the spy.
  • “It-can't-be,” muttered Sydney Carton, retrospectively, and idling his
  • glass (which fortunately was a small one) again. “Can't-be. Spoke good
  • French. Yet like a foreigner, I thought?”
  • “Provincial,” said the spy.
  • “No. Foreign!” cried Carton, striking his open hand on the table, as a
  • light broke clearly on his mind. “Cly! Disguised, but the same man. We
  • had that man before us at the Old Bailey.”
  • “Now, there you are hasty, sir,” said Barsad, with a smile that gave his
  • aquiline nose an extra inclination to one side; “there you really give
  • me an advantage over you. Cly (who I will unreservedly admit, at this
  • distance of time, was a partner of mine) has been dead several years. I
  • attended him in his last illness. He was buried in London, at the church
  • of Saint Pancras-in-the-Fields. His unpopularity with the blackguard
  • multitude at the moment prevented my following his remains, but I helped
  • to lay him in his coffin.”
  • Here, Mr. Lorry became aware, from where he sat, of a most remarkable
  • goblin shadow on the wall. Tracing it to its source, he discovered it
  • to be caused by a sudden extraordinary rising and stiffening of all the
  • risen and stiff hair on Mr. Cruncher's head.
  • “Let us be reasonable,” said the spy, “and let us be fair. To show you
  • how mistaken you are, and what an unfounded assumption yours is, I will
  • lay before you a certificate of Cly's burial, which I happened to have
  • carried in my pocket-book,” with a hurried hand he produced and opened
  • it, “ever since. There it is. Oh, look at it, look at it! You may take
  • it in your hand; it's no forgery.”
  • Here, Mr. Lorry perceived the reflection on the wall to elongate, and
  • Mr. Cruncher rose and stepped forward. His hair could not have been more
  • violently on end, if it had been that moment dressed by the Cow with the
  • crumpled horn in the house that Jack built.
  • Unseen by the spy, Mr. Cruncher stood at his side, and touched him on
  • the shoulder like a ghostly bailiff.
  • “That there Roger Cly, master,” said Mr. Cruncher, with a taciturn and
  • iron-bound visage. “So _you_ put him in his coffin?”
  • “I did.”
  • “Who took him out of it?”
  • Barsad leaned back in his chair, and stammered, “What do you mean?”
  • “I mean,” said Mr. Cruncher, “that he warn't never in it. No! Not he!
  • I'll have my head took off, if he was ever in it.”
  • The spy looked round at the two gentlemen; they both looked in
  • unspeakable astonishment at Jerry.
  • “I tell you,” said Jerry, “that you buried paving-stones and earth in
  • that there coffin. Don't go and tell me that you buried Cly. It was a
  • take in. Me and two more knows it.”
  • “How do you know it?”
  • “What's that to you? Ecod!” growled Mr. Cruncher, “it's you I have got a
  • old grudge again, is it, with your shameful impositions upon tradesmen!
  • I'd catch hold of your throat and choke you for half a guinea.”
  • Sydney Carton, who, with Mr. Lorry, had been lost in amazement at
  • this turn of the business, here requested Mr. Cruncher to moderate and
  • explain himself.
  • “At another time, sir,” he returned, evasively, “the present time is
  • ill-conwenient for explainin'. What I stand to, is, that he knows well
  • wot that there Cly was never in that there coffin. Let him say he was,
  • in so much as a word of one syllable, and I'll either catch hold of his
  • throat and choke him for half a guinea;” Mr. Cruncher dwelt upon this as
  • quite a liberal offer; “or I'll out and announce him.”
  • “Humph! I see one thing,” said Carton. “I hold another card, Mr. Barsad.
  • Impossible, here in raging Paris, with Suspicion filling the air, for
  • you to outlive denunciation, when you are in communication with another
  • aristocratic spy of the same antecedents as yourself, who, moreover, has
  • the mystery about him of having feigned death and come to life again!
  • A plot in the prisons, of the foreigner against the Republic. A strong
  • card--a certain Guillotine card! Do you play?”
  • “No!” returned the spy. “I throw up. I confess that we were so unpopular
  • with the outrageous mob, that I only got away from England at the risk
  • of being ducked to death, and that Cly was so ferreted up and down, that
  • he never would have got away at all but for that sham. Though how this
  • man knows it was a sham, is a wonder of wonders to me.”
  • “Never you trouble your head about this man,” retorted the contentious
  • Mr. Cruncher; “you'll have trouble enough with giving your attention to
  • that gentleman. And look here! Once more!”--Mr. Cruncher could not
  • be restrained from making rather an ostentatious parade of his
  • liberality--“I'd catch hold of your throat and choke you for half a
  • guinea.”
  • The Sheep of the prisons turned from him to Sydney Carton, and said,
  • with more decision, “It has come to a point. I go on duty soon, and
  • can't overstay my time. You told me you had a proposal; what is it?
  • Now, it is of no use asking too much of me. Ask me to do anything in my
  • office, putting my head in great extra danger, and I had better trust my
  • life to the chances of a refusal than the chances of consent. In short,
  • I should make that choice. You talk of desperation. We are all desperate
  • here. Remember! I may denounce you if I think proper, and I can swear my
  • way through stone walls, and so can others. Now, what do you want with
  • me?”
  • “Not very much. You are a turnkey at the Conciergerie?”
  • “I tell you once for all, there is no such thing as an escape possible,”
  • said the spy, firmly.
  • “Why need you tell me what I have not asked? You are a turnkey at the
  • Conciergerie?”
  • “I am sometimes.”
  • “You can be when you choose?”
  • “I can pass in and out when I choose.”
  • Sydney Carton filled another glass with brandy, poured it slowly out
  • upon the hearth, and watched it as it dropped. It being all spent, he
  • said, rising:
  • “So far, we have spoken before these two, because it was as well that
  • the merits of the cards should not rest solely between you and me. Come
  • into the dark room here, and let us have one final word alone.”
  • IX. The Game Made
  • While Sydney Carton and the Sheep of the prisons were in the adjoining
  • dark room, speaking so low that not a sound was heard, Mr. Lorry looked
  • at Jerry in considerable doubt and mistrust. That honest tradesman's
  • manner of receiving the look, did not inspire confidence; he changed the
  • leg on which he rested, as often as if he had fifty of those limbs,
  • and were trying them all; he examined his finger-nails with a very
  • questionable closeness of attention; and whenever Mr. Lorry's eye caught
  • his, he was taken with that peculiar kind of short cough requiring the
  • hollow of a hand before it, which is seldom, if ever, known to be an
  • infirmity attendant on perfect openness of character.
  • “Jerry,” said Mr. Lorry. “Come here.”
  • Mr. Cruncher came forward sideways, with one of his shoulders in advance
  • of him.
  • “What have you been, besides a messenger?”
  • After some cogitation, accompanied with an intent look at his patron,
  • Mr. Cruncher conceived the luminous idea of replying, “Agicultooral
  • character.”
  • “My mind misgives me much,” said Mr. Lorry, angrily shaking a forefinger
  • at him, “that you have used the respectable and great house of Tellson's
  • as a blind, and that you have had an unlawful occupation of an infamous
  • description. If you have, don't expect me to befriend you when you
  • get back to England. If you have, don't expect me to keep your secret.
  • Tellson's shall not be imposed upon.”
  • “I hope, sir,” pleaded the abashed Mr. Cruncher, “that a gentleman like
  • yourself wot I've had the honour of odd jobbing till I'm grey at it,
  • would think twice about harming of me, even if it wos so--I don't say it
  • is, but even if it wos. And which it is to be took into account that if
  • it wos, it wouldn't, even then, be all o' one side. There'd be two sides
  • to it. There might be medical doctors at the present hour, a picking
  • up their guineas where a honest tradesman don't pick up his
  • fardens--fardens! no, nor yet his half fardens--half fardens! no, nor
  • yet his quarter--a banking away like smoke at Tellson's, and a cocking
  • their medical eyes at that tradesman on the sly, a going in and going
  • out to their own carriages--ah! equally like smoke, if not more so.
  • Well, that 'ud be imposing, too, on Tellson's. For you cannot sarse the
  • goose and not the gander. And here's Mrs. Cruncher, or leastways wos
  • in the Old England times, and would be to-morrow, if cause given,
  • a floppin' again the business to that degree as is ruinating--stark
  • ruinating! Whereas them medical doctors' wives don't flop--catch 'em at
  • it! Or, if they flop, their floppings goes in favour of more patients,
  • and how can you rightly have one without t'other? Then, wot with
  • undertakers, and wot with parish clerks, and wot with sextons, and wot
  • with private watchmen (all awaricious and all in it), a man wouldn't get
  • much by it, even if it wos so. And wot little a man did get, would never
  • prosper with him, Mr. Lorry. He'd never have no good of it; he'd want
  • all along to be out of the line, if he, could see his way out, being
  • once in--even if it wos so.”
  • “Ugh!” cried Mr. Lorry, rather relenting, nevertheless, “I am shocked at
  • the sight of you.”
  • “Now, what I would humbly offer to you, sir,” pursued Mr. Cruncher,
  • “even if it wos so, which I don't say it is--”
  • “Don't prevaricate,” said Mr. Lorry.
  • “No, I will _not_, sir,” returned Mr. Crunches as if nothing were
  • further from his thoughts or practice--“which I don't say it is--wot I
  • would humbly offer to you, sir, would be this. Upon that there stool, at
  • that there Bar, sets that there boy of mine, brought up and growed up to
  • be a man, wot will errand you, message you, general-light-job you, till
  • your heels is where your head is, if such should be your wishes. If it
  • wos so, which I still don't say it is (for I will not prewaricate to
  • you, sir), let that there boy keep his father's place, and take care of
  • his mother; don't blow upon that boy's father--do not do it, sir--and
  • let that father go into the line of the reg'lar diggin', and make amends
  • for what he would have undug--if it wos so--by diggin' of 'em in with
  • a will, and with conwictions respectin' the futur' keepin' of 'em safe.
  • That, Mr. Lorry,” said Mr. Cruncher, wiping his forehead with his
  • arm, as an announcement that he had arrived at the peroration of his
  • discourse, “is wot I would respectfully offer to you, sir. A man don't
  • see all this here a goin' on dreadful round him, in the way of Subjects
  • without heads, dear me, plentiful enough fur to bring the price down
  • to porterage and hardly that, without havin' his serious thoughts of
  • things. And these here would be mine, if it wos so, entreatin' of you
  • fur to bear in mind that wot I said just now, I up and said in the good
  • cause when I might have kep' it back.”
  • “That at least is true,” said Mr. Lorry. “Say no more now. It may be
  • that I shall yet stand your friend, if you deserve it, and repent in
  • action--not in words. I want no more words.”
  • Mr. Cruncher knuckled his forehead, as Sydney Carton and the spy
  • returned from the dark room. “Adieu, Mr. Barsad,” said the former; “our
  • arrangement thus made, you have nothing to fear from me.”
  • He sat down in a chair on the hearth, over against Mr. Lorry. When they
  • were alone, Mr. Lorry asked him what he had done?
  • “Not much. If it should go ill with the prisoner, I have ensured access
  • to him, once.”
  • Mr. Lorry's countenance fell.
  • “It is all I could do,” said Carton. “To propose too much, would be
  • to put this man's head under the axe, and, as he himself said, nothing
  • worse could happen to him if he were denounced. It was obviously the
  • weakness of the position. There is no help for it.”
  • “But access to him,” said Mr. Lorry, “if it should go ill before the
  • Tribunal, will not save him.”
  • “I never said it would.”
  • Mr. Lorry's eyes gradually sought the fire; his sympathy with his
  • darling, and the heavy disappointment of his second arrest, gradually
  • weakened them; he was an old man now, overborne with anxiety of late,
  • and his tears fell.
  • “You are a good man and a true friend,” said Carton, in an altered
  • voice. “Forgive me if I notice that you are affected. I could not see my
  • father weep, and sit by, careless. And I could not respect your
  • sorrow more, if you were my father. You are free from that misfortune,
  • however.”
  • Though he said the last words, with a slip into his usual manner, there
  • was a true feeling and respect both in his tone and in his touch,
  • that Mr. Lorry, who had never seen the better side of him, was wholly
  • unprepared for. He gave him his hand, and Carton gently pressed it.
  • “To return to poor Darnay,” said Carton. “Don't tell Her of this
  • interview, or this arrangement. It would not enable Her to go to see
  • him. She might think it was contrived, in case of the worse, to convey
  • to him the means of anticipating the sentence.”
  • Mr. Lorry had not thought of that, and he looked quickly at Carton to
  • see if it were in his mind. It seemed to be; he returned the look, and
  • evidently understood it.
  • “She might think a thousand things,” Carton said, “and any of them would
  • only add to her trouble. Don't speak of me to her. As I said to you when
  • I first came, I had better not see her. I can put my hand out, to do any
  • little helpful work for her that my hand can find to do, without that.
  • You are going to her, I hope? She must be very desolate to-night.”
  • “I am going now, directly.”
  • “I am glad of that. She has such a strong attachment to you and reliance
  • on you. How does she look?”
  • “Anxious and unhappy, but very beautiful.”
  • “Ah!”
  • It was a long, grieving sound, like a sigh--almost like a sob. It
  • attracted Mr. Lorry's eyes to Carton's face, which was turned to the
  • fire. A light, or a shade (the old gentleman could not have said which),
  • passed from it as swiftly as a change will sweep over a hill-side on a
  • wild bright day, and he lifted his foot to put back one of the little
  • flaming logs, which was tumbling forward. He wore the white riding-coat
  • and top-boots, then in vogue, and the light of the fire touching their
  • light surfaces made him look very pale, with his long brown hair,
  • all untrimmed, hanging loose about him. His indifference to fire was
  • sufficiently remarkable to elicit a word of remonstrance from Mr. Lorry;
  • his boot was still upon the hot embers of the flaming log, when it had
  • broken under the weight of his foot.
  • “I forgot it,” he said.
  • Mr. Lorry's eyes were again attracted to his face. Taking note of the
  • wasted air which clouded the naturally handsome features, and having
  • the expression of prisoners' faces fresh in his mind, he was strongly
  • reminded of that expression.
  • “And your duties here have drawn to an end, sir?” said Carton, turning
  • to him.
  • “Yes. As I was telling you last night when Lucie came in so
  • unexpectedly, I have at length done all that I can do here. I hoped to
  • have left them in perfect safety, and then to have quitted Paris. I have
  • my Leave to Pass. I was ready to go.”
  • They were both silent.
  • “Yours is a long life to look back upon, sir?” said Carton, wistfully.
  • “I am in my seventy-eighth year.”
  • “You have been useful all your life; steadily and constantly occupied;
  • trusted, respected, and looked up to?”
  • “I have been a man of business, ever since I have been a man. Indeed, I
  • may say that I was a man of business when a boy.”
  • “See what a place you fill at seventy-eight. How many people will miss
  • you when you leave it empty!”
  • “A solitary old bachelor,” answered Mr. Lorry, shaking his head. “There
  • is nobody to weep for me.”
  • “How can you say that? Wouldn't She weep for you? Wouldn't her child?”
  • “Yes, yes, thank God. I didn't quite mean what I said.”
  • “It _is_ a thing to thank God for; is it not?”
  • “Surely, surely.”
  • “If you could say, with truth, to your own solitary heart, to-night,
  • 'I have secured to myself the love and attachment, the gratitude or
  • respect, of no human creature; I have won myself a tender place in no
  • regard; I have done nothing good or serviceable to be remembered by!'
  • your seventy-eight years would be seventy-eight heavy curses; would they
  • not?”
  • “You say truly, Mr. Carton; I think they would be.”
  • Sydney turned his eyes again upon the fire, and, after a silence of a
  • few moments, said:
  • “I should like to ask you:--Does your childhood seem far off? Do the
  • days when you sat at your mother's knee, seem days of very long ago?”
  • Responding to his softened manner, Mr. Lorry answered:
  • “Twenty years back, yes; at this time of my life, no. For, as I draw
  • closer and closer to the end, I travel in the circle, nearer and
  • nearer to the beginning. It seems to be one of the kind smoothings and
  • preparings of the way. My heart is touched now, by many remembrances
  • that had long fallen asleep, of my pretty young mother (and I so old!),
  • and by many associations of the days when what we call the World was not
  • so real with me, and my faults were not confirmed in me.”
  • “I understand the feeling!” exclaimed Carton, with a bright flush. “And
  • you are the better for it?”
  • “I hope so.”
  • Carton terminated the conversation here, by rising to help him on with
  • his outer coat; “But you,” said Mr. Lorry, reverting to the theme, “you
  • are young.”
  • “Yes,” said Carton. “I am not old, but my young way was never the way to
  • age. Enough of me.”
  • “And of me, I am sure,” said Mr. Lorry. “Are you going out?”
  • “I'll walk with you to her gate. You know my vagabond and restless
  • habits. If I should prowl about the streets a long time, don't be
  • uneasy; I shall reappear in the morning. You go to the Court to-morrow?”
  • “Yes, unhappily.”
  • “I shall be there, but only as one of the crowd. My Spy will find a
  • place for me. Take my arm, sir.”
  • Mr. Lorry did so, and they went down-stairs and out in the streets. A
  • few minutes brought them to Mr. Lorry's destination. Carton left him
  • there; but lingered at a little distance, and turned back to the gate
  • again when it was shut, and touched it. He had heard of her going to
  • the prison every day. “She came out here,” he said, looking about him,
  • “turned this way, must have trod on these stones often. Let me follow in
  • her steps.”
  • It was ten o'clock at night when he stood before the prison of La Force,
  • where she had stood hundreds of times. A little wood-sawyer, having
  • closed his shop, was smoking his pipe at his shop-door.
  • “Good night, citizen,” said Sydney Carton, pausing in going by; for, the
  • man eyed him inquisitively.
  • “Good night, citizen.”
  • “How goes the Republic?”
  • “You mean the Guillotine. Not ill. Sixty-three to-day. We shall mount
  • to a hundred soon. Samson and his men complain sometimes, of being
  • exhausted. Ha, ha, ha! He is so droll, that Samson. Such a Barber!”
  • “Do you often go to see him--”
  • “Shave? Always. Every day. What a barber! You have seen him at work?”
  • “Never.”
  • “Go and see him when he has a good batch. Figure this to yourself,
  • citizen; he shaved the sixty-three to-day, in less than two pipes! Less
  • than two pipes. Word of honour!”
  • As the grinning little man held out the pipe he was smoking, to explain
  • how he timed the executioner, Carton was so sensible of a rising desire
  • to strike the life out of him, that he turned away.
  • “But you are not English,” said the wood-sawyer, “though you wear
  • English dress?”
  • “Yes,” said Carton, pausing again, and answering over his shoulder.
  • “You speak like a Frenchman.”
  • “I am an old student here.”
  • “Aha, a perfect Frenchman! Good night, Englishman.”
  • “Good night, citizen.”
  • “But go and see that droll dog,” the little man persisted, calling after
  • him. “And take a pipe with you!”
  • Sydney had not gone far out of sight, when he stopped in the middle of
  • the street under a glimmering lamp, and wrote with his pencil on a scrap
  • of paper. Then, traversing with the decided step of one who remembered
  • the way well, several dark and dirty streets--much dirtier than usual,
  • for the best public thoroughfares remained uncleansed in those times of
  • terror--he stopped at a chemist's shop, which the owner was closing with
  • his own hands. A small, dim, crooked shop, kept in a tortuous, up-hill
  • thoroughfare, by a small, dim, crooked man.
  • Giving this citizen, too, good night, as he confronted him at his
  • counter, he laid the scrap of paper before him. “Whew!” the chemist
  • whistled softly, as he read it. “Hi! hi! hi!”
  • Sydney Carton took no heed, and the chemist said:
  • “For you, citizen?”
  • “For me.”
  • “You will be careful to keep them separate, citizen? You know the
  • consequences of mixing them?”
  • “Perfectly.”
  • Certain small packets were made and given to him. He put them, one by
  • one, in the breast of his inner coat, counted out the money for them,
  • and deliberately left the shop. “There is nothing more to do,” said he,
  • glancing upward at the moon, “until to-morrow. I can't sleep.”
  • It was not a reckless manner, the manner in which he said these words
  • aloud under the fast-sailing clouds, nor was it more expressive of
  • negligence than defiance. It was the settled manner of a tired man, who
  • had wandered and struggled and got lost, but who at length struck into
  • his road and saw its end.
  • Long ago, when he had been famous among his earliest competitors as a
  • youth of great promise, he had followed his father to the grave. His
  • mother had died, years before. These solemn words, which had been
  • read at his father's grave, arose in his mind as he went down the dark
  • streets, among the heavy shadows, with the moon and the clouds sailing
  • on high above him. “I am the resurrection and the life, saith the Lord:
  • he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and
  • whosoever liveth and believeth in me, shall never die.”
  • In a city dominated by the axe, alone at night, with natural sorrow
  • rising in him for the sixty-three who had been that day put to death,
  • and for to-morrow's victims then awaiting their doom in the prisons,
  • and still of to-morrow's and to-morrow's, the chain of association that
  • brought the words home, like a rusty old ship's anchor from the deep,
  • might have been easily found. He did not seek it, but repeated them and
  • went on.
  • With a solemn interest in the lighted windows where the people were
  • going to rest, forgetful through a few calm hours of the horrors
  • surrounding them; in the towers of the churches, where no prayers
  • were said, for the popular revulsion had even travelled that length
  • of self-destruction from years of priestly impostors, plunderers, and
  • profligates; in the distant burial-places, reserved, as they wrote upon
  • the gates, for Eternal Sleep; in the abounding gaols; and in the streets
  • along which the sixties rolled to a death which had become so common and
  • material, that no sorrowful story of a haunting Spirit ever arose among
  • the people out of all the working of the Guillotine; with a solemn
  • interest in the whole life and death of the city settling down to its
  • short nightly pause in fury; Sydney Carton crossed the Seine again for
  • the lighter streets.
  • Few coaches were abroad, for riders in coaches were liable to be
  • suspected, and gentility hid its head in red nightcaps, and put on heavy
  • shoes, and trudged. But, the theatres were all well filled, and the
  • people poured cheerfully out as he passed, and went chatting home. At
  • one of the theatre doors, there was a little girl with a mother, looking
  • for a way across the street through the mud. He carried the child over,
  • and before the timid arm was loosed from his neck asked her for a kiss.
  • “I am the resurrection and the life, saith the Lord: he that believeth
  • in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and
  • believeth in me, shall never die.”
  • Now, that the streets were quiet, and the night wore on, the words
  • were in the echoes of his feet, and were in the air. Perfectly calm
  • and steady, he sometimes repeated them to himself as he walked; but, he
  • heard them always.
  • The night wore out, and, as he stood upon the bridge listening to the
  • water as it splashed the river-walls of the Island of Paris, where the
  • picturesque confusion of houses and cathedral shone bright in the light
  • of the moon, the day came coldly, looking like a dead face out of the
  • sky. Then, the night, with the moon and the stars, turned pale and died,
  • and for a little while it seemed as if Creation were delivered over to
  • Death's dominion.
  • But, the glorious sun, rising, seemed to strike those words, that burden
  • of the night, straight and warm to his heart in its long bright rays.
  • And looking along them, with reverently shaded eyes, a bridge of light
  • appeared to span the air between him and the sun, while the river
  • sparkled under it.
  • The strong tide, so swift, so deep, and certain, was like a congenial
  • friend, in the morning stillness. He walked by the stream, far from the
  • houses, and in the light and warmth of the sun fell asleep on the
  • bank. When he awoke and was afoot again, he lingered there yet a little
  • longer, watching an eddy that turned and turned purposeless, until the
  • stream absorbed it, and carried it on to the sea.--“Like me.”
  • A trading-boat, with a sail of the softened colour of a dead leaf, then
  • glided into his view, floated by him, and died away. As its silent track
  • in the water disappeared, the prayer that had broken up out of his heart
  • for a merciful consideration of all his poor blindnesses and errors,
  • ended in the words, “I am the resurrection and the life.”
  • Mr. Lorry was already out when he got back, and it was easy to surmise
  • where the good old man was gone. Sydney Carton drank nothing but a
  • little coffee, ate some bread, and, having washed and changed to refresh
  • himself, went out to the place of trial.
  • The court was all astir and a-buzz, when the black sheep--whom many fell
  • away from in dread--pressed him into an obscure corner among the crowd.
  • Mr. Lorry was there, and Doctor Manette was there. She was there,
  • sitting beside her father.
  • When her husband was brought in, she turned a look upon him, so
  • sustaining, so encouraging, so full of admiring love and pitying
  • tenderness, yet so courageous for his sake, that it called the healthy
  • blood into his face, brightened his glance, and animated his heart. If
  • there had been any eyes to notice the influence of her look, on Sydney
  • Carton, it would have been seen to be the same influence exactly.
  • Before that unjust Tribunal, there was little or no order of procedure,
  • ensuring to any accused person any reasonable hearing. There could have
  • been no such Revolution, if all laws, forms, and ceremonies, had not
  • first been so monstrously abused, that the suicidal vengeance of the
  • Revolution was to scatter them all to the winds.
  • Every eye was turned to the jury. The same determined patriots and good
  • republicans as yesterday and the day before, and to-morrow and the day
  • after. Eager and prominent among them, one man with a craving face, and
  • his fingers perpetually hovering about his lips, whose appearance
  • gave great satisfaction to the spectators. A life-thirsting,
  • cannibal-looking, bloody-minded juryman, the Jacques Three of St.
  • Antoine. The whole jury, as a jury of dogs empannelled to try the deer.
  • Every eye then turned to the five judges and the public prosecutor.
  • No favourable leaning in that quarter to-day. A fell, uncompromising,
  • murderous business-meaning there. Every eye then sought some other eye
  • in the crowd, and gleamed at it approvingly; and heads nodded at one
  • another, before bending forward with a strained attention.
  • Charles Evremonde, called Darnay. Released yesterday. Reaccused and
  • retaken yesterday. Indictment delivered to him last night. Suspected and
  • Denounced enemy of the Republic, Aristocrat, one of a family of tyrants,
  • one of a race proscribed, for that they had used their abolished
  • privileges to the infamous oppression of the people. Charles Evremonde,
  • called Darnay, in right of such proscription, absolutely Dead in Law.
  • To this effect, in as few or fewer words, the Public Prosecutor.
  • The President asked, was the Accused openly denounced or secretly?
  • “Openly, President.”
  • “By whom?”
  • “Three voices. Ernest Defarge, wine-vendor of St. Antoine.”
  • “Good.”
  • “Therese Defarge, his wife.”
  • “Good.”
  • “Alexandre Manette, physician.”
  • A great uproar took place in the court, and in the midst of it, Doctor
  • Manette was seen, pale and trembling, standing where he had been seated.
  • “President, I indignantly protest to you that this is a forgery and
  • a fraud. You know the accused to be the husband of my daughter. My
  • daughter, and those dear to her, are far dearer to me than my life. Who
  • and where is the false conspirator who says that I denounce the husband
  • of my child!”
  • “Citizen Manette, be tranquil. To fail in submission to the authority of
  • the Tribunal would be to put yourself out of Law. As to what is dearer
  • to you than life, nothing can be so dear to a good citizen as the
  • Republic.”
  • Loud acclamations hailed this rebuke. The President rang his bell, and
  • with warmth resumed.
  • “If the Republic should demand of you the sacrifice of your child
  • herself, you would have no duty but to sacrifice her. Listen to what is
  • to follow. In the meanwhile, be silent!”
  • Frantic acclamations were again raised. Doctor Manette sat down, with
  • his eyes looking around, and his lips trembling; his daughter drew
  • closer to him. The craving man on the jury rubbed his hands together,
  • and restored the usual hand to his mouth.
  • Defarge was produced, when the court was quiet enough to admit of his
  • being heard, and rapidly expounded the story of the imprisonment, and of
  • his having been a mere boy in the Doctor's service, and of the release,
  • and of the state of the prisoner when released and delivered to him.
  • This short examination followed, for the court was quick with its work.
  • “You did good service at the taking of the Bastille, citizen?”
  • “I believe so.”
  • Here, an excited woman screeched from the crowd: “You were one of the
  • best patriots there. Why not say so? You were a cannonier that day
  • there, and you were among the first to enter the accursed fortress when
  • it fell. Patriots, I speak the truth!”
  • It was The Vengeance who, amidst the warm commendations of the audience,
  • thus assisted the proceedings. The President rang his bell; but, The
  • Vengeance, warming with encouragement, shrieked, “I defy that bell!”
  • wherein she was likewise much commended.
  • “Inform the Tribunal of what you did that day within the Bastille,
  • citizen.”
  • “I knew,” said Defarge, looking down at his wife, who stood at the
  • bottom of the steps on which he was raised, looking steadily up at him;
  • “I knew that this prisoner, of whom I speak, had been confined in a cell
  • known as One Hundred and Five, North Tower. I knew it from himself. He
  • knew himself by no other name than One Hundred and Five, North Tower,
  • when he made shoes under my care. As I serve my gun that day, I resolve,
  • when the place shall fall, to examine that cell. It falls. I mount to
  • the cell, with a fellow-citizen who is one of the Jury, directed by a
  • gaoler. I examine it, very closely. In a hole in the chimney, where a
  • stone has been worked out and replaced, I find a written paper. This is
  • that written paper. I have made it my business to examine some specimens
  • of the writing of Doctor Manette. This is the writing of Doctor Manette.
  • I confide this paper, in the writing of Doctor Manette, to the hands of
  • the President.”
  • “Let it be read.”
  • In a dead silence and stillness--the prisoner under trial looking
  • lovingly at his wife, his wife only looking from him to look with
  • solicitude at her father, Doctor Manette keeping his eyes fixed on the
  • reader, Madame Defarge never taking hers from the prisoner, Defarge
  • never taking his from his feasting wife, and all the other eyes there
  • intent upon the Doctor, who saw none of them--the paper was read, as
  • follows.
  • X. The Substance of the Shadow
  • “I, Alexandre Manette, unfortunate physician, native of Beauvais, and
  • afterwards resident in Paris, write this melancholy paper in my doleful
  • cell in the Bastille, during the last month of the year, 1767. I write
  • it at stolen intervals, under every difficulty. I design to secrete it
  • in the wall of the chimney, where I have slowly and laboriously made a
  • place of concealment for it. Some pitying hand may find it there, when I
  • and my sorrows are dust.
  • “These words are formed by the rusty iron point with which I write with
  • difficulty in scrapings of soot and charcoal from the chimney, mixed
  • with blood, in the last month of the tenth year of my captivity. Hope
  • has quite departed from my breast. I know from terrible warnings I have
  • noted in myself that my reason will not long remain unimpaired, but I
  • solemnly declare that I am at this time in the possession of my right
  • mind--that my memory is exact and circumstantial--and that I write the
  • truth as I shall answer for these my last recorded words, whether they
  • be ever read by men or not, at the Eternal Judgment-seat.
  • “One cloudy moonlight night, in the third week of December (I think the
  • twenty-second of the month) in the year 1757, I was walking on a retired
  • part of the quay by the Seine for the refreshment of the frosty air,
  • at an hour's distance from my place of residence in the Street of the
  • School of Medicine, when a carriage came along behind me, driven very
  • fast. As I stood aside to let that carriage pass, apprehensive that it
  • might otherwise run me down, a head was put out at the window, and a
  • voice called to the driver to stop.
  • “The carriage stopped as soon as the driver could rein in his horses,
  • and the same voice called to me by my name. I answered. The carriage
  • was then so far in advance of me that two gentlemen had time to open the
  • door and alight before I came up with it.
  • “I observed that they were both wrapped in cloaks, and appeared to
  • conceal themselves. As they stood side by side near the carriage door,
  • I also observed that they both looked of about my own age, or rather
  • younger, and that they were greatly alike, in stature, manner, voice,
  • and (as far as I could see) face too.
  • “'You are Doctor Manette?' said one.
  • “I am.”
  • “'Doctor Manette, formerly of Beauvais,' said the other; 'the young
  • physician, originally an expert surgeon, who within the last year or two
  • has made a rising reputation in Paris?'
  • “'Gentlemen,' I returned, 'I am that Doctor Manette of whom you speak so
  • graciously.'
  • “'We have been to your residence,' said the first, 'and not being
  • so fortunate as to find you there, and being informed that you were
  • probably walking in this direction, we followed, in the hope of
  • overtaking you. Will you please to enter the carriage?'
  • “The manner of both was imperious, and they both moved, as these words
  • were spoken, so as to place me between themselves and the carriage door.
  • They were armed. I was not.
  • “'Gentlemen,' said I, 'pardon me; but I usually inquire who does me
  • the honour to seek my assistance, and what is the nature of the case to
  • which I am summoned.'
  • “The reply to this was made by him who had spoken second. 'Doctor,
  • your clients are people of condition. As to the nature of the case,
  • our confidence in your skill assures us that you will ascertain it for
  • yourself better than we can describe it. Enough. Will you please to
  • enter the carriage?'
  • “I could do nothing but comply, and I entered it in silence. They both
  • entered after me--the last springing in, after putting up the steps. The
  • carriage turned about, and drove on at its former speed.
  • “I repeat this conversation exactly as it occurred. I have no doubt that
  • it is, word for word, the same. I describe everything exactly as it took
  • place, constraining my mind not to wander from the task. Where I make
  • the broken marks that follow here, I leave off for the time, and put my
  • paper in its hiding-place.
  • *****
  • “The carriage left the streets behind, passed the North Barrier, and
  • emerged upon the country road. At two-thirds of a league from the
  • Barrier--I did not estimate the distance at that time, but afterwards
  • when I traversed it--it struck out of the main avenue, and presently
  • stopped at a solitary house, We all three alighted, and walked, by
  • a damp soft footpath in a garden where a neglected fountain had
  • overflowed, to the door of the house. It was not opened immediately, in
  • answer to the ringing of the bell, and one of my two conductors struck
  • the man who opened it, with his heavy riding glove, across the face.
  • “There was nothing in this action to attract my particular attention,
  • for I had seen common people struck more commonly than dogs. But, the
  • other of the two, being angry likewise, struck the man in like manner
  • with his arm; the look and bearing of the brothers were then so exactly
  • alike, that I then first perceived them to be twin brothers.
  • “From the time of our alighting at the outer gate (which we found
  • locked, and which one of the brothers had opened to admit us, and had
  • relocked), I had heard cries proceeding from an upper chamber. I was
  • conducted to this chamber straight, the cries growing louder as we
  • ascended the stairs, and I found a patient in a high fever of the brain,
  • lying on a bed.
  • “The patient was a woman of great beauty, and young; assuredly not much
  • past twenty. Her hair was torn and ragged, and her arms were bound to
  • her sides with sashes and handkerchiefs. I noticed that these bonds were
  • all portions of a gentleman's dress. On one of them, which was a fringed
  • scarf for a dress of ceremony, I saw the armorial bearings of a Noble,
  • and the letter E.
  • “I saw this, within the first minute of my contemplation of the patient;
  • for, in her restless strivings she had turned over on her face on the
  • edge of the bed, had drawn the end of the scarf into her mouth, and was
  • in danger of suffocation. My first act was to put out my hand to relieve
  • her breathing; and in moving the scarf aside, the embroidery in the
  • corner caught my sight.
  • “I turned her gently over, placed my hands upon her breast to calm her
  • and keep her down, and looked into her face. Her eyes were dilated and
  • wild, and she constantly uttered piercing shrieks, and repeated the
  • words, 'My husband, my father, and my brother!' and then counted up to
  • twelve, and said, 'Hush!' For an instant, and no more, she would pause
  • to listen, and then the piercing shrieks would begin again, and she
  • would repeat the cry, 'My husband, my father, and my brother!' and
  • would count up to twelve, and say, 'Hush!' There was no variation in the
  • order, or the manner. There was no cessation, but the regular moment's
  • pause, in the utterance of these sounds.
  • “'How long,' I asked, 'has this lasted?'
  • “To distinguish the brothers, I will call them the elder and the
  • younger; by the elder, I mean him who exercised the most authority. It
  • was the elder who replied, 'Since about this hour last night.'
  • “'She has a husband, a father, and a brother?'
  • “'A brother.'
  • “'I do not address her brother?'
  • “He answered with great contempt, 'No.'
  • “'She has some recent association with the number twelve?'
  • “The younger brother impatiently rejoined, 'With twelve o'clock?'
  • “'See, gentlemen,' said I, still keeping my hands upon her breast, 'how
  • useless I am, as you have brought me! If I had known what I was coming
  • to see, I could have come provided. As it is, time must be lost. There
  • are no medicines to be obtained in this lonely place.'
  • “The elder brother looked to the younger, who said haughtily, 'There is
  • a case of medicines here;' and brought it from a closet, and put it on
  • the table.
  • *****
  • “I opened some of the bottles, smelt them, and put the stoppers to my
  • lips. If I had wanted to use anything save narcotic medicines that were
  • poisons in themselves, I would not have administered any of those.
  • “'Do you doubt them?' asked the younger brother.
  • “'You see, monsieur, I am going to use them,' I replied, and said no
  • more.
  • “I made the patient swallow, with great difficulty, and after many
  • efforts, the dose that I desired to give. As I intended to repeat it
  • after a while, and as it was necessary to watch its influence, I then
  • sat down by the side of the bed. There was a timid and suppressed woman
  • in attendance (wife of the man down-stairs), who had retreated into
  • a corner. The house was damp and decayed, indifferently
  • furnished--evidently, recently occupied and temporarily used. Some thick
  • old hangings had been nailed up before the windows, to deaden the
  • sound of the shrieks. They continued to be uttered in their regular
  • succession, with the cry, 'My husband, my father, and my brother!' the
  • counting up to twelve, and 'Hush!' The frenzy was so violent, that I had
  • not unfastened the bandages restraining the arms; but, I had looked to
  • them, to see that they were not painful. The only spark of encouragement
  • in the case, was, that my hand upon the sufferer's breast had this much
  • soothing influence, that for minutes at a time it tranquillised the
  • figure. It had no effect upon the cries; no pendulum could be more
  • regular.
  • “For the reason that my hand had this effect (I assume), I had sat by
  • the side of the bed for half an hour, with the two brothers looking on,
  • before the elder said:
  • “'There is another patient.'
  • “I was startled, and asked, 'Is it a pressing case?'
  • “'You had better see,' he carelessly answered; and took up a light.
  • *****
  • “The other patient lay in a back room across a second staircase, which
  • was a species of loft over a stable. There was a low plastered ceiling
  • to a part of it; the rest was open, to the ridge of the tiled roof, and
  • there were beams across. Hay and straw were stored in that portion of
  • the place, fagots for firing, and a heap of apples in sand. I had to
  • pass through that part, to get at the other. My memory is circumstantial
  • and unshaken. I try it with these details, and I see them all, in
  • this my cell in the Bastille, near the close of the tenth year of my
  • captivity, as I saw them all that night.
  • “On some hay on the ground, with a cushion thrown under his head, lay a
  • handsome peasant boy--a boy of not more than seventeen at the most.
  • He lay on his back, with his teeth set, his right hand clenched on his
  • breast, and his glaring eyes looking straight upward. I could not see
  • where his wound was, as I kneeled on one knee over him; but, I could see
  • that he was dying of a wound from a sharp point.
  • “'I am a doctor, my poor fellow,' said I. 'Let me examine it.'
  • “'I do not want it examined,' he answered; 'let it be.'
  • “It was under his hand, and I soothed him to let me move his hand away.
  • The wound was a sword-thrust, received from twenty to twenty-four hours
  • before, but no skill could have saved him if it had been looked to
  • without delay. He was then dying fast. As I turned my eyes to the elder
  • brother, I saw him looking down at this handsome boy whose life was
  • ebbing out, as if he were a wounded bird, or hare, or rabbit; not at all
  • as if he were a fellow-creature.
  • “'How has this been done, monsieur?' said I.
  • “'A crazed young common dog! A serf! Forced my brother to draw upon him,
  • and has fallen by my brother's sword--like a gentleman.'
  • “There was no touch of pity, sorrow, or kindred humanity, in this
  • answer. The speaker seemed to acknowledge that it was inconvenient to
  • have that different order of creature dying there, and that it would
  • have been better if he had died in the usual obscure routine of his
  • vermin kind. He was quite incapable of any compassionate feeling about
  • the boy, or about his fate.
  • “The boy's eyes had slowly moved to him as he had spoken, and they now
  • slowly moved to me.
  • “'Doctor, they are very proud, these Nobles; but we common dogs are
  • proud too, sometimes. They plunder us, outrage us, beat us, kill us; but
  • we have a little pride left, sometimes. She--have you seen her, Doctor?'
  • “The shrieks and the cries were audible there, though subdued by the
  • distance. He referred to them, as if she were lying in our presence.
  • “I said, 'I have seen her.'
  • “'She is my sister, Doctor. They have had their shameful rights, these
  • Nobles, in the modesty and virtue of our sisters, many years, but we
  • have had good girls among us. I know it, and have heard my father say
  • so. She was a good girl. She was betrothed to a good young man, too: a
  • tenant of his. We were all tenants of his--that man's who stands there.
  • The other is his brother, the worst of a bad race.'
  • “It was with the greatest difficulty that the boy gathered bodily force
  • to speak; but, his spirit spoke with a dreadful emphasis.
  • “'We were so robbed by that man who stands there, as all we common dogs
  • are by those superior Beings--taxed by him without mercy, obliged to
  • work for him without pay, obliged to grind our corn at his mill, obliged
  • to feed scores of his tame birds on our wretched crops, and forbidden
  • for our lives to keep a single tame bird of our own, pillaged and
  • plundered to that degree that when we chanced to have a bit of meat, we
  • ate it in fear, with the door barred and the shutters closed, that his
  • people should not see it and take it from us--I say, we were so robbed,
  • and hunted, and were made so poor, that our father told us it was a
  • dreadful thing to bring a child into the world, and that what we should
  • most pray for, was, that our women might be barren and our miserable
  • race die out!'
  • “I had never before seen the sense of being oppressed, bursting forth
  • like a fire. I had supposed that it must be latent in the people
  • somewhere; but, I had never seen it break out, until I saw it in the
  • dying boy.
  • “'Nevertheless, Doctor, my sister married. He was ailing at that time,
  • poor fellow, and she married her lover, that she might tend and comfort
  • him in our cottage--our dog-hut, as that man would call it. She had not
  • been married many weeks, when that man's brother saw her and admired
  • her, and asked that man to lend her to him--for what are husbands among
  • us! He was willing enough, but my sister was good and virtuous, and
  • hated his brother with a hatred as strong as mine. What did the two
  • then, to persuade her husband to use his influence with her, to make her
  • willing?'
  • “The boy's eyes, which had been fixed on mine, slowly turned to the
  • looker-on, and I saw in the two faces that all he said was true. The two
  • opposing kinds of pride confronting one another, I can see, even in this
  • Bastille; the gentleman's, all negligent indifference; the peasant's, all
  • trodden-down sentiment, and passionate revenge.
  • “'You know, Doctor, that it is among the Rights of these Nobles to
  • harness us common dogs to carts, and drive us. They so harnessed him and
  • drove him. You know that it is among their Rights to keep us in their
  • grounds all night, quieting the frogs, in order that their noble sleep
  • may not be disturbed. They kept him out in the unwholesome mists at
  • night, and ordered him back into his harness in the day. But he was
  • not persuaded. No! Taken out of harness one day at noon, to feed--if he
  • could find food--he sobbed twelve times, once for every stroke of the
  • bell, and died on her bosom.'
  • “Nothing human could have held life in the boy but his determination to
  • tell all his wrong. He forced back the gathering shadows of death, as
  • he forced his clenched right hand to remain clenched, and to cover his
  • wound.
  • “'Then, with that man's permission and even with his aid, his
  • brother took her away; in spite of what I know she must have told his
  • brother--and what that is, will not be long unknown to you, Doctor, if
  • it is now--his brother took her away--for his pleasure and diversion,
  • for a little while. I saw her pass me on the road. When I took the
  • tidings home, our father's heart burst; he never spoke one of the words
  • that filled it. I took my young sister (for I have another) to a place
  • beyond the reach of this man, and where, at least, she will never be
  • _his_ vassal. Then, I tracked the brother here, and last night climbed
  • in--a common dog, but sword in hand.--Where is the loft window? It was
  • somewhere here?'
  • “The room was darkening to his sight; the world was narrowing around
  • him. I glanced about me, and saw that the hay and straw were trampled
  • over the floor, as if there had been a struggle.
  • “'She heard me, and ran in. I told her not to come near us till he was
  • dead. He came in and first tossed me some pieces of money; then struck
  • at me with a whip. But I, though a common dog, so struck at him as to
  • make him draw. Let him break into as many pieces as he will, the sword
  • that he stained with my common blood; he drew to defend himself--thrust
  • at me with all his skill for his life.'
  • “My glance had fallen, but a few moments before, on the fragments of
  • a broken sword, lying among the hay. That weapon was a gentleman's. In
  • another place, lay an old sword that seemed to have been a soldier's.
  • “'Now, lift me up, Doctor; lift me up. Where is he?'
  • “'He is not here,' I said, supporting the boy, and thinking that he
  • referred to the brother.
  • “'He! Proud as these nobles are, he is afraid to see me. Where is the
  • man who was here? Turn my face to him.'
  • “I did so, raising the boy's head against my knee. But, invested for the
  • moment with extraordinary power, he raised himself completely: obliging
  • me to rise too, or I could not have still supported him.
  • “'Marquis,' said the boy, turned to him with his eyes opened wide, and
  • his right hand raised, 'in the days when all these things are to be
  • answered for, I summon you and yours, to the last of your bad race, to
  • answer for them. I mark this cross of blood upon you, as a sign that
  • I do it. In the days when all these things are to be answered for,
  • I summon your brother, the worst of the bad race, to answer for them
  • separately. I mark this cross of blood upon him, as a sign that I do
  • it.'
  • “Twice, he put his hand to the wound in his breast, and with his
  • forefinger drew a cross in the air. He stood for an instant with the
  • finger yet raised, and as it dropped, he dropped with it, and I laid him
  • down dead.
  • *****
  • “When I returned to the bedside of the young woman, I found her raving
  • in precisely the same order of continuity. I knew that this might last
  • for many hours, and that it would probably end in the silence of the
  • grave.
  • “I repeated the medicines I had given her, and I sat at the side of
  • the bed until the night was far advanced. She never abated the piercing
  • quality of her shrieks, never stumbled in the distinctness or the order
  • of her words. They were always 'My husband, my father, and my brother!
  • One, two, three, four, five, six, seven, eight, nine, ten, eleven,
  • twelve. Hush!'
  • “This lasted twenty-six hours from the time when I first saw her. I had
  • come and gone twice, and was again sitting by her, when she began to
  • falter. I did what little could be done to assist that opportunity, and
  • by-and-bye she sank into a lethargy, and lay like the dead.
  • “It was as if the wind and rain had lulled at last, after a long and
  • fearful storm. I released her arms, and called the woman to assist me to
  • compose her figure and the dress she had torn. It was then that I knew
  • her condition to be that of one in whom the first expectations of being
  • a mother have arisen; and it was then that I lost the little hope I had
  • had of her.
  • “'Is she dead?' asked the Marquis, whom I will still describe as the
  • elder brother, coming booted into the room from his horse.
  • “'Not dead,' said I; 'but like to die.'
  • “'What strength there is in these common bodies!' he said, looking down
  • at her with some curiosity.
  • “'There is prodigious strength,' I answered him, 'in sorrow and
  • despair.'
  • “He first laughed at my words, and then frowned at them. He moved a
  • chair with his foot near to mine, ordered the woman away, and said in a
  • subdued voice,
  • “'Doctor, finding my brother in this difficulty with these hinds, I
  • recommended that your aid should be invited. Your reputation is high,
  • and, as a young man with your fortune to make, you are probably mindful
  • of your interest. The things that you see here, are things to be seen,
  • and not spoken of.'
  • “I listened to the patient's breathing, and avoided answering.
  • “'Do you honour me with your attention, Doctor?'
  • “'Monsieur,' said I, 'in my profession, the communications of patients
  • are always received in confidence.' I was guarded in my answer, for I
  • was troubled in my mind with what I had heard and seen.
  • “Her breathing was so difficult to trace, that I carefully tried the
  • pulse and the heart. There was life, and no more. Looking round as I
  • resumed my seat, I found both the brothers intent upon me.
  • *****
  • “I write with so much difficulty, the cold is so severe, I am so
  • fearful of being detected and consigned to an underground cell and total
  • darkness, that I must abridge this narrative. There is no confusion or
  • failure in my memory; it can recall, and could detail, every word that
  • was ever spoken between me and those brothers.
  • “She lingered for a week. Towards the last, I could understand some few
  • syllables that she said to me, by placing my ear close to her lips. She
  • asked me where she was, and I told her; who I was, and I told her. It
  • was in vain that I asked her for her family name. She faintly shook her
  • head upon the pillow, and kept her secret, as the boy had done.
  • “I had no opportunity of asking her any question, until I had told the
  • brothers she was sinking fast, and could not live another day. Until
  • then, though no one was ever presented to her consciousness save the
  • woman and myself, one or other of them had always jealously sat behind
  • the curtain at the head of the bed when I was there. But when it came to
  • that, they seemed careless what communication I might hold with her; as
  • if--the thought passed through my mind--I were dying too.
  • “I always observed that their pride bitterly resented the younger
  • brother's (as I call him) having crossed swords with a peasant, and that
  • peasant a boy. The only consideration that appeared to affect the mind
  • of either of them was the consideration that this was highly degrading
  • to the family, and was ridiculous. As often as I caught the younger
  • brother's eyes, their expression reminded me that he disliked me deeply,
  • for knowing what I knew from the boy. He was smoother and more polite to
  • me than the elder; but I saw this. I also saw that I was an incumbrance
  • in the mind of the elder, too.
  • “My patient died, two hours before midnight--at a time, by my watch,
  • answering almost to the minute when I had first seen her. I was alone
  • with her, when her forlorn young head drooped gently on one side, and
  • all her earthly wrongs and sorrows ended.
  • “The brothers were waiting in a room down-stairs, impatient to ride
  • away. I had heard them, alone at the bedside, striking their boots with
  • their riding-whips, and loitering up and down.
  • “'At last she is dead?' said the elder, when I went in.
  • “'She is dead,' said I.
  • “'I congratulate you, my brother,' were his words as he turned round.
  • “He had before offered me money, which I had postponed taking. He now
  • gave me a rouleau of gold. I took it from his hand, but laid it on
  • the table. I had considered the question, and had resolved to accept
  • nothing.
  • “'Pray excuse me,' said I. 'Under the circumstances, no.'
  • “They exchanged looks, but bent their heads to me as I bent mine to
  • them, and we parted without another word on either side.
  • *****
  • “I am weary, weary, weary--worn down by misery. I cannot read what I
  • have written with this gaunt hand.
  • “Early in the morning, the rouleau of gold was left at my door in a
  • little box, with my name on the outside. From the first, I had anxiously
  • considered what I ought to do. I decided, that day, to write privately
  • to the Minister, stating the nature of the two cases to which I had been
  • summoned, and the place to which I had gone: in effect, stating all the
  • circumstances. I knew what Court influence was, and what the immunities
  • of the Nobles were, and I expected that the matter would never be
  • heard of; but, I wished to relieve my own mind. I had kept the matter a
  • profound secret, even from my wife; and this, too, I resolved to state
  • in my letter. I had no apprehension whatever of my real danger; but
  • I was conscious that there might be danger for others, if others were
  • compromised by possessing the knowledge that I possessed.
  • “I was much engaged that day, and could not complete my letter that
  • night. I rose long before my usual time next morning to finish it.
  • It was the last day of the year. The letter was lying before me just
  • completed, when I was told that a lady waited, who wished to see me.
  • *****
  • “I am growing more and more unequal to the task I have set myself. It is
  • so cold, so dark, my senses are so benumbed, and the gloom upon me is so
  • dreadful.
  • “The lady was young, engaging, and handsome, but not marked for long
  • life. She was in great agitation. She presented herself to me as the
  • wife of the Marquis St. Evremonde. I connected the title by which the
  • boy had addressed the elder brother, with the initial letter embroidered
  • on the scarf, and had no difficulty in arriving at the conclusion that I
  • had seen that nobleman very lately.
  • “My memory is still accurate, but I cannot write the words of our
  • conversation. I suspect that I am watched more closely than I was, and I
  • know not at what times I may be watched. She had in part suspected, and
  • in part discovered, the main facts of the cruel story, of her husband's
  • share in it, and my being resorted to. She did not know that the girl
  • was dead. Her hope had been, she said in great distress, to show her,
  • in secret, a woman's sympathy. Her hope had been to avert the wrath of
  • Heaven from a House that had long been hateful to the suffering many.
  • “She had reasons for believing that there was a young sister living, and
  • her greatest desire was, to help that sister. I could tell her nothing
  • but that there was such a sister; beyond that, I knew nothing. Her
  • inducement to come to me, relying on my confidence, had been the hope
  • that I could tell her the name and place of abode. Whereas, to this
  • wretched hour I am ignorant of both.
  • *****
  • “These scraps of paper fail me. One was taken from me, with a warning,
  • yesterday. I must finish my record to-day.
  • “She was a good, compassionate lady, and not happy in her marriage. How
  • could she be! The brother distrusted and disliked her, and his influence
  • was all opposed to her; she stood in dread of him, and in dread of her
  • husband too. When I handed her down to the door, there was a child, a
  • pretty boy from two to three years old, in her carriage.
  • “'For his sake, Doctor,' she said, pointing to him in tears, 'I would do
  • all I can to make what poor amends I can. He will never prosper in his
  • inheritance otherwise. I have a presentiment that if no other innocent
  • atonement is made for this, it will one day be required of him. What
  • I have left to call my own--it is little beyond the worth of a few
  • jewels--I will make it the first charge of his life to bestow, with the
  • compassion and lamenting of his dead mother, on this injured family, if
  • the sister can be discovered.'
  • “She kissed the boy, and said, caressing him, 'It is for thine own dear
  • sake. Thou wilt be faithful, little Charles?' The child answered her
  • bravely, 'Yes!' I kissed her hand, and she took him in her arms, and
  • went away caressing him. I never saw her more.
  • “As she had mentioned her husband's name in the faith that I knew it,
  • I added no mention of it to my letter. I sealed my letter, and, not
  • trusting it out of my own hands, delivered it myself that day.
  • “That night, the last night of the year, towards nine o'clock, a man in
  • a black dress rang at my gate, demanded to see me, and softly followed
  • my servant, Ernest Defarge, a youth, up-stairs. When my servant came
  • into the room where I sat with my wife--O my wife, beloved of my heart!
  • My fair young English wife!--we saw the man, who was supposed to be at
  • the gate, standing silent behind him.
  • “An urgent case in the Rue St. Honore, he said. It would not detain me,
  • he had a coach in waiting.
  • “It brought me here, it brought me to my grave. When I was clear of the
  • house, a black muffler was drawn tightly over my mouth from behind, and
  • my arms were pinioned. The two brothers crossed the road from a dark
  • corner, and identified me with a single gesture. The Marquis took from
  • his pocket the letter I had written, showed it me, burnt it in the light
  • of a lantern that was held, and extinguished the ashes with his foot.
  • Not a word was spoken. I was brought here, I was brought to my living
  • grave.
  • “If it had pleased _God_ to put it in the hard heart of either of the
  • brothers, in all these frightful years, to grant me any tidings of
  • my dearest wife--so much as to let me know by a word whether alive or
  • dead--I might have thought that He had not quite abandoned them. But,
  • now I believe that the mark of the red cross is fatal to them, and that
  • they have no part in His mercies. And them and their descendants, to the
  • last of their race, I, Alexandre Manette, unhappy prisoner, do this last
  • night of the year 1767, in my unbearable agony, denounce to the times
  • when all these things shall be answered for. I denounce them to Heaven
  • and to earth.”
  • A terrible sound arose when the reading of this document was done. A
  • sound of craving and eagerness that had nothing articulate in it but
  • blood. The narrative called up the most revengeful passions of the time,
  • and there was not a head in the nation but must have dropped before it.
  • Little need, in presence of that tribunal and that auditory, to show
  • how the Defarges had not made the paper public, with the other captured
  • Bastille memorials borne in procession, and had kept it, biding their
  • time. Little need to show that this detested family name had long been
  • anathematised by Saint Antoine, and was wrought into the fatal register.
  • The man never trod ground whose virtues and services would have
  • sustained him in that place that day, against such denunciation.
  • And all the worse for the doomed man, that the denouncer was a
  • well-known citizen, his own attached friend, the father of his wife. One
  • of the frenzied aspirations of the populace was, for imitations of
  • the questionable public virtues of antiquity, and for sacrifices and
  • self-immolations on the people's altar. Therefore when the President
  • said (else had his own head quivered on his shoulders), that the good
  • physician of the Republic would deserve better still of the Republic by
  • rooting out an obnoxious family of Aristocrats, and would doubtless feel
  • a sacred glow and joy in making his daughter a widow and her child an
  • orphan, there was wild excitement, patriotic fervour, not a touch of
  • human sympathy.
  • “Much influence around him, has that Doctor?” murmured Madame Defarge,
  • smiling to The Vengeance. “Save him now, my Doctor, save him!”
  • At every juryman's vote, there was a roar. Another and another. Roar and
  • roar.
  • Unanimously voted. At heart and by descent an Aristocrat, an enemy
  • of the Republic, a notorious oppressor of the People. Back to the
  • Conciergerie, and Death within four-and-twenty hours!
  • XI. Dusk
  • The wretched wife of the innocent man thus doomed to die, fell under
  • the sentence, as if she had been mortally stricken. But, she uttered no
  • sound; and so strong was the voice within her, representing that it was
  • she of all the world who must uphold him in his misery and not augment
  • it, that it quickly raised her, even from that shock.
  • The Judges having to take part in a public demonstration out of doors,
  • the Tribunal adjourned. The quick noise and movement of the court's
  • emptying itself by many passages had not ceased, when Lucie stood
  • stretching out her arms towards her husband, with nothing in her face
  • but love and consolation.
  • “If I might touch him! If I might embrace him once! O, good citizens, if
  • you would have so much compassion for us!”
  • There was but a gaoler left, along with two of the four men who had
  • taken him last night, and Barsad. The people had all poured out to the
  • show in the streets. Barsad proposed to the rest, “Let her embrace
  • him then; it is but a moment.” It was silently acquiesced in, and they
  • passed her over the seats in the hall to a raised place, where he, by
  • leaning over the dock, could fold her in his arms.
  • “Farewell, dear darling of my soul. My parting blessing on my love. We
  • shall meet again, where the weary are at rest!”
  • They were her husband's words, as he held her to his bosom.
  • “I can bear it, dear Charles. I am supported from above: don't suffer
  • for me. A parting blessing for our child.”
  • “I send it to her by you. I kiss her by you. I say farewell to her by
  • you.”
  • “My husband. No! A moment!” He was tearing himself apart from her.
  • “We shall not be separated long. I feel that this will break my heart
  • by-and-bye; but I will do my duty while I can, and when I leave her, God
  • will raise up friends for her, as He did for me.”
  • Her father had followed her, and would have fallen on his knees to both
  • of them, but that Darnay put out a hand and seized him, crying:
  • “No, no! What have you done, what have you done, that you should kneel
  • to us! We know now, what a struggle you made of old. We know, now what
  • you underwent when you suspected my descent, and when you knew it. We
  • know now, the natural antipathy you strove against, and conquered, for
  • her dear sake. We thank you with all our hearts, and all our love and
  • duty. Heaven be with you!”
  • Her father's only answer was to draw his hands through his white hair,
  • and wring them with a shriek of anguish.
  • “It could not be otherwise,” said the prisoner. “All things have worked
  • together as they have fallen out. It was the always-vain endeavour to
  • discharge my poor mother's trust that first brought my fatal presence
  • near you. Good could never come of such evil, a happier end was not in
  • nature to so unhappy a beginning. Be comforted, and forgive me. Heaven
  • bless you!”
  • As he was drawn away, his wife released him, and stood looking after him
  • with her hands touching one another in the attitude of prayer, and
  • with a radiant look upon her face, in which there was even a comforting
  • smile. As he went out at the prisoners' door, she turned, laid her head
  • lovingly on her father's breast, tried to speak to him, and fell at his
  • feet.
  • Then, issuing from the obscure corner from which he had never moved,
  • Sydney Carton came and took her up. Only her father and Mr. Lorry were
  • with her. His arm trembled as it raised her, and supported her head.
  • Yet, there was an air about him that was not all of pity--that had a
  • flush of pride in it.
  • “Shall I take her to a coach? I shall never feel her weight.”
  • He carried her lightly to the door, and laid her tenderly down in a
  • coach. Her father and their old friend got into it, and he took his seat
  • beside the driver.
  • When they arrived at the gateway where he had paused in the dark not
  • many hours before, to picture to himself on which of the rough stones of
  • the street her feet had trodden, he lifted her again, and carried her up
  • the staircase to their rooms. There, he laid her down on a couch, where
  • her child and Miss Pross wept over her.
  • “Don't recall her to herself,” he said, softly, to the latter, “she is
  • better so. Don't revive her to consciousness, while she only faints.”
  • “Oh, Carton, Carton, dear Carton!” cried little Lucie, springing up and
  • throwing her arms passionately round him, in a burst of grief. “Now that
  • you have come, I think you will do something to help mamma, something to
  • save papa! O, look at her, dear Carton! Can you, of all the people who
  • love her, bear to see her so?”
  • He bent over the child, and laid her blooming cheek against his face. He
  • put her gently from him, and looked at her unconscious mother.
  • “Before I go,” he said, and paused--“I may kiss her?”
  • It was remembered afterwards that when he bent down and touched her face
  • with his lips, he murmured some words. The child, who was nearest to
  • him, told them afterwards, and told her grandchildren when she was a
  • handsome old lady, that she heard him say, “A life you love.”
  • When he had gone out into the next room, he turned suddenly on Mr. Lorry
  • and her father, who were following, and said to the latter:
  • “You had great influence but yesterday, Doctor Manette; let it at least
  • be tried. These judges, and all the men in power, are very friendly to
  • you, and very recognisant of your services; are they not?”
  • “Nothing connected with Charles was concealed from me. I had the
  • strongest assurances that I should save him; and I did.” He returned the
  • answer in great trouble, and very slowly.
  • “Try them again. The hours between this and to-morrow afternoon are few
  • and short, but try.”
  • “I intend to try. I will not rest a moment.”
  • “That's well. I have known such energy as yours do great things before
  • now--though never,” he added, with a smile and a sigh together, “such
  • great things as this. But try! Of little worth as life is when we misuse
  • it, it is worth that effort. It would cost nothing to lay down if it
  • were not.”
  • “I will go,” said Doctor Manette, “to the Prosecutor and the President
  • straight, and I will go to others whom it is better not to name. I will
  • write too, and--But stay! There is a Celebration in the streets, and no
  • one will be accessible until dark.”
  • “That's true. Well! It is a forlorn hope at the best, and not much the
  • forlorner for being delayed till dark. I should like to know how you
  • speed; though, mind! I expect nothing! When are you likely to have seen
  • these dread powers, Doctor Manette?”
  • “Immediately after dark, I should hope. Within an hour or two from
  • this.”
  • “It will be dark soon after four. Let us stretch the hour or two. If I
  • go to Mr. Lorry's at nine, shall I hear what you have done, either from
  • our friend or from yourself?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “May you prosper!”
  • Mr. Lorry followed Sydney to the outer door, and, touching him on the
  • shoulder as he was going away, caused him to turn.
  • “I have no hope,” said Mr. Lorry, in a low and sorrowful whisper.
  • “Nor have I.”
  • “If any one of these men, or all of these men, were disposed to spare
  • him--which is a large supposition; for what is his life, or any man's
  • to them!--I doubt if they durst spare him after the demonstration in the
  • court.”
  • “And so do I. I heard the fall of the axe in that sound.”
  • Mr. Lorry leaned his arm upon the door-post, and bowed his face upon it.
  • “Don't despond,” said Carton, very gently; “don't grieve. I encouraged
  • Doctor Manette in this idea, because I felt that it might one day be
  • consolatory to her. Otherwise, she might think 'his life was wantonly
  • thrown away or wasted,' and that might trouble her.”
  • “Yes, yes, yes,” returned Mr. Lorry, drying his eyes, “you are right.
  • But he will perish; there is no real hope.”
  • “Yes. He will perish: there is no real hope,” echoed Carton.
  • And walked with a settled step, down-stairs.
  • XII. Darkness
  • Sydney Carton paused in the street, not quite decided where to go. “At
  • Tellson's banking-house at nine,” he said, with a musing face. “Shall I
  • do well, in the mean time, to show myself? I think so. It is best that
  • these people should know there is such a man as I here; it is a sound
  • precaution, and may be a necessary preparation. But care, care, care!
  • Let me think it out!”
  • Checking his steps which had begun to tend towards an object, he took a
  • turn or two in the already darkening street, and traced the thought
  • in his mind to its possible consequences. His first impression was
  • confirmed. “It is best,” he said, finally resolved, “that these people
  • should know there is such a man as I here.” And he turned his face
  • towards Saint Antoine.
  • Defarge had described himself, that day, as the keeper of a wine-shop in
  • the Saint Antoine suburb. It was not difficult for one who knew the city
  • well, to find his house without asking any question. Having ascertained
  • its situation, Carton came out of those closer streets again, and dined
  • at a place of refreshment and fell sound asleep after dinner. For the
  • first time in many years, he had no strong drink. Since last night he
  • had taken nothing but a little light thin wine, and last night he had
  • dropped the brandy slowly down on Mr. Lorry's hearth like a man who had
  • done with it.
  • It was as late as seven o'clock when he awoke refreshed, and went out
  • into the streets again. As he passed along towards Saint Antoine, he
  • stopped at a shop-window where there was a mirror, and slightly altered
  • the disordered arrangement of his loose cravat, and his coat-collar, and
  • his wild hair. This done, he went on direct to Defarge's, and went in.
  • There happened to be no customer in the shop but Jacques Three, of the
  • restless fingers and the croaking voice. This man, whom he had seen upon
  • the Jury, stood drinking at the little counter, in conversation with the
  • Defarges, man and wife. The Vengeance assisted in the conversation, like
  • a regular member of the establishment.
  • As Carton walked in, took his seat and asked (in very indifferent
  • French) for a small measure of wine, Madame Defarge cast a careless
  • glance at him, and then a keener, and then a keener, and then advanced
  • to him herself, and asked him what it was he had ordered.
  • He repeated what he had already said.
  • “English?” asked Madame Defarge, inquisitively raising her dark
  • eyebrows.
  • After looking at her, as if the sound of even a single French word were
  • slow to express itself to him, he answered, in his former strong foreign
  • accent. “Yes, madame, yes. I am English!”
  • Madame Defarge returned to her counter to get the wine, and, as he
  • took up a Jacobin journal and feigned to pore over it puzzling out its
  • meaning, he heard her say, “I swear to you, like Evremonde!”
  • Defarge brought him the wine, and gave him Good Evening.
  • “How?”
  • “Good evening.”
  • “Oh! Good evening, citizen,” filling his glass. “Ah! and good wine. I
  • drink to the Republic.”
  • Defarge went back to the counter, and said, “Certainly, a little like.”
  • Madame sternly retorted, “I tell you a good deal like.” Jacques Three
  • pacifically remarked, “He is so much in your mind, see you, madame.”
  • The amiable Vengeance added, with a laugh, “Yes, my faith! And you
  • are looking forward with so much pleasure to seeing him once more
  • to-morrow!”
  • Carton followed the lines and words of his paper, with a slow
  • forefinger, and with a studious and absorbed face. They were all leaning
  • their arms on the counter close together, speaking low. After a silence
  • of a few moments, during which they all looked towards him without
  • disturbing his outward attention from the Jacobin editor, they resumed
  • their conversation.
  • “It is true what madame says,” observed Jacques Three. “Why stop? There
  • is great force in that. Why stop?”
  • “Well, well,” reasoned Defarge, “but one must stop somewhere. After all,
  • the question is still where?”
  • “At extermination,” said madame.
  • “Magnificent!” croaked Jacques Three. The Vengeance, also, highly
  • approved.
  • “Extermination is good doctrine, my wife,” said Defarge, rather
  • troubled; “in general, I say nothing against it. But this Doctor has
  • suffered much; you have seen him to-day; you have observed his face when
  • the paper was read.”
  • “I have observed his face!” repeated madame, contemptuously and angrily.
  • “Yes. I have observed his face. I have observed his face to be not the
  • face of a true friend of the Republic. Let him take care of his face!”
  • “And you have observed, my wife,” said Defarge, in a deprecatory manner,
  • “the anguish of his daughter, which must be a dreadful anguish to him!”
  • “I have observed his daughter,” repeated madame; “yes, I have observed
  • his daughter, more times than one. I have observed her to-day, and I
  • have observed her other days. I have observed her in the court, and
  • I have observed her in the street by the prison. Let me but lift my
  • finger--!” She seemed to raise it (the listener's eyes were always on
  • his paper), and to let it fall with a rattle on the ledge before her, as
  • if the axe had dropped.
  • “The citizeness is superb!” croaked the Juryman.
  • “She is an Angel!” said The Vengeance, and embraced her.
  • “As to thee,” pursued madame, implacably, addressing her husband, “if it
  • depended on thee--which, happily, it does not--thou wouldst rescue this
  • man even now.”
  • “No!” protested Defarge. “Not if to lift this glass would do it! But I
  • would leave the matter there. I say, stop there.”
  • “See you then, Jacques,” said Madame Defarge, wrathfully; “and see you,
  • too, my little Vengeance; see you both! Listen! For other crimes as
  • tyrants and oppressors, I have this race a long time on my register,
  • doomed to destruction and extermination. Ask my husband, is that so.”
  • “It is so,” assented Defarge, without being asked.
  • “In the beginning of the great days, when the Bastille falls, he finds
  • this paper of to-day, and he brings it home, and in the middle of the
  • night when this place is clear and shut, we read it, here on this spot,
  • by the light of this lamp. Ask him, is that so.”
  • “It is so,” assented Defarge.
  • “That night, I tell him, when the paper is read through, and the lamp is
  • burnt out, and the day is gleaming in above those shutters and between
  • those iron bars, that I have now a secret to communicate. Ask him, is
  • that so.”
  • “It is so,” assented Defarge again.
  • “I communicate to him that secret. I smite this bosom with these two
  • hands as I smite it now, and I tell him, 'Defarge, I was brought up
  • among the fishermen of the sea-shore, and that peasant family so injured
  • by the two Evremonde brothers, as that Bastille paper describes, is my
  • family. Defarge, that sister of the mortally wounded boy upon the ground
  • was my sister, that husband was my sister's husband, that unborn child
  • was their child, that brother was my brother, that father was my father,
  • those dead are my dead, and that summons to answer for those things
  • descends to me!' Ask him, is that so.”
  • “It is so,” assented Defarge once more.
  • “Then tell Wind and Fire where to stop,” returned madame; “but don't
  • tell me.”
  • Both her hearers derived a horrible enjoyment from the deadly nature
  • of her wrath--the listener could feel how white she was, without seeing
  • her--and both highly commended it. Defarge, a weak minority, interposed
  • a few words for the memory of the compassionate wife of the Marquis; but
  • only elicited from his own wife a repetition of her last reply. “Tell
  • the Wind and the Fire where to stop; not me!”
  • Customers entered, and the group was broken up. The English customer
  • paid for what he had had, perplexedly counted his change, and asked, as
  • a stranger, to be directed towards the National Palace. Madame Defarge
  • took him to the door, and put her arm on his, in pointing out the road.
  • The English customer was not without his reflections then, that it might
  • be a good deed to seize that arm, lift it, and strike under it sharp and
  • deep.
  • But, he went his way, and was soon swallowed up in the shadow of the
  • prison wall. At the appointed hour, he emerged from it to present
  • himself in Mr. Lorry's room again, where he found the old gentleman
  • walking to and fro in restless anxiety. He said he had been with Lucie
  • until just now, and had only left her for a few minutes, to come and
  • keep his appointment. Her father had not been seen, since he quitted the
  • banking-house towards four o'clock. She had some faint hopes that his
  • mediation might save Charles, but they were very slight. He had been
  • more than five hours gone: where could he be?
  • Mr. Lorry waited until ten; but, Doctor Manette not returning, and
  • he being unwilling to leave Lucie any longer, it was arranged that he
  • should go back to her, and come to the banking-house again at midnight.
  • In the meanwhile, Carton would wait alone by the fire for the Doctor.
  • He waited and waited, and the clock struck twelve; but Doctor Manette
  • did not come back. Mr. Lorry returned, and found no tidings of him, and
  • brought none. Where could he be?
  • They were discussing this question, and were almost building up some
  • weak structure of hope on his prolonged absence, when they heard him on
  • the stairs. The instant he entered the room, it was plain that all was
  • lost.
  • Whether he had really been to any one, or whether he had been all that
  • time traversing the streets, was never known. As he stood staring at
  • them, they asked him no question, for his face told them everything.
  • “I cannot find it,” said he, “and I must have it. Where is it?”
  • His head and throat were bare, and, as he spoke with a helpless look
  • straying all around, he took his coat off, and let it drop on the floor.
  • “Where is my bench? I have been looking everywhere for my bench, and I
  • can't find it. What have they done with my work? Time presses: I must
  • finish those shoes.”
  • They looked at one another, and their hearts died within them.
  • “Come, come!” said he, in a whimpering miserable way; “let me get to
  • work. Give me my work.”
  • Receiving no answer, he tore his hair, and beat his feet upon the
  • ground, like a distracted child.
  • “Don't torture a poor forlorn wretch,” he implored them, with a dreadful
  • cry; “but give me my work! What is to become of us, if those shoes are
  • not done to-night?”
  • Lost, utterly lost!
  • It was so clearly beyond hope to reason with him, or try to restore him,
  • that--as if by agreement--they each put a hand upon his shoulder, and
  • soothed him to sit down before the fire, with a promise that he should
  • have his work presently. He sank into the chair, and brooded over the
  • embers, and shed tears. As if all that had happened since the garret
  • time were a momentary fancy, or a dream, Mr. Lorry saw him shrink into
  • the exact figure that Defarge had had in keeping.
  • Affected, and impressed with terror as they both were, by this spectacle
  • of ruin, it was not a time to yield to such emotions. His lonely
  • daughter, bereft of her final hope and reliance, appealed to them both
  • too strongly. Again, as if by agreement, they looked at one another with
  • one meaning in their faces. Carton was the first to speak:
  • “The last chance is gone: it was not much. Yes; he had better be taken
  • to her. But, before you go, will you, for a moment, steadily attend to
  • me? Don't ask me why I make the stipulations I am going to make, and
  • exact the promise I am going to exact; I have a reason--a good one.”
  • “I do not doubt it,” answered Mr. Lorry. “Say on.”
  • The figure in the chair between them, was all the time monotonously
  • rocking itself to and fro, and moaning. They spoke in such a tone as
  • they would have used if they had been watching by a sick-bed in the
  • night.
  • Carton stooped to pick up the coat, which lay almost entangling his
  • feet. As he did so, a small case in which the Doctor was accustomed to
  • carry the lists of his day's duties, fell lightly on the floor. Carton
  • took it up, and there was a folded paper in it. “We should look
  • at this!” he said. Mr. Lorry nodded his consent. He opened it, and
  • exclaimed, “Thank _God!_”
  • “What is it?” asked Mr. Lorry, eagerly.
  • “A moment! Let me speak of it in its place. First,” he put his hand in
  • his coat, and took another paper from it, “that is the certificate which
  • enables me to pass out of this city. Look at it. You see--Sydney Carton,
  • an Englishman?”
  • Mr. Lorry held it open in his hand, gazing in his earnest face.
  • “Keep it for me until to-morrow. I shall see him to-morrow, you
  • remember, and I had better not take it into the prison.”
  • “Why not?”
  • “I don't know; I prefer not to do so. Now, take this paper that Doctor
  • Manette has carried about him. It is a similar certificate, enabling him
  • and his daughter and her child, at any time, to pass the barrier and the
  • frontier! You see?”
  • “Yes!”
  • “Perhaps he obtained it as his last and utmost precaution against evil,
  • yesterday. When is it dated? But no matter; don't stay to look; put it
  • up carefully with mine and your own. Now, observe! I never doubted until
  • within this hour or two, that he had, or could have such a paper. It is
  • good, until recalled. But it may be soon recalled, and, I have reason to
  • think, will be.”
  • “They are not in danger?”
  • “They are in great danger. They are in danger of denunciation by Madame
  • Defarge. I know it from her own lips. I have overheard words of that
  • woman's, to-night, which have presented their danger to me in strong
  • colours. I have lost no time, and since then, I have seen the spy. He
  • confirms me. He knows that a wood-sawyer, living by the prison wall,
  • is under the control of the Defarges, and has been rehearsed by
  • Madame Defarge as to his having seen Her”--he never mentioned Lucie's
  • name--“making signs and signals to prisoners. It is easy to foresee that
  • the pretence will be the common one, a prison plot, and that it will
  • involve her life--and perhaps her child's--and perhaps her father's--for
  • both have been seen with her at that place. Don't look so horrified. You
  • will save them all.”
  • “Heaven grant I may, Carton! But how?”
  • “I am going to tell you how. It will depend on you, and it could depend
  • on no better man. This new denunciation will certainly not take place
  • until after to-morrow; probably not until two or three days afterwards;
  • more probably a week afterwards. You know it is a capital crime, to
  • mourn for, or sympathise with, a victim of the Guillotine. She and her
  • father would unquestionably be guilty of this crime, and this woman (the
  • inveteracy of whose pursuit cannot be described) would wait to add that
  • strength to her case, and make herself doubly sure. You follow me?”
  • “So attentively, and with so much confidence in what you say, that for
  • the moment I lose sight,” touching the back of the Doctor's chair, “even
  • of this distress.”
  • “You have money, and can buy the means of travelling to the seacoast
  • as quickly as the journey can be made. Your preparations have been
  • completed for some days, to return to England. Early to-morrow have your
  • horses ready, so that they may be in starting trim at two o'clock in the
  • afternoon.”
  • “It shall be done!”
  • His manner was so fervent and inspiring, that Mr. Lorry caught the
  • flame, and was as quick as youth.
  • “You are a noble heart. Did I say we could depend upon no better man?
  • Tell her, to-night, what you know of her danger as involving her child
  • and her father. Dwell upon that, for she would lay her own fair head
  • beside her husband's cheerfully.” He faltered for an instant; then went
  • on as before. “For the sake of her child and her father, press upon her
  • the necessity of leaving Paris, with them and you, at that hour. Tell
  • her that it was her husband's last arrangement. Tell her that more
  • depends upon it than she dare believe, or hope. You think that her
  • father, even in this sad state, will submit himself to her; do you not?”
  • “I am sure of it.”
  • “I thought so. Quietly and steadily have all these arrangements made in
  • the courtyard here, even to the taking of your own seat in the carriage.
  • The moment I come to you, take me in, and drive away.”
  • “I understand that I wait for you under all circumstances?”
  • “You have my certificate in your hand with the rest, you know, and will
  • reserve my place. Wait for nothing but to have my place occupied, and
  • then for England!”
  • “Why, then,” said Mr. Lorry, grasping his eager but so firm and steady
  • hand, “it does not all depend on one old man, but I shall have a young
  • and ardent man at my side.”
  • “By the help of Heaven you shall! Promise me solemnly that nothing will
  • influence you to alter the course on which we now stand pledged to one
  • another.”
  • “Nothing, Carton.”
  • “Remember these words to-morrow: change the course, or delay in it--for
  • any reason--and no life can possibly be saved, and many lives must
  • inevitably be sacrificed.”
  • “I will remember them. I hope to do my part faithfully.”
  • “And I hope to do mine. Now, good bye!”
  • Though he said it with a grave smile of earnestness, and though he even
  • put the old man's hand to his lips, he did not part from him then. He
  • helped him so far to arouse the rocking figure before the dying embers,
  • as to get a cloak and hat put upon it, and to tempt it forth to find
  • where the bench and work were hidden that it still moaningly besought
  • to have. He walked on the other side of it and protected it to the
  • courtyard of the house where the afflicted heart--so happy in
  • the memorable time when he had revealed his own desolate heart to
  • it--outwatched the awful night. He entered the courtyard and remained
  • there for a few moments alone, looking up at the light in the window of
  • her room. Before he went away, he breathed a blessing towards it, and a
  • Farewell.
  • XIII. Fifty-two
  • In the black prison of the Conciergerie, the doomed of the day awaited
  • their fate. They were in number as the weeks of the year. Fifty-two were
  • to roll that afternoon on the life-tide of the city to the boundless
  • everlasting sea. Before their cells were quit of them, new occupants
  • were appointed; before their blood ran into the blood spilled yesterday,
  • the blood that was to mingle with theirs to-morrow was already set
  • apart.
  • Two score and twelve were told off. From the farmer-general of seventy,
  • whose riches could not buy his life, to the seamstress of twenty, whose
  • poverty and obscurity could not save her. Physical diseases, engendered
  • in the vices and neglects of men, will seize on victims of all degrees;
  • and the frightful moral disorder, born of unspeakable suffering,
  • intolerable oppression, and heartless indifference, smote equally
  • without distinction.
  • Charles Darnay, alone in a cell, had sustained himself with no
  • flattering delusion since he came to it from the Tribunal. In every line
  • of the narrative he had heard, he had heard his condemnation. He had
  • fully comprehended that no personal influence could possibly save him,
  • that he was virtually sentenced by the millions, and that units could
  • avail him nothing.
  • Nevertheless, it was not easy, with the face of his beloved wife fresh
  • before him, to compose his mind to what it must bear. His hold on life
  • was strong, and it was very, very hard, to loosen; by gradual efforts
  • and degrees unclosed a little here, it clenched the tighter there; and
  • when he brought his strength to bear on that hand and it yielded,
  • this was closed again. There was a hurry, too, in all his thoughts,
  • a turbulent and heated working of his heart, that contended against
  • resignation. If, for a moment, he did feel resigned, then his wife and
  • child who had to live after him, seemed to protest and to make it a
  • selfish thing.
  • But, all this was at first. Before long, the consideration that there
  • was no disgrace in the fate he must meet, and that numbers went the same
  • road wrongfully, and trod it firmly every day, sprang up to stimulate
  • him. Next followed the thought that much of the future peace of mind
  • enjoyable by the dear ones, depended on his quiet fortitude. So,
  • by degrees he calmed into the better state, when he could raise his
  • thoughts much higher, and draw comfort down.
  • Before it had set in dark on the night of his condemnation, he had
  • travelled thus far on his last way. Being allowed to purchase the means
  • of writing, and a light, he sat down to write until such time as the
  • prison lamps should be extinguished.
  • He wrote a long letter to Lucie, showing her that he had known nothing
  • of her father's imprisonment, until he had heard of it from herself,
  • and that he had been as ignorant as she of his father's and uncle's
  • responsibility for that misery, until the paper had been read. He had
  • already explained to her that his concealment from herself of the name
  • he had relinquished, was the one condition--fully intelligible now--that
  • her father had attached to their betrothal, and was the one promise he
  • had still exacted on the morning of their marriage. He entreated her,
  • for her father's sake, never to seek to know whether her father had
  • become oblivious of the existence of the paper, or had had it recalled
  • to him (for the moment, or for good), by the story of the Tower, on
  • that old Sunday under the dear old plane-tree in the garden. If he had
  • preserved any definite remembrance of it, there could be no doubt that
  • he had supposed it destroyed with the Bastille, when he had found no
  • mention of it among the relics of prisoners which the populace had
  • discovered there, and which had been described to all the world. He
  • besought her--though he added that he knew it was needless--to console
  • her father, by impressing him through every tender means she could think
  • of, with the truth that he had done nothing for which he could justly
  • reproach himself, but had uniformly forgotten himself for their joint
  • sakes. Next to her preservation of his own last grateful love and
  • blessing, and her overcoming of her sorrow, to devote herself to their
  • dear child, he adjured her, as they would meet in Heaven, to comfort her
  • father.
  • To her father himself, he wrote in the same strain; but, he told her
  • father that he expressly confided his wife and child to his care. And
  • he told him this, very strongly, with the hope of rousing him from any
  • despondency or dangerous retrospect towards which he foresaw he might be
  • tending.
  • To Mr. Lorry, he commended them all, and explained his worldly affairs.
  • That done, with many added sentences of grateful friendship and warm
  • attachment, all was done. He never thought of Carton. His mind was so
  • full of the others, that he never once thought of him.
  • He had time to finish these letters before the lights were put out. When
  • he lay down on his straw bed, he thought he had done with this world.
  • But, it beckoned him back in his sleep, and showed itself in shining
  • forms. Free and happy, back in the old house in Soho (though it had
  • nothing in it like the real house), unaccountably released and light of
  • heart, he was with Lucie again, and she told him it was all a dream, and
  • he had never gone away. A pause of forgetfulness, and then he had even
  • suffered, and had come back to her, dead and at peace, and yet there
  • was no difference in him. Another pause of oblivion, and he awoke in the
  • sombre morning, unconscious where he was or what had happened, until it
  • flashed upon his mind, “this is the day of my death!”
  • Thus, had he come through the hours, to the day when the fifty-two heads
  • were to fall. And now, while he was composed, and hoped that he could
  • meet the end with quiet heroism, a new action began in his waking
  • thoughts, which was very difficult to master.
  • He had never seen the instrument that was to terminate his life. How
  • high it was from the ground, how many steps it had, where he would be
  • stood, how he would be touched, whether the touching hands would be dyed
  • red, which way his face would be turned, whether he would be the first,
  • or might be the last: these and many similar questions, in nowise
  • directed by his will, obtruded themselves over and over again, countless
  • times. Neither were they connected with fear: he was conscious of no
  • fear. Rather, they originated in a strange besetting desire to know what
  • to do when the time came; a desire gigantically disproportionate to the
  • few swift moments to which it referred; a wondering that was more like
  • the wondering of some other spirit within his, than his own.
  • The hours went on as he walked to and fro, and the clocks struck the
  • numbers he would never hear again. Nine gone for ever, ten gone for
  • ever, eleven gone for ever, twelve coming on to pass away. After a hard
  • contest with that eccentric action of thought which had last perplexed
  • him, he had got the better of it. He walked up and down, softly
  • repeating their names to himself. The worst of the strife was over.
  • He could walk up and down, free from distracting fancies, praying for
  • himself and for them.
  • Twelve gone for ever.
  • He had been apprised that the final hour was Three, and he knew he would
  • be summoned some time earlier, inasmuch as the tumbrils jolted heavily
  • and slowly through the streets. Therefore, he resolved to keep Two
  • before his mind, as the hour, and so to strengthen himself in the
  • interval that he might be able, after that time, to strengthen others.
  • Walking regularly to and fro with his arms folded on his breast, a very
  • different man from the prisoner, who had walked to and fro at La Force,
  • he heard One struck away from him, without surprise. The hour had
  • measured like most other hours. Devoutly thankful to Heaven for his
  • recovered self-possession, he thought, “There is but another now,” and
  • turned to walk again.
  • Footsteps in the stone passage outside the door. He stopped.
  • The key was put in the lock, and turned. Before the door was opened, or
  • as it opened, a man said in a low voice, in English: “He has never seen
  • me here; I have kept out of his way. Go you in alone; I wait near. Lose
  • no time!”
  • The door was quickly opened and closed, and there stood before him
  • face to face, quiet, intent upon him, with the light of a smile on his
  • features, and a cautionary finger on his lip, Sydney Carton.
  • There was something so bright and remarkable in his look, that, for the
  • first moment, the prisoner misdoubted him to be an apparition of his own
  • imagining. But, he spoke, and it was his voice; he took the prisoner's
  • hand, and it was his real grasp.
  • “Of all the people upon earth, you least expected to see me?” he said.
  • “I could not believe it to be you. I can scarcely believe it now. You
  • are not”--the apprehension came suddenly into his mind--“a prisoner?”
  • “No. I am accidentally possessed of a power over one of the keepers
  • here, and in virtue of it I stand before you. I come from her--your
  • wife, dear Darnay.”
  • The prisoner wrung his hand.
  • “I bring you a request from her.”
  • “What is it?”
  • “A most earnest, pressing, and emphatic entreaty, addressed to you
  • in the most pathetic tones of the voice so dear to you, that you well
  • remember.”
  • The prisoner turned his face partly aside.
  • “You have no time to ask me why I bring it, or what it means; I have
  • no time to tell you. You must comply with it--take off those boots you
  • wear, and draw on these of mine.”
  • There was a chair against the wall of the cell, behind the prisoner.
  • Carton, pressing forward, had already, with the speed of lightning, got
  • him down into it, and stood over him, barefoot.
  • “Draw on these boots of mine. Put your hands to them; put your will to
  • them. Quick!”
  • “Carton, there is no escaping from this place; it never can be done. You
  • will only die with me. It is madness.”
  • “It would be madness if I asked you to escape; but do I? When I ask you
  • to pass out at that door, tell me it is madness and remain here. Change
  • that cravat for this of mine, that coat for this of mine. While you do
  • it, let me take this ribbon from your hair, and shake out your hair like
  • this of mine!”
  • With wonderful quickness, and with a strength both of will and action,
  • that appeared quite supernatural, he forced all these changes upon him.
  • The prisoner was like a young child in his hands.
  • “Carton! Dear Carton! It is madness. It cannot be accomplished, it never
  • can be done, it has been attempted, and has always failed. I implore you
  • not to add your death to the bitterness of mine.”
  • “Do I ask you, my dear Darnay, to pass the door? When I ask that,
  • refuse. There are pen and ink and paper on this table. Is your hand
  • steady enough to write?”
  • “It was when you came in.”
  • “Steady it again, and write what I shall dictate. Quick, friend, quick!”
  • Pressing his hand to his bewildered head, Darnay sat down at the table.
  • Carton, with his right hand in his breast, stood close beside him.
  • “Write exactly as I speak.”
  • “To whom do I address it?”
  • “To no one.” Carton still had his hand in his breast.
  • “Do I date it?”
  • “No.”
  • The prisoner looked up, at each question. Carton, standing over him with
  • his hand in his breast, looked down.
  • “'If you remember,'” said Carton, dictating, “'the words that passed
  • between us, long ago, you will readily comprehend this when you see it.
  • You do remember them, I know. It is not in your nature to forget them.'”
  • He was drawing his hand from his breast; the prisoner chancing to look
  • up in his hurried wonder as he wrote, the hand stopped, closing upon
  • something.
  • “Have you written 'forget them'?” Carton asked.
  • “I have. Is that a weapon in your hand?”
  • “No; I am not armed.”
  • “What is it in your hand?”
  • “You shall know directly. Write on; there are but a few words more.” He
  • dictated again. “'I am thankful that the time has come, when I can prove
  • them. That I do so is no subject for regret or grief.'” As he said these
  • words with his eyes fixed on the writer, his hand slowly and softly
  • moved down close to the writer's face.
  • The pen dropped from Darnay's fingers on the table, and he looked about
  • him vacantly.
  • “What vapour is that?” he asked.
  • “Vapour?”
  • “Something that crossed me?”
  • “I am conscious of nothing; there can be nothing here. Take up the pen
  • and finish. Hurry, hurry!”
  • As if his memory were impaired, or his faculties disordered, the
  • prisoner made an effort to rally his attention. As he looked at Carton
  • with clouded eyes and with an altered manner of breathing, Carton--his
  • hand again in his breast--looked steadily at him.
  • “Hurry, hurry!”
  • The prisoner bent over the paper, once more.
  • “'If it had been otherwise;'” Carton's hand was again watchfully and
  • softly stealing down; “'I never should have used the longer opportunity.
  • If it had been otherwise;'” the hand was at the prisoner's face; “'I
  • should but have had so much the more to answer for. If it had been
  • otherwise--'” Carton looked at the pen and saw it was trailing off into
  • unintelligible signs.
  • Carton's hand moved back to his breast no more. The prisoner sprang up
  • with a reproachful look, but Carton's hand was close and firm at his
  • nostrils, and Carton's left arm caught him round the waist. For a few
  • seconds he faintly struggled with the man who had come to lay down his
  • life for him; but, within a minute or so, he was stretched insensible on
  • the ground.
  • Quickly, but with hands as true to the purpose as his heart was, Carton
  • dressed himself in the clothes the prisoner had laid aside, combed back
  • his hair, and tied it with the ribbon the prisoner had worn. Then, he
  • softly called, “Enter there! Come in!” and the Spy presented himself.
  • “You see?” said Carton, looking up, as he kneeled on one knee beside the
  • insensible figure, putting the paper in the breast: “is your hazard very
  • great?”
  • “Mr. Carton,” the Spy answered, with a timid snap of his fingers, “my
  • hazard is not _that_, in the thick of business here, if you are true to
  • the whole of your bargain.”
  • “Don't fear me. I will be true to the death.”
  • “You must be, Mr. Carton, if the tale of fifty-two is to be right. Being
  • made right by you in that dress, I shall have no fear.”
  • “Have no fear! I shall soon be out of the way of harming you, and the
  • rest will soon be far from here, please God! Now, get assistance and
  • take me to the coach.”
  • “You?” said the Spy nervously.
  • “Him, man, with whom I have exchanged. You go out at the gate by which
  • you brought me in?”
  • “Of course.”
  • “I was weak and faint when you brought me in, and I am fainter now you
  • take me out. The parting interview has overpowered me. Such a thing has
  • happened here, often, and too often. Your life is in your own hands.
  • Quick! Call assistance!”
  • “You swear not to betray me?” said the trembling Spy, as he paused for a
  • last moment.
  • “Man, man!” returned Carton, stamping his foot; “have I sworn by no
  • solemn vow already, to go through with this, that you waste the precious
  • moments now? Take him yourself to the courtyard you know of, place
  • him yourself in the carriage, show him yourself to Mr. Lorry, tell him
  • yourself to give him no restorative but air, and to remember my words of
  • last night, and his promise of last night, and drive away!”
  • The Spy withdrew, and Carton seated himself at the table, resting his
  • forehead on his hands. The Spy returned immediately, with two men.
  • “How, then?” said one of them, contemplating the fallen figure. “So
  • afflicted to find that his friend has drawn a prize in the lottery of
  • Sainte Guillotine?”
  • “A good patriot,” said the other, “could hardly have been more afflicted
  • if the Aristocrat had drawn a blank.”
  • They raised the unconscious figure, placed it on a litter they had
  • brought to the door, and bent to carry it away.
  • “The time is short, Evremonde,” said the Spy, in a warning voice.
  • “I know it well,” answered Carton. “Be careful of my friend, I entreat
  • you, and leave me.”
  • “Come, then, my children,” said Barsad. “Lift him, and come away!”
  • The door closed, and Carton was left alone. Straining his powers of
  • listening to the utmost, he listened for any sound that might denote
  • suspicion or alarm. There was none. Keys turned, doors clashed,
  • footsteps passed along distant passages: no cry was raised, or hurry
  • made, that seemed unusual. Breathing more freely in a little while, he
  • sat down at the table, and listened again until the clock struck Two.
  • Sounds that he was not afraid of, for he divined their meaning, then
  • began to be audible. Several doors were opened in succession, and
  • finally his own. A gaoler, with a list in his hand, looked in, merely
  • saying, “Follow me, Evremonde!” and he followed into a large dark room,
  • at a distance. It was a dark winter day, and what with the shadows
  • within, and what with the shadows without, he could but dimly discern
  • the others who were brought there to have their arms bound. Some were
  • standing; some seated. Some were lamenting, and in restless motion;
  • but, these were few. The great majority were silent and still, looking
  • fixedly at the ground.
  • As he stood by the wall in a dim corner, while some of the fifty-two
  • were brought in after him, one man stopped in passing, to embrace him,
  • as having a knowledge of him. It thrilled him with a great dread of
  • discovery; but the man went on. A very few moments after that, a young
  • woman, with a slight girlish form, a sweet spare face in which there was
  • no vestige of colour, and large widely opened patient eyes, rose from
  • the seat where he had observed her sitting, and came to speak to him.
  • “Citizen Evremonde,” she said, touching him with her cold hand. “I am a
  • poor little seamstress, who was with you in La Force.”
  • He murmured for answer: “True. I forget what you were accused of?”
  • “Plots. Though the just Heaven knows that I am innocent of any. Is it
  • likely? Who would think of plotting with a poor little weak creature
  • like me?”
  • The forlorn smile with which she said it, so touched him, that tears
  • started from his eyes.
  • “I am not afraid to die, Citizen Evremonde, but I have done nothing. I
  • am not unwilling to die, if the Republic which is to do so much good
  • to us poor, will profit by my death; but I do not know how that can be,
  • Citizen Evremonde. Such a poor weak little creature!”
  • As the last thing on earth that his heart was to warm and soften to, it
  • warmed and softened to this pitiable girl.
  • “I heard you were released, Citizen Evremonde. I hoped it was true?”
  • “It was. But, I was again taken and condemned.”
  • “If I may ride with you, Citizen Evremonde, will you let me hold your
  • hand? I am not afraid, but I am little and weak, and it will give me
  • more courage.”
  • As the patient eyes were lifted to his face, he saw a sudden doubt in
  • them, and then astonishment. He pressed the work-worn, hunger-worn young
  • fingers, and touched his lips.
  • “Are you dying for him?” she whispered.
  • “And his wife and child. Hush! Yes.”
  • “O you will let me hold your brave hand, stranger?”
  • “Hush! Yes, my poor sister; to the last.”
  • *****
  • The same shadows that are falling on the prison, are falling, in that
  • same hour of the early afternoon, on the Barrier with the crowd about
  • it, when a coach going out of Paris drives up to be examined.
  • “Who goes here? Whom have we within? Papers!”
  • The papers are handed out, and read.
  • “Alexandre Manette. Physician. French. Which is he?”
  • This is he; this helpless, inarticulately murmuring, wandering old man
  • pointed out.
  • “Apparently the Citizen-Doctor is not in his right mind? The
  • Revolution-fever will have been too much for him?”
  • Greatly too much for him.
  • “Hah! Many suffer with it. Lucie. His daughter. French. Which is she?”
  • This is she.
  • “Apparently it must be. Lucie, the wife of Evremonde; is it not?”
  • It is.
  • “Hah! Evremonde has an assignation elsewhere. Lucie, her child. English.
  • This is she?”
  • She and no other.
  • “Kiss me, child of Evremonde. Now, thou hast kissed a good Republican;
  • something new in thy family; remember it! Sydney Carton. Advocate.
  • English. Which is he?”
  • He lies here, in this corner of the carriage. He, too, is pointed out.
  • “Apparently the English advocate is in a swoon?”
  • It is hoped he will recover in the fresher air. It is represented that
  • he is not in strong health, and has separated sadly from a friend who is
  • under the displeasure of the Republic.
  • “Is that all? It is not a great deal, that! Many are under the
  • displeasure of the Republic, and must look out at the little window.
  • Jarvis Lorry. Banker. English. Which is he?”
  • “I am he. Necessarily, being the last.”
  • It is Jarvis Lorry who has replied to all the previous questions. It
  • is Jarvis Lorry who has alighted and stands with his hand on the coach
  • door, replying to a group of officials. They leisurely walk round the
  • carriage and leisurely mount the box, to look at what little luggage it
  • carries on the roof; the country-people hanging about, press nearer to
  • the coach doors and greedily stare in; a little child, carried by its
  • mother, has its short arm held out for it, that it may touch the wife of
  • an aristocrat who has gone to the Guillotine.
  • “Behold your papers, Jarvis Lorry, countersigned.”
  • “One can depart, citizen?”
  • “One can depart. Forward, my postilions! A good journey!”
  • “I salute you, citizens.--And the first danger passed!”
  • These are again the words of Jarvis Lorry, as he clasps his hands, and
  • looks upward. There is terror in the carriage, there is weeping, there
  • is the heavy breathing of the insensible traveller.
  • “Are we not going too slowly? Can they not be induced to go faster?”
  • asks Lucie, clinging to the old man.
  • “It would seem like flight, my darling. I must not urge them too much;
  • it would rouse suspicion.”
  • “Look back, look back, and see if we are pursued!”
  • “The road is clear, my dearest. So far, we are not pursued.”
  • Houses in twos and threes pass by us, solitary farms, ruinous buildings,
  • dye-works, tanneries, and the like, open country, avenues of leafless
  • trees. The hard uneven pavement is under us, the soft deep mud is on
  • either side. Sometimes, we strike into the skirting mud, to avoid the
  • stones that clatter us and shake us; sometimes, we stick in ruts and
  • sloughs there. The agony of our impatience is then so great, that in our
  • wild alarm and hurry we are for getting out and running--hiding--doing
  • anything but stopping.
  • Out of the open country, in again among ruinous buildings, solitary
  • farms, dye-works, tanneries, and the like, cottages in twos and threes,
  • avenues of leafless trees. Have these men deceived us, and taken us back
  • by another road? Is not this the same place twice over? Thank Heaven,
  • no. A village. Look back, look back, and see if we are pursued! Hush!
  • the posting-house.
  • Leisurely, our four horses are taken out; leisurely, the coach stands in
  • the little street, bereft of horses, and with no likelihood upon it
  • of ever moving again; leisurely, the new horses come into visible
  • existence, one by one; leisurely, the new postilions follow, sucking and
  • plaiting the lashes of their whips; leisurely, the old postilions count
  • their money, make wrong additions, and arrive at dissatisfied results.
  • All the time, our overfraught hearts are beating at a rate that would
  • far outstrip the fastest gallop of the fastest horses ever foaled.
  • At length the new postilions are in their saddles, and the old are left
  • behind. We are through the village, up the hill, and down the hill, and
  • on the low watery grounds. Suddenly, the postilions exchange speech with
  • animated gesticulation, and the horses are pulled up, almost on their
  • haunches. We are pursued?
  • “Ho! Within the carriage there. Speak then!”
  • “What is it?” asks Mr. Lorry, looking out at window.
  • “How many did they say?”
  • “I do not understand you.”
  • “--At the last post. How many to the Guillotine to-day?”
  • “Fifty-two.”
  • “I said so! A brave number! My fellow-citizen here would have it
  • forty-two; ten more heads are worth having. The Guillotine goes
  • handsomely. I love it. Hi forward. Whoop!”
  • The night comes on dark. He moves more; he is beginning to revive, and
  • to speak intelligibly; he thinks they are still together; he asks him,
  • by his name, what he has in his hand. O pity us, kind Heaven, and help
  • us! Look out, look out, and see if we are pursued.
  • The wind is rushing after us, and the clouds are flying after us, and
  • the moon is plunging after us, and the whole wild night is in pursuit of
  • us; but, so far, we are pursued by nothing else.
  • XIV. The Knitting Done
  • In that same juncture of time when the Fifty-Two awaited their fate
  • Madame Defarge held darkly ominous council with The Vengeance and
  • Jacques Three of the Revolutionary Jury. Not in the wine-shop did Madame
  • Defarge confer with these ministers, but in the shed of the wood-sawyer,
  • erst a mender of roads. The sawyer himself did not participate in the
  • conference, but abided at a little distance, like an outer satellite who
  • was not to speak until required, or to offer an opinion until invited.
  • “But our Defarge,” said Jacques Three, “is undoubtedly a good
  • Republican? Eh?”
  • “There is no better,” the voluble Vengeance protested in her shrill
  • notes, “in France.”
  • “Peace, little Vengeance,” said Madame Defarge, laying her hand with
  • a slight frown on her lieutenant's lips, “hear me speak. My husband,
  • fellow-citizen, is a good Republican and a bold man; he has deserved
  • well of the Republic, and possesses its confidence. But my husband has
  • his weaknesses, and he is so weak as to relent towards this Doctor.”
  • “It is a great pity,” croaked Jacques Three, dubiously shaking his head,
  • with his cruel fingers at his hungry mouth; “it is not quite like a good
  • citizen; it is a thing to regret.”
  • “See you,” said madame, “I care nothing for this Doctor, I. He may wear
  • his head or lose it, for any interest I have in him; it is all one to
  • me. But, the Evremonde people are to be exterminated, and the wife and
  • child must follow the husband and father.”
  • “She has a fine head for it,” croaked Jacques Three. “I have seen blue
  • eyes and golden hair there, and they looked charming when Samson held
  • them up.” Ogre that he was, he spoke like an epicure.
  • Madame Defarge cast down her eyes, and reflected a little.
  • “The child also,” observed Jacques Three, with a meditative enjoyment
  • of his words, “has golden hair and blue eyes. And we seldom have a child
  • there. It is a pretty sight!”
  • “In a word,” said Madame Defarge, coming out of her short abstraction,
  • “I cannot trust my husband in this matter. Not only do I feel, since
  • last night, that I dare not confide to him the details of my projects;
  • but also I feel that if I delay, there is danger of his giving warning,
  • and then they might escape.”
  • “That must never be,” croaked Jacques Three; “no one must escape. We
  • have not half enough as it is. We ought to have six score a day.”
  • “In a word,” Madame Defarge went on, “my husband has not my reason for
  • pursuing this family to annihilation, and I have not his reason for
  • regarding this Doctor with any sensibility. I must act for myself,
  • therefore. Come hither, little citizen.”
  • The wood-sawyer, who held her in the respect, and himself in the
  • submission, of mortal fear, advanced with his hand to his red cap.
  • “Touching those signals, little citizen,” said Madame Defarge, sternly,
  • “that she made to the prisoners; you are ready to bear witness to them
  • this very day?”
  • “Ay, ay, why not!” cried the sawyer. “Every day, in all weathers, from
  • two to four, always signalling, sometimes with the little one, sometimes
  • without. I know what I know. I have seen with my eyes.”
  • He made all manner of gestures while he spoke, as if in incidental
  • imitation of some few of the great diversity of signals that he had
  • never seen.
  • “Clearly plots,” said Jacques Three. “Transparently!”
  • “There is no doubt of the Jury?” inquired Madame Defarge, letting her
  • eyes turn to him with a gloomy smile.
  • “Rely upon the patriotic Jury, dear citizeness. I answer for my
  • fellow-Jurymen.”
  • “Now, let me see,” said Madame Defarge, pondering again. “Yet once more!
  • Can I spare this Doctor to my husband? I have no feeling either way. Can
  • I spare him?”
  • “He would count as one head,” observed Jacques Three, in a low voice.
  • “We really have not heads enough; it would be a pity, I think.”
  • “He was signalling with her when I saw her,” argued Madame Defarge; “I
  • cannot speak of one without the other; and I must not be silent, and
  • trust the case wholly to him, this little citizen here. For, I am not a
  • bad witness.”
  • The Vengeance and Jacques Three vied with each other in their fervent
  • protestations that she was the most admirable and marvellous of
  • witnesses. The little citizen, not to be outdone, declared her to be a
  • celestial witness.
  • “He must take his chance,” said Madame Defarge. “No, I cannot spare
  • him! You are engaged at three o'clock; you are going to see the batch of
  • to-day executed.--You?”
  • The question was addressed to the wood-sawyer, who hurriedly replied in
  • the affirmative: seizing the occasion to add that he was the most ardent
  • of Republicans, and that he would be in effect the most desolate of
  • Republicans, if anything prevented him from enjoying the pleasure of
  • smoking his afternoon pipe in the contemplation of the droll national
  • barber. He was so very demonstrative herein, that he might have been
  • suspected (perhaps was, by the dark eyes that looked contemptuously at
  • him out of Madame Defarge's head) of having his small individual fears
  • for his own personal safety, every hour in the day.
  • “I,” said madame, “am equally engaged at the same place. After it is
  • over--say at eight to-night--come you to me, in Saint Antoine, and we
  • will give information against these people at my Section.”
  • The wood-sawyer said he would be proud and flattered to attend the
  • citizeness. The citizeness looking at him, he became embarrassed, evaded
  • her glance as a small dog would have done, retreated among his wood, and
  • hid his confusion over the handle of his saw.
  • Madame Defarge beckoned the Juryman and The Vengeance a little nearer to
  • the door, and there expounded her further views to them thus:
  • “She will now be at home, awaiting the moment of his death. She will
  • be mourning and grieving. She will be in a state of mind to impeach the
  • justice of the Republic. She will be full of sympathy with its enemies.
  • I will go to her.”
  • “What an admirable woman; what an adorable woman!” exclaimed Jacques
  • Three, rapturously. “Ah, my cherished!” cried The Vengeance; and
  • embraced her.
  • “Take you my knitting,” said Madame Defarge, placing it in her
  • lieutenant's hands, “and have it ready for me in my usual seat. Keep
  • me my usual chair. Go you there, straight, for there will probably be a
  • greater concourse than usual, to-day.”
  • “I willingly obey the orders of my Chief,” said The Vengeance with
  • alacrity, and kissing her cheek. “You will not be late?”
  • “I shall be there before the commencement.”
  • “And before the tumbrils arrive. Be sure you are there, my soul,” said
  • The Vengeance, calling after her, for she had already turned into the
  • street, “before the tumbrils arrive!”
  • Madame Defarge slightly waved her hand, to imply that she heard, and
  • might be relied upon to arrive in good time, and so went through the
  • mud, and round the corner of the prison wall. The Vengeance and the
  • Juryman, looking after her as she walked away, were highly appreciative
  • of her fine figure, and her superb moral endowments.
  • There were many women at that time, upon whom the time laid a dreadfully
  • disfiguring hand; but, there was not one among them more to be dreaded
  • than this ruthless woman, now taking her way along the streets. Of a
  • strong and fearless character, of shrewd sense and readiness, of great
  • determination, of that kind of beauty which not only seems to impart
  • to its possessor firmness and animosity, but to strike into others an
  • instinctive recognition of those qualities; the troubled time would have
  • heaved her up, under any circumstances. But, imbued from her childhood
  • with a brooding sense of wrong, and an inveterate hatred of a class,
  • opportunity had developed her into a tigress. She was absolutely without
  • pity. If she had ever had the virtue in her, it had quite gone out of
  • her.
  • It was nothing to her, that an innocent man was to die for the sins of
  • his forefathers; she saw, not him, but them. It was nothing to her, that
  • his wife was to be made a widow and his daughter an orphan; that was
  • insufficient punishment, because they were her natural enemies and
  • her prey, and as such had no right to live. To appeal to her, was made
  • hopeless by her having no sense of pity, even for herself. If she had
  • been laid low in the streets, in any of the many encounters in which
  • she had been engaged, she would not have pitied herself; nor, if she had
  • been ordered to the axe to-morrow, would she have gone to it with any
  • softer feeling than a fierce desire to change places with the man who
  • sent her there.
  • Such a heart Madame Defarge carried under her rough robe. Carelessly
  • worn, it was a becoming robe enough, in a certain weird way, and her
  • dark hair looked rich under her coarse red cap. Lying hidden in her
  • bosom, was a loaded pistol. Lying hidden at her waist, was a sharpened
  • dagger. Thus accoutred, and walking with the confident tread of such
  • a character, and with the supple freedom of a woman who had habitually
  • walked in her girlhood, bare-foot and bare-legged, on the brown
  • sea-sand, Madame Defarge took her way along the streets.
  • Now, when the journey of the travelling coach, at that very moment
  • waiting for the completion of its load, had been planned out last night,
  • the difficulty of taking Miss Pross in it had much engaged Mr. Lorry's
  • attention. It was not merely desirable to avoid overloading the coach,
  • but it was of the highest importance that the time occupied in examining
  • it and its passengers, should be reduced to the utmost; since their
  • escape might depend on the saving of only a few seconds here and there.
  • Finally, he had proposed, after anxious consideration, that Miss Pross
  • and Jerry, who were at liberty to leave the city, should leave it at
  • three o'clock in the lightest-wheeled conveyance known to that period.
  • Unencumbered with luggage, they would soon overtake the coach, and,
  • passing it and preceding it on the road, would order its horses in
  • advance, and greatly facilitate its progress during the precious hours
  • of the night, when delay was the most to be dreaded.
  • Seeing in this arrangement the hope of rendering real service in that
  • pressing emergency, Miss Pross hailed it with joy. She and Jerry had
  • beheld the coach start, had known who it was that Solomon brought, had
  • passed some ten minutes in tortures of suspense, and were now concluding
  • their arrangements to follow the coach, even as Madame Defarge,
  • taking her way through the streets, now drew nearer and nearer to the
  • else-deserted lodging in which they held their consultation.
  • “Now what do you think, Mr. Cruncher,” said Miss Pross, whose agitation
  • was so great that she could hardly speak, or stand, or move, or live:
  • “what do you think of our not starting from this courtyard? Another
  • carriage having already gone from here to-day, it might awaken
  • suspicion.”
  • “My opinion, miss,” returned Mr. Cruncher, “is as you're right. Likewise
  • wot I'll stand by you, right or wrong.”
  • “I am so distracted with fear and hope for our precious creatures,” said
  • Miss Pross, wildly crying, “that I am incapable of forming any plan. Are
  • _you_ capable of forming any plan, my dear good Mr. Cruncher?”
  • “Respectin' a future spear o' life, miss,” returned Mr. Cruncher, “I
  • hope so. Respectin' any present use o' this here blessed old head o'
  • mine, I think not. Would you do me the favour, miss, to take notice o'
  • two promises and wows wot it is my wishes fur to record in this here
  • crisis?”
  • “Oh, for gracious sake!” cried Miss Pross, still wildly crying, “record
  • them at once, and get them out of the way, like an excellent man.”
  • “First,” said Mr. Cruncher, who was all in a tremble, and who spoke with
  • an ashy and solemn visage, “them poor things well out o' this, never no
  • more will I do it, never no more!”
  • “I am quite sure, Mr. Cruncher,” returned Miss Pross, “that you
  • never will do it again, whatever it is, and I beg you not to think it
  • necessary to mention more particularly what it is.”
  • “No, miss,” returned Jerry, “it shall not be named to you. Second: them
  • poor things well out o' this, and never no more will I interfere with
  • Mrs. Cruncher's flopping, never no more!”
  • “Whatever housekeeping arrangement that may be,” said Miss Pross,
  • striving to dry her eyes and compose herself, “I have no doubt it
  • is best that Mrs. Cruncher should have it entirely under her own
  • superintendence.--O my poor darlings!”
  • “I go so far as to say, miss, moreover,” proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with a
  • most alarming tendency to hold forth as from a pulpit--“and let my words
  • be took down and took to Mrs. Cruncher through yourself--that wot my
  • opinions respectin' flopping has undergone a change, and that wot I only
  • hope with all my heart as Mrs. Cruncher may be a flopping at the present
  • time.”
  • “There, there, there! I hope she is, my dear man,” cried the distracted
  • Miss Pross, “and I hope she finds it answering her expectations.”
  • “Forbid it,” proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with additional solemnity,
  • additional slowness, and additional tendency to hold forth and hold
  • out, “as anything wot I have ever said or done should be wisited on my
  • earnest wishes for them poor creeturs now! Forbid it as we shouldn't all
  • flop (if it was anyways conwenient) to get 'em out o' this here dismal
  • risk! Forbid it, miss! Wot I say, for-_bid_ it!” This was Mr. Cruncher's
  • conclusion after a protracted but vain endeavour to find a better one.
  • And still Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along the streets, came
  • nearer and nearer.
  • “If we ever get back to our native land,” said Miss Pross, “you may rely
  • upon my telling Mrs. Cruncher as much as I may be able to remember and
  • understand of what you have so impressively said; and at all events
  • you may be sure that I shall bear witness to your being thoroughly in
  • earnest at this dreadful time. Now, pray let us think! My esteemed Mr.
  • Cruncher, let us think!”
  • Still, Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along the streets, came nearer
  • and nearer.
  • “If you were to go before,” said Miss Pross, “and stop the vehicle and
  • horses from coming here, and were to wait somewhere for me; wouldn't
  • that be best?”
  • Mr. Cruncher thought it might be best.
  • “Where could you wait for me?” asked Miss Pross.
  • Mr. Cruncher was so bewildered that he could think of no locality but
  • Temple Bar. Alas! Temple Bar was hundreds of miles away, and Madame
  • Defarge was drawing very near indeed.
  • “By the cathedral door,” said Miss Pross. “Would it be much out of
  • the way, to take me in, near the great cathedral door between the two
  • towers?”
  • “No, miss,” answered Mr. Cruncher.
  • “Then, like the best of men,” said Miss Pross, “go to the posting-house
  • straight, and make that change.”
  • “I am doubtful,” said Mr. Cruncher, hesitating and shaking his head,
  • “about leaving of you, you see. We don't know what may happen.”
  • “Heaven knows we don't,” returned Miss Pross, “but have no fear for me.
  • Take me in at the cathedral, at Three o'Clock, or as near it as you can,
  • and I am sure it will be better than our going from here. I feel certain
  • of it. There! Bless you, Mr. Cruncher! Think-not of me, but of the lives
  • that may depend on both of us!”
  • This exordium, and Miss Pross's two hands in quite agonised entreaty
  • clasping his, decided Mr. Cruncher. With an encouraging nod or two, he
  • immediately went out to alter the arrangements, and left her by herself
  • to follow as she had proposed.
  • The having originated a precaution which was already in course of
  • execution, was a great relief to Miss Pross. The necessity of composing
  • her appearance so that it should attract no special notice in the
  • streets, was another relief. She looked at her watch, and it was twenty
  • minutes past two. She had no time to lose, but must get ready at once.
  • Afraid, in her extreme perturbation, of the loneliness of the deserted
  • rooms, and of half-imagined faces peeping from behind every open door
  • in them, Miss Pross got a basin of cold water and began laving her eyes,
  • which were swollen and red. Haunted by her feverish apprehensions, she
  • could not bear to have her sight obscured for a minute at a time by the
  • dripping water, but constantly paused and looked round to see that there
  • was no one watching her. In one of those pauses she recoiled and cried
  • out, for she saw a figure standing in the room.
  • The basin fell to the ground broken, and the water flowed to the feet of
  • Madame Defarge. By strange stern ways, and through much staining blood,
  • those feet had come to meet that water.
  • Madame Defarge looked coldly at her, and said, “The wife of Evremonde;
  • where is she?”
  • It flashed upon Miss Pross's mind that the doors were all standing open,
  • and would suggest the flight. Her first act was to shut them. There were
  • four in the room, and she shut them all. She then placed herself before
  • the door of the chamber which Lucie had occupied.
  • Madame Defarge's dark eyes followed her through this rapid movement,
  • and rested on her when it was finished. Miss Pross had nothing beautiful
  • about her; years had not tamed the wildness, or softened the grimness,
  • of her appearance; but, she too was a determined woman in her different
  • way, and she measured Madame Defarge with her eyes, every inch.
  • “You might, from your appearance, be the wife of Lucifer,” said Miss
  • Pross, in her breathing. “Nevertheless, you shall not get the better of
  • me. I am an Englishwoman.”
  • Madame Defarge looked at her scornfully, but still with something of
  • Miss Pross's own perception that they two were at bay. She saw a tight,
  • hard, wiry woman before her, as Mr. Lorry had seen in the same figure a
  • woman with a strong hand, in the years gone by. She knew full well that
  • Miss Pross was the family's devoted friend; Miss Pross knew full well
  • that Madame Defarge was the family's malevolent enemy.
  • “On my way yonder,” said Madame Defarge, with a slight movement of
  • her hand towards the fatal spot, “where they reserve my chair and my
  • knitting for me, I am come to make my compliments to her in passing. I
  • wish to see her.”
  • “I know that your intentions are evil,” said Miss Pross, “and you may
  • depend upon it, I'll hold my own against them.”
  • Each spoke in her own language; neither understood the other's words;
  • both were very watchful, and intent to deduce from look and manner, what
  • the unintelligible words meant.
  • “It will do her no good to keep herself concealed from me at this
  • moment,” said Madame Defarge. “Good patriots will know what that means.
  • Let me see her. Go tell her that I wish to see her. Do you hear?”
  • “If those eyes of yours were bed-winches,” returned Miss Pross, “and I
  • was an English four-poster, they shouldn't loose a splinter of me. No,
  • you wicked foreign woman; I am your match.”
  • Madame Defarge was not likely to follow these idiomatic remarks in
  • detail; but, she so far understood them as to perceive that she was set
  • at naught.
  • “Woman imbecile and pig-like!” said Madame Defarge, frowning. “I take no
  • answer from you. I demand to see her. Either tell her that I demand
  • to see her, or stand out of the way of the door and let me go to her!”
  • This, with an angry explanatory wave of her right arm.
  • “I little thought,” said Miss Pross, “that I should ever want to
  • understand your nonsensical language; but I would give all I have,
  • except the clothes I wear, to know whether you suspect the truth, or any
  • part of it.”
  • Neither of them for a single moment released the other's eyes. Madame
  • Defarge had not moved from the spot where she stood when Miss Pross
  • first became aware of her; but, she now advanced one step.
  • “I am a Briton,” said Miss Pross, “I am desperate. I don't care an
  • English Twopence for myself. I know that the longer I keep you here, the
  • greater hope there is for my Ladybird. I'll not leave a handful of that
  • dark hair upon your head, if you lay a finger on me!”
  • Thus Miss Pross, with a shake of her head and a flash of her eyes
  • between every rapid sentence, and every rapid sentence a whole breath.
  • Thus Miss Pross, who had never struck a blow in her life.
  • But, her courage was of that emotional nature that it brought the
  • irrepressible tears into her eyes. This was a courage that Madame
  • Defarge so little comprehended as to mistake for weakness. “Ha, ha!” she
  • laughed, “you poor wretch! What are you worth! I address myself to that
  • Doctor.” Then she raised her voice and called out, “Citizen Doctor! Wife
  • of Evremonde! Child of Evremonde! Any person but this miserable fool,
  • answer the Citizeness Defarge!”
  • Perhaps the following silence, perhaps some latent disclosure in the
  • expression of Miss Pross's face, perhaps a sudden misgiving apart from
  • either suggestion, whispered to Madame Defarge that they were gone.
  • Three of the doors she opened swiftly, and looked in.
  • “Those rooms are all in disorder, there has been hurried packing, there
  • are odds and ends upon the ground. There is no one in that room behind
  • you! Let me look.”
  • “Never!” said Miss Pross, who understood the request as perfectly as
  • Madame Defarge understood the answer.
  • “If they are not in that room, they are gone, and can be pursued and
  • brought back,” said Madame Defarge to herself.
  • “As long as you don't know whether they are in that room or not, you are
  • uncertain what to do,” said Miss Pross to herself; “and you shall not
  • know that, if I can prevent your knowing it; and know that, or not know
  • that, you shall not leave here while I can hold you.”
  • “I have been in the streets from the first, nothing has stopped me,
  • I will tear you to pieces, but I will have you from that door,” said
  • Madame Defarge.
  • “We are alone at the top of a high house in a solitary courtyard, we are
  • not likely to be heard, and I pray for bodily strength to keep you here,
  • while every minute you are here is worth a hundred thousand guineas to
  • my darling,” said Miss Pross.
  • Madame Defarge made at the door. Miss Pross, on the instinct of the
  • moment, seized her round the waist in both her arms, and held her tight.
  • It was in vain for Madame Defarge to struggle and to strike; Miss Pross,
  • with the vigorous tenacity of love, always so much stronger than hate,
  • clasped her tight, and even lifted her from the floor in the struggle
  • that they had. The two hands of Madame Defarge buffeted and tore her
  • face; but, Miss Pross, with her head down, held her round the waist, and
  • clung to her with more than the hold of a drowning woman.
  • Soon, Madame Defarge's hands ceased to strike, and felt at her encircled
  • waist. “It is under my arm,” said Miss Pross, in smothered tones, “you
  • shall not draw it. I am stronger than you, I bless Heaven for it. I hold
  • you till one or other of us faints or dies!”
  • Madame Defarge's hands were at her bosom. Miss Pross looked up, saw
  • what it was, struck at it, struck out a flash and a crash, and stood
  • alone--blinded with smoke.
  • All this was in a second. As the smoke cleared, leaving an awful
  • stillness, it passed out on the air, like the soul of the furious woman
  • whose body lay lifeless on the ground.
  • In the first fright and horror of her situation, Miss Pross passed the
  • body as far from it as she could, and ran down the stairs to call for
  • fruitless help. Happily, she bethought herself of the consequences of
  • what she did, in time to check herself and go back. It was dreadful to
  • go in at the door again; but, she did go in, and even went near it, to
  • get the bonnet and other things that she must wear. These she put on,
  • out on the staircase, first shutting and locking the door and taking
  • away the key. She then sat down on the stairs a few moments to breathe
  • and to cry, and then got up and hurried away.
  • By good fortune she had a veil on her bonnet, or she could hardly have
  • gone along the streets without being stopped. By good fortune, too, she
  • was naturally so peculiar in appearance as not to show disfigurement
  • like any other woman. She needed both advantages, for the marks of
  • gripping fingers were deep in her face, and her hair was torn, and her
  • dress (hastily composed with unsteady hands) was clutched and dragged a
  • hundred ways.
  • In crossing the bridge, she dropped the door key in the river. Arriving
  • at the cathedral some few minutes before her escort, and waiting there,
  • she thought, what if the key were already taken in a net, what if
  • it were identified, what if the door were opened and the remains
  • discovered, what if she were stopped at the gate, sent to prison, and
  • charged with murder! In the midst of these fluttering thoughts, the
  • escort appeared, took her in, and took her away.
  • “Is there any noise in the streets?” she asked him.
  • “The usual noises,” Mr. Cruncher replied; and looked surprised by the
  • question and by her aspect.
  • “I don't hear you,” said Miss Pross. “What do you say?”
  • It was in vain for Mr. Cruncher to repeat what he said; Miss Pross could
  • not hear him. “So I'll nod my head,” thought Mr. Cruncher, amazed, “at
  • all events she'll see that.” And she did.
  • “Is there any noise in the streets now?” asked Miss Pross again,
  • presently.
  • Again Mr. Cruncher nodded his head.
  • “I don't hear it.”
  • “Gone deaf in an hour?” said Mr. Cruncher, ruminating, with his mind
  • much disturbed; “wot's come to her?”
  • “I feel,” said Miss Pross, “as if there had been a flash and a crash,
  • and that crash was the last thing I should ever hear in this life.”
  • “Blest if she ain't in a queer condition!” said Mr. Cruncher, more and
  • more disturbed. “Wot can she have been a takin', to keep her courage up?
  • Hark! There's the roll of them dreadful carts! You can hear that, miss?”
  • “I can hear,” said Miss Pross, seeing that he spoke to her, “nothing. O,
  • my good man, there was first a great crash, and then a great stillness,
  • and that stillness seems to be fixed and unchangeable, never to be
  • broken any more as long as my life lasts.”
  • “If she don't hear the roll of those dreadful carts, now very nigh their
  • journey's end,” said Mr. Cruncher, glancing over his shoulder, “it's my
  • opinion that indeed she never will hear anything else in this world.”
  • And indeed she never did.
  • XV. The Footsteps Die Out For Ever
  • Along the Paris streets, the death-carts rumble, hollow and harsh. Six
  • tumbrils carry the day's wine to La Guillotine. All the devouring and
  • insatiate Monsters imagined since imagination could record itself,
  • are fused in the one realisation, Guillotine. And yet there is not in
  • France, with its rich variety of soil and climate, a blade, a leaf,
  • a root, a sprig, a peppercorn, which will grow to maturity under
  • conditions more certain than those that have produced this horror. Crush
  • humanity out of shape once more, under similar hammers, and it will
  • twist itself into the same tortured forms. Sow the same seed of
  • rapacious license and oppression over again, and it will surely yield
  • the same fruit according to its kind.
  • Six tumbrils roll along the streets. Change these back again to what
  • they were, thou powerful enchanter, Time, and they shall be seen to be
  • the carriages of absolute monarchs, the equipages of feudal nobles, the
  • toilettes of flaring Jezebels, the churches that are not my father's
  • house but dens of thieves, the huts of millions of starving peasants!
  • No; the great magician who majestically works out the appointed order
  • of the Creator, never reverses his transformations. “If thou be changed
  • into this shape by the will of God,” say the seers to the enchanted, in
  • the wise Arabian stories, “then remain so! But, if thou wear this
  • form through mere passing conjuration, then resume thy former aspect!”
  • Changeless and hopeless, the tumbrils roll along.
  • As the sombre wheels of the six carts go round, they seem to plough up
  • a long crooked furrow among the populace in the streets. Ridges of faces
  • are thrown to this side and to that, and the ploughs go steadily onward.
  • So used are the regular inhabitants of the houses to the spectacle, that
  • in many windows there are no people, and in some the occupation of the
  • hands is not so much as suspended, while the eyes survey the faces in
  • the tumbrils. Here and there, the inmate has visitors to see the sight;
  • then he points his finger, with something of the complacency of a
  • curator or authorised exponent, to this cart and to this, and seems to
  • tell who sat here yesterday, and who there the day before.
  • Of the riders in the tumbrils, some observe these things, and all
  • things on their last roadside, with an impassive stare; others, with
  • a lingering interest in the ways of life and men. Some, seated with
  • drooping heads, are sunk in silent despair; again, there are some so
  • heedful of their looks that they cast upon the multitude such glances as
  • they have seen in theatres, and in pictures. Several close their eyes,
  • and think, or try to get their straying thoughts together. Only one, and
  • he a miserable creature, of a crazed aspect, is so shattered and made
  • drunk by horror, that he sings, and tries to dance. Not one of the whole
  • number appeals by look or gesture, to the pity of the people.
  • There is a guard of sundry horsemen riding abreast of the tumbrils,
  • and faces are often turned up to some of them, and they are asked some
  • question. It would seem to be always the same question, for, it is
  • always followed by a press of people towards the third cart. The
  • horsemen abreast of that cart, frequently point out one man in it with
  • their swords. The leading curiosity is, to know which is he; he stands
  • at the back of the tumbril with his head bent down, to converse with a
  • mere girl who sits on the side of the cart, and holds his hand. He has
  • no curiosity or care for the scene about him, and always speaks to the
  • girl. Here and there in the long street of St. Honore, cries are raised
  • against him. If they move him at all, it is only to a quiet smile, as he
  • shakes his hair a little more loosely about his face. He cannot easily
  • touch his face, his arms being bound.
  • On the steps of a church, awaiting the coming-up of the tumbrils, stands
  • the Spy and prison-sheep. He looks into the first of them: not there.
  • He looks into the second: not there. He already asks himself, “Has he
  • sacrificed me?” when his face clears, as he looks into the third.
  • “Which is Evremonde?” says a man behind him.
  • “That. At the back there.”
  • “With his hand in the girl's?”
  • “Yes.”
  • The man cries, “Down, Evremonde! To the Guillotine all aristocrats!
  • Down, Evremonde!”
  • “Hush, hush!” the Spy entreats him, timidly.
  • “And why not, citizen?”
  • “He is going to pay the forfeit: it will be paid in five minutes more.
  • Let him be at peace.”
  • But the man continuing to exclaim, “Down, Evremonde!” the face of
  • Evremonde is for a moment turned towards him. Evremonde then sees the
  • Spy, and looks attentively at him, and goes his way.
  • The clocks are on the stroke of three, and the furrow ploughed among the
  • populace is turning round, to come on into the place of execution, and
  • end. The ridges thrown to this side and to that, now crumble in and
  • close behind the last plough as it passes on, for all are following
  • to the Guillotine. In front of it, seated in chairs, as in a garden of
  • public diversion, are a number of women, busily knitting. On one of the
  • fore-most chairs, stands The Vengeance, looking about for her friend.
  • “Therese!” she cries, in her shrill tones. “Who has seen her? Therese
  • Defarge!”
  • “She never missed before,” says a knitting-woman of the sisterhood.
  • “No; nor will she miss now,” cries The Vengeance, petulantly. “Therese.”
  • “Louder,” the woman recommends.
  • Ay! Louder, Vengeance, much louder, and still she will scarcely hear
  • thee. Louder yet, Vengeance, with a little oath or so added, and yet
  • it will hardly bring her. Send other women up and down to seek her,
  • lingering somewhere; and yet, although the messengers have done dread
  • deeds, it is questionable whether of their own wills they will go far
  • enough to find her!
  • “Bad Fortune!” cries The Vengeance, stamping her foot in the chair, “and
  • here are the tumbrils! And Evremonde will be despatched in a wink, and
  • she not here! See her knitting in my hand, and her empty chair ready for
  • her. I cry with vexation and disappointment!”
  • As The Vengeance descends from her elevation to do it, the tumbrils
  • begin to discharge their loads. The ministers of Sainte Guillotine are
  • robed and ready. Crash!--A head is held up, and the knitting-women who
  • scarcely lifted their eyes to look at it a moment ago when it could
  • think and speak, count One.
  • The second tumbril empties and moves on; the third comes up. Crash!--And
  • the knitting-women, never faltering or pausing in their Work, count Two.
  • The supposed Evremonde descends, and the seamstress is lifted out next
  • after him. He has not relinquished her patient hand in getting out, but
  • still holds it as he promised. He gently places her with her back to the
  • crashing engine that constantly whirrs up and falls, and she looks into
  • his face and thanks him.
  • “But for you, dear stranger, I should not be so composed, for I am
  • naturally a poor little thing, faint of heart; nor should I have been
  • able to raise my thoughts to Him who was put to death, that we might
  • have hope and comfort here to-day. I think you were sent to me by
  • Heaven.”
  • “Or you to me,” says Sydney Carton. “Keep your eyes upon me, dear child,
  • and mind no other object.”
  • “I mind nothing while I hold your hand. I shall mind nothing when I let
  • it go, if they are rapid.”
  • “They will be rapid. Fear not!”
  • The two stand in the fast-thinning throng of victims, but they speak as
  • if they were alone. Eye to eye, voice to voice, hand to hand, heart to
  • heart, these two children of the Universal Mother, else so wide apart
  • and differing, have come together on the dark highway, to repair home
  • together, and to rest in her bosom.
  • “Brave and generous friend, will you let me ask you one last question? I
  • am very ignorant, and it troubles me--just a little.”
  • “Tell me what it is.”
  • “I have a cousin, an only relative and an orphan, like myself, whom I
  • love very dearly. She is five years younger than I, and she lives in a
  • farmer's house in the south country. Poverty parted us, and she knows
  • nothing of my fate--for I cannot write--and if I could, how should I
  • tell her! It is better as it is.”
  • “Yes, yes: better as it is.”
  • “What I have been thinking as we came along, and what I am still
  • thinking now, as I look into your kind strong face which gives me so
  • much support, is this:--If the Republic really does good to the poor,
  • and they come to be less hungry, and in all ways to suffer less, she may
  • live a long time: she may even live to be old.”
  • “What then, my gentle sister?”
  • “Do you think:” the uncomplaining eyes in which there is so much
  • endurance, fill with tears, and the lips part a little more and tremble:
  • “that it will seem long to me, while I wait for her in the better land
  • where I trust both you and I will be mercifully sheltered?”
  • “It cannot be, my child; there is no Time there, and no trouble there.”
  • “You comfort me so much! I am so ignorant. Am I to kiss you now? Is the
  • moment come?”
  • “Yes.”
  • She kisses his lips; he kisses hers; they solemnly bless each other.
  • The spare hand does not tremble as he releases it; nothing worse than
  • a sweet, bright constancy is in the patient face. She goes next before
  • him--is gone; the knitting-women count Twenty-Two.
  • “I am the Resurrection and the Life, saith the Lord: he that believeth
  • in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and
  • believeth in me shall never die.”
  • The murmuring of many voices, the upturning of many faces, the pressing
  • on of many footsteps in the outskirts of the crowd, so that it swells
  • forward in a mass, like one great heave of water, all flashes away.
  • Twenty-Three.
  • *****
  • They said of him, about the city that night, that it was the
  • peacefullest man's face ever beheld there. Many added that he looked
  • sublime and prophetic.
  • One of the most remarkable sufferers by the same axe--a woman--had asked
  • at the foot of the same scaffold, not long before, to be allowed to
  • write down the thoughts that were inspiring her. If he had given any
  • utterance to his, and they were prophetic, they would have been these:
  • “I see Barsad, and Cly, Defarge, The Vengeance, the Juryman, the Judge,
  • long ranks of the new oppressors who have risen on the destruction of
  • the old, perishing by this retributive instrument, before it shall cease
  • out of its present use. I see a beautiful city and a brilliant people
  • rising from this abyss, and, in their struggles to be truly free, in
  • their triumphs and defeats, through long years to come, I see the evil
  • of this time and of the previous time of which this is the natural
  • birth, gradually making expiation for itself and wearing out.
  • “I see the lives for which I lay down my life, peaceful, useful,
  • prosperous and happy, in that England which I shall see no more. I see
  • Her with a child upon her bosom, who bears my name. I see her father,
  • aged and bent, but otherwise restored, and faithful to all men in his
  • healing office, and at peace. I see the good old man, so long their
  • friend, in ten years' time enriching them with all he has, and passing
  • tranquilly to his reward.
  • “I see that I hold a sanctuary in their hearts, and in the hearts of
  • their descendants, generations hence. I see her, an old woman, weeping
  • for me on the anniversary of this day. I see her and her husband, their
  • course done, lying side by side in their last earthly bed, and I know
  • that each was not more honoured and held sacred in the other's soul,
  • than I was in the souls of both.
  • “I see that child who lay upon her bosom and who bore my name, a man
  • winning his way up in that path of life which once was mine. I see him
  • winning it so well, that my name is made illustrious there by the
  • light of his. I see the blots I threw upon it, faded away. I see him,
  • fore-most of just judges and honoured men, bringing a boy of my name,
  • with a forehead that I know and golden hair, to this place--then fair to
  • look upon, with not a trace of this day's disfigurement--and I hear him
  • tell the child my story, with a tender and a faltering voice.
  • “It is a far, far better thing that I do, than I have ever done; it is a
  • far, far better rest that I go to than I have ever known.”
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Tale of Two Cities, by Charles Dickens
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A TALE OF TWO CITIES ***
  • ***** This file should be named 98-0.txt or 98-0.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/9/98/
  • Produced by Judith Boss
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation”
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
  • of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.